"Philip Marlowe 2 - Farewell, My Lovely" - читать интересную книгу автора (Chandler Raymond)A Philip
Marlowe Novel Raymond
Chandler Copyright
1940 by Raymond Chandler. All
rights reserved. 1 IT WAS ONE OF THE MIXED BLOCKS over on Central
Avenue, the blocks that are not yet all Negro. I had just come out of a
three-chair barbershop where an agency thought a relief barber named Dimitrios
Aleidis might be working. It was a small matter. His wife said she was willing
to spend a little money to have him come home. I never found him, but Mrs. Aleidis never
paid me any money either. It was a warm day, almost the end of
March, and I stood outside the barber shop looking up at the jutting neon sign
of a second floor dine and dice emporium called Florian’s. A man was looking up
at the sign too. He was looking up at the dusty windows with a sort of ecstatic
fixity of expression, like a hunky immigrant catching his first sight of the
Statue of Liberty. He was a big man but not more than six feet five inches tall
and not wider than a beer truck. He was about ten feet away from me. His arms
hung loose at his aides and a forgotten cigar smoked behind his enormous
fingers. Slim quiet Negroes passed up and down the
street and stared at him with darting side-glances. He was worth looking at. He
wore a shaggy Borsalino hat, a rough gray sports coat with white golf balls on
it for buttons, a brown shirt, a yellow tie, pleated gray flannel slacks and
alligator shoes with white explosions on the toes. From his outer breast pocket
cascaded a show handkerchief of the same brilliant yellow as his tie. There
were a couple of colored feathers tucked into the band of his hat, but he
didn’t really need them. Even on Central Avenue, not the quietest dressed
street in the world, he looked about as inconspicuous as a tarantula on a slice
of angel food. His skin was pale and he needed a shave.
He would always need a shave. He had curly black hair and heavy eyebrows that
almost met over his thick nose. His ears were small and neat for a man of that
size and his eyes bad a shine close to tears that gray eyes often seem to have.
He stood like a statue, and after a long time he smiled. He moved slowly across the sidewalk to the
double swinging doors which shut off the stairs to the second floor. He pushed
them open, cast a cool expressionless glance up and down the street, and moved
inside. If he had been a smaller man and more quietly dressed, I might have
thought he was going to pull a stick-up. But not in those clothes, and not with
that hat, and that frame. The doors swung back outwards and almost
settled to a stop. Before they had entirely stopped moving they opened again,
violently, outwards. Something sailed across the sidewalk and landed in the
gutter between two parked cars. It landed on its hands and knees and made a
high keening noise like a cornered rat. It got up slowly, retrieved a hat and
stepped back onto the sidewalk. It was a thin, narrow-shouldered brown youth in
a lilac colored suit and a carnation. It had slick black hair. It kept its
mouth open and whined for a moment. People stared at it vaguely. Then it
settled its hat jauntily, sidled over to the wall and walked silently
splay-footed off along the block. Silence. Traffic resumed. I walked along
to the double doors and stood in front of them. They were motionless now. It
wasn’t any of my business. So I pushed them open and looked in. A hand I could have sat in came out of the
dimness and took hold of my shoulder and squashed it to a pulp. Then the hand
moved me through the doors and casually lifted me up a step. The large face
looked at me. A deep soft voice said to me, quietly: “Smokes in here, huh? Tie that for me,
pal.” It was dark in there. It was quiet. From
up above came vague sounds of humanity, but we were alone on the stairs. The
big man stared at me solemnly and went on wrecking my shoulder with his hand. “A dinge,” he said. “I just thrown him
out. You seen me throw him out?” He let go of my shoulder. The bone didn’t
seem to be broken, but the arm was numb. “It’s that kind of a place,” I said,
rubbing my shoulder. “What did you expect?” “Don’t say that, pal,” the big man purred
softly, like four tigers after dinner. “Velma used to work here. Little Velma.”
He reached for my shoulder again. I tried
to dodge him but he was as fast as a cat. He began to chew my muscles up some more
with his iron fingers. “Yeah,” he said. “Little Velma. I ain’t
seen her in eight years. You say this here is a dinge joint?” I croaked that it was. He lifted me up two more steps. I wrenched
myself loose and tried for a little elbowroom. I wasn’t wearing a gun. Looking
for Dimitrios Aleidis hadn’t seemed to require it. I doubted if it would do me
any good. The big man would probably take it away from me and eat it. “Go on up and see for yourself,” I said,
trying to keep the agony out of my voice. He let go of me again. He looked at me
with a sort of sadness in his gray eyes. “I’m feelin’ good,” he said. “I
wouldn’t want anybody to fuss with me. Let’s you and me go on up and maybe
nibble a couple.” “They won’t serve you. I told you it’s a
colored joint.” “I ain’t seen Velma in eight years,” he
said in his deep sad voice. “Eight long years since I said goodbye. She ain’t
wrote to me in six. But she’ll have a reason. She used to work here. Cute she
was. Let’s you and me go on up, huh?” “All right,” I yelled. “I’ll go up with
you. Just lay off carrying me. Let me walk. I’m fine. I’m all grown up. I go to
the bathroom alone and everything. Just don’t carry me.” “Little Velma used to work here,” he said
gently. He wasn’t listening to me. We went on up the stairs. He let me walk.
My shoulder ached. The back of my neck was wet. 2 Two more swing doors closed off the head
of the stairs from whatever was beyond. The big man pushed them open lightly
with his thumbs and we went into the room. It was a long narrow room, not very
clean, not very bright, not very cheerful. In the corner a group of Negroes
chanted and chattered in the cone of light over a crap table. There was a bar
against the right hand wall. The rest of the room was mostly small round tables.
There were a few customers, men and women, all Negroes. The chanting at the crap table stopped
dead and the light over it jerked out. There was a sudden silence as heavy as a
waterlogged boat. Eyes looked at us, chestnut colored eyes, set in faces that ranged
from gray to deep black. Heads turned slowly and the eyes in them glistened and
stared in the dead alien silence of another race. A large, thick-necked Negro was leaning
against the end of the bar with pink garters on his shirtsleeves and pink and white
suspenders crossing his broad back. He had bouncer written all over him. He put
his lifted foot down slowly and turned slowly and stared at us, spreading his
feet gently and moving a broad tongue along his lips. He had a battered face
that looked as if it had been hit by everything but the bucket of a dragline.
It was scarred, flattened, thickened, checkered, and welted. It was a face that
had nothing to fear. Everything had been done to it that anybody could think
of. The short crinkled hair had a touch of
gray. One ear had lost the lobe. The Negro was heavy and wide. He had big
heavy legs and they looked a little bowed, which is unusual in a Negro. He
moved his tongue some more and smiled and moved his body. He came towards us in
a loose fighter’s crouch. The big man waited for him silently. The Negro with the pink garters on his
arms put a massive brown hand against the big man’s chest. Large as it was, the
hand looked like a stud. The big man didn’t move. The bouncer smiled gently. “No white folks, brother. Jes’ fo’ the
colored people. I’se sorry.” The big man moved his small sad gray eyes
and looked around the room. His cheeks flushed a little. “Shine box,” be said
angrily, under his breath. He raised his voice. “Where’s Velma at?” he asked
the bouncer. The bouncer didn’t quite laugh. He studied
the big man’s clothes, his brown shirt and yellow tie, his rough gray coat and
the white golf balls on it. He moved his thick head around delicately and
studied all this from various angles. He looked down at the alligator shoes. He
chuckled lightly. He seemed amused. I felt a little sorry for him. He spoke
softly again. “Velma you says? No Velma heah, brother.
No hooch, no gals, no nothing. Jes’ the scram, white boy, jes’ the scram.” “Velma used to work here,” the big man
said. He spoke almost dreamily, as if he was all by himself, out in the woods,
picking johnny-jump-ups. I got my handkerchief out and wiped the back of my
neck again. The bouncer laughed suddenly. “Shuah,” he
said, throwing a quick look back over his shoulder at his public. “Velma used
to work heah. But Velma don’t work heah no mo’. She done reti’ed. Haw, Haw.” “Kind of take your goddamned mitt off my
shirt,” the big man said. The bouncer frowned. He was not used to
being talked to like that. He took his hand off the shirt and doubled it into a
fist about the size and color of a large eggplant. He had his job, his
reputation for toughness, his public esteem to consider. He considered them for
a second and made a mistake. He swung the fist very hard and short with a
sudden outward jerk of the elbow and hit the big man on the side of the jaw. A
soft sigh went around the room. It was a good punch. The shoulder dropped
and the body swung behind it. There was a lot of weight in that punch and the
man who landed it had had plenty of practice. The big man didn’t move his head
more than an inch. He didn’t try to block the punch. He took it, shook himself
lightly, made a quiet sound in his throat and took hold of the bouncer by the
throat. The bouncer tried to knee him in the
groin. The big man turned him in the air and slid his gaudy shoes apart on the
scaly linoleum that covered the floor. He bent the bouncer backwards and
shifted his right hand to the bouncer’s belt. The belt broke like a piece of
butcher’s string. The big man put his enormous hands flat against the bouncer’s
spine and heaved; He threw him clear across the room, spinning and staggering
and flailing with his arms. Three men jumped out of the way. The bouncer went
over with a table and smacked into the baseboard with a crash that must have
been heard in Denver. His legs twitched. Then he lay still. “Some guys,” the big man said, “has got
wrong ideas about when to get tough.” He turned to me. “Yeah,” he said. “Let’s
you and me nibble one.” We went over to the bar. The customers, by
ones and twos and threes, became quiet shadows that drifted soundless across
the floor, soundless through the doors at the head of the stairs. Soundless as
shadows on grass. They didn’t even let the doors swing. We leaned against the bar. “Whiskey sour,”
the big man said. “Call yours.” “Whiskey sour,” I said. We had whiskey sours. The big man licked his whiskey sour
impassively down the side of the thick squat glass. He stared solemnly at the
barman, a thin, worried-looking Negro in a white coat who moved as if his feet
hurt him. “You know where Velma is?” Velma you says?” the barman whined. “I
ain’t seen her ‘round heah lately. Not right lately, nossuh.” “How long you been here?” “Let’s see,” the barman put his towel down
and wrinkled his forehead and started to count on his fingers. “Bout ten
months, I reckon. ‘Bout a yeah. ‘Bout—” “Make your mind up,” the big man said. The barman goggled and his Adam’s apple
flopped around like a headless chicken. “How long’s this coop been a dinge joint?”
the big man demanded gruffly. “Says which?” The big man made a fist into which his
whiskey sour glass melted almost out of sight. “Five years anyway,” I said. “This fellow
wouldn’t know anything about a white girl named Velma. Nobody here would.” The big man looked at me as if I had just
hatched out. His whiskey sour hadn’t seemed to improve his temper. “Who the hell asked you to stick your face
in?” he asked me. I smiled. I made it a big warm friendly
smile. “I’m the fellow that came in with you. Remember?” He grinned back then, a flat white grin
without meaning. “Whiskey sour,” he told the barman. “Shake them fleas outa
your pants. Service.” The barman scuttled around, rolling the
whites of his eyes. I put my back against the bar and looked at the room. It
was now empty, save for the barman, the big man and myself, and the bouncer
crushed over against the wall. The bouncer was moving. He was moving slowly as
if with great pain and effort. He was crawling softly along the baseboard like
a fly with one wing. He was moving behind the tables, wearily, a man suddenly
old, suddenly disillusioned. I watched him move. The barman put down two more
whiskey sours. I turned to the bar. The big man glanced casually over at the
crawling bouncer and then paid no further attention to him. “There ain’t nothing left of the joint,”
he complained. “They was a little stage and band and cute little rooms where a
guy could have fun. Velma did some warbling. A redhead she was. Cute as lace
pants. We was to of been married when they hung the frame on me.” I took my second whiskey sour. I was
beginning to have enough of the adventure. “What frame?” I asked. “Where you figure I been them eight years
I said about?” “Catching butterflies.” He prodded his chest with a forefinger
like a banana. “In the caboose. Malloy is the name. They call me Moose Malloy,
on account of I’m large. The Great Bend bank job. Forty grand. Solo job. Ain’t
that something?” “You going to spend it now?” He gave me a sharp look. There was a noise
behind us. The bouncer was on his feet again, weaving a little. He had his hand
on the knob of a dark door over behind the crap table. He got the door open,
half fell through. The door clattered shut. A lock clicked. “Where’s that go?” Moose Malloy demanded. The barman’s eyes floated in his head,
focused with difficulty on the door through which the bouncer had stumbled. “Tha—tha’s Mistah Montgomery’s office,
suh. He’s the boss. He’s got his office back there.” “He might know,” the big man said. He
drank his drink at a gulp. “He better not crack wise neither. Two more of the
same.” He crossed the room slowly, light-footed,
without a care in the world. His enormous back hid the door. It was locked. He
shook it and a piece of the panel flew off to one side. He went through and
shut the door behind him. There was silence. I looked at the barman.
The barman looked at me. His eyes became thoughtful. He polished the counter
and sighed and leaned down with his right arm. I reached across the counter and took hold
of the arm. It was thin, brittle. I held it and smiled at him. “What you got down there, bo?” He licked his lips. He leaned on my arm,
and said nothing. Grayness invaded his shining face. “This guy is tough,” I said. “And he’s
liable to go mean. Drinks do that to him. He’s looking for a girl he used to
know. This place used to be a white establishment. Get the idea?” The barman licked his lips “He’s been away a long time,” I said.
“Eight years. He doesn’t seem to realize how long that is, although I’d expect
him to think it a lifetime. He thinks the people here should know where his
girl is. Get the idea?” The barman said slowly: “I thought you was
with him.” “I couldn’t help myself. He asked me a question
down below and then dragged me up. I never saw him before. But I didn’t feel
like being thrown over any houses. What you got down there?” “Got me a sawed-off,” the barman said. “Tsk. That’s illegal,” I whispered.
“Listen, you and I are together. Got anything else?” “Got me a gat,” the barman said. “In a
cigar box. Leggo my arm.” “That’s fine,” I said. “Now move along a
bit. Easy now. Sideways. This isn’t the time to pull the artillery.” “Says you,” the barman sneered, putting
his tired weight against my arm. “Says—” He stopped. His eyes rolled. His head
jerked. There was a dull flat sound at the back of
the place, behind the closed door beyond the crap table. It might have been a
slammed door. I didn’t think it was. The barman didn’t think so either. The barman froze. His mouth drooled. I
listened. No other sound. I started quickly for the end of the counter. I had
listened too long. The door at the back opened with a bang
and Moose Malloy came through it with a smooth heavy lunge and stopped dead,
his feet planted and a wide pale grin on his face. A Colt Army .45 looked like a toy pistol
in his hand. “Don’t nobody try to fancy pants,” he said
cozily. “Freeze the mitts on the bar.” The barman and I put our hands on the bar.
Moose Malloy looked the room over with a
raking glance. His grin was taut, nailed on. He shifted his feet and moved
silently across the room. He looked like a man who could take a bank
single-handed—even in those clothes. He came to the bar. “Rise up, nigger,” he
said softly. The barman put his hands high in the air. The big man stepped to
my back and prowled me over carefully with his left hand. His breath was hot on
my neck. It went away. “Mister Montgomery didn’t know where Velma
was neither,” he said. “He tried to tell me—with this.” His hard hand patted
the gun. I turned slowly and looked at him. “Yeah,” he said. “You’ll know me.
You ain’t forgetting me, pal. Just tell them johns not to get careless is all.”
He waggled the gun. “Well so long, punks. I gotta catch a street car.” He started towards the head of the stairs.
“You didn’t pay for the drinks,” I said. He stopped and looked at me carefully. “Maybe you got something there,” he said,
“but I wouldn’t squeeze it too hard.” He moved on, slipped through the double
doors, and his steps sounded remotely going down the stairs. The barman stooped. I jumped around behind
the counter and jostled him out of the way. A sawed-off shotgun lay under a
towel on a shelf under the bar. Beside it was a cigar box. In the cigar box was
a .38 automatic. I took both of them. The barman pressed back against the tier
of glasses behind the bar. I went back around the end of the bar and
across the room to the gaping door behind the crap table. There was a hallway
behind it, L-shaped, almost lightless. The bouncer lay sprawled on its floor
unconscious, with a knife in his hand. I leaned down and pulled the knife loose
and threw it down a back stairway. The bouncer breathed stertorously and his
hand was limp. I stepped over him and opened a door
marked “Office” in flaked black paint. There was a small scarred desk close to a
partly boarded-up window. The torso of a man was bolt upright in the chair. The
chair had a high back which just reached to the nape of the man’s neck. His
head was folded back over the high back of the chair so that his nose pointed
at the boarded-up window. Just folded, like a handkerchief or a hinge. A drawer of the desk was open at the man’s
right. Inside was a newspaper with a smear of oil in the middle. The gun would
have come from there. It had probably seemed like a good idea at the time, but
the position of Mr. Montgomery’s head proved that the idea had been wrong. There was a telephone on the desk. I laid
the sawed-off shotgun down and went over to lock the door before I called the
police. I felt safer that way and Mr. Montgomery didn’t seem to mind. When the prowl car boys stamped up the
stairs, the bouncer and the barman had disappeared and I had the place to
myself. 3 A man named Nulty got the case, a
lean-jawed sourpuss with long yellow hands which he kept folded over his
kneecaps most of the time he talked to me. He was a detective-lieutenant
attached to the 77th Street Division and we talked in a bare room
with two small desks against opposite walls and room to move between them, if
two people didn’t try it at once. Dirty brown linoleum covered the floor and
the smell of old cigar butts hung in the air. Nulty’s shirt was frayed and his
coat sleeves had been turned in at the cuffs. He looked poor enough to be
honest, but he didn’t look like a man who could deal with Moose Malloy. He lit half of a cigar and threw the match
on the floor, where a lot of company was waiting for it. His voice said
bitterly: “Shines. Another shine killing. That’s
what I rate after eighteen years in this man’s police department. No pix, no
space, not even four lines in the want-ad section.” I didn’t say anything. He picked my card
up and read it again and threw it down. “Philip Marlowe, Private Investigator. One
of those guys, huh? Jesus, you look tough enough. What was you doing all that
time?” “All what time?” “All the time this Malloy was twisting the
neck of this smoke.” “Oh, that happened in another room,” I
said. “Malloy hadn’t promised me he was going to break anybody’s neck.” “Ride me,” Nulty said bitterly. “Okay, go
ahead and ride me. Everybody else does. What’s another one matter? Poor old
Nulty. Let’s go on up and throw a couple of fifties at him. Always good for a
laugh, Nulty is.” “I’m not trying to ride anybody,” I said.
“That’s the way it happened—in another room.” “Oh, sure,” Nulty said through a fan of
rank cigar smoke. “I was down there and saw, didn’t I? Don’t you pack no rod?” “Not on that kind of a job.” “What kind of a job?” “I was looking for a barber who had run
away from his wife. She thought he could be persuaded to come home.” “You mean a dinge?” “No, a Greek.” “Okay,” Nulty said and spit into his
wastebasket. “Okay. You met the big guy how?” “I told you already. I just happened to be
there. He threw a Negro out of the doors of Florian’s and I unwisely poked my
head in to see what was happening. So he took me upstairs.” “You mean he stuck you up?” “No, he didn’t have the gun then. At
least, he didn’t show one. He took the gun away from Montgomery, probably. He
just picked me up. I’m kind of cute sometimes.” “I wouldn’t know,” Nulty said. “You seem
to pick up awful easy.” “All right,” I said. “Why argue? I’ve seen
the guy and you haven’t. He could wear you or me for a watch charm. I didn’t
know he had killed anybody until after he left. I heard a shot, but I got the
idea somebody had got scared and shot at Malloy and then Malloy took the gun
away from whoever did it.” “And why would you get an idea like that?”
Nulty asked almost suavely. “He used a gun to take that bank, didn’t he?” “Consider the kind of clothes he was
wearing. He didn’t go there to kill anybody; not dressed like that. He went
there to look for this girl named Velma that had been his girl before he was
pinched for the bank job. She worked there at Florian’s or whatever place was
there when it was still a white joint. He was pinched there. You’ll get him all
right.” “Sure,” Nulty said. “With that size and
them clothes. Easy.” “He might have another suit,” I said. “And
a car and a hideout and money and friends. But you’ll get him.” Nulty spit in the wastebasket again. “I’ll
get him,” he said, “about the time I get my third set of teeth. How many guys
is put on it? One. Listen, you know why? No space. One time there was five
smokes carved Harlem sunsets on each other down on East Eighty-four. One of
them was cold already. There was blood on the furniture, blood on the walls,
blood even on the ceiling. I go down and outside the house a guy that works on
the Chronicle, a news-hawk, is coming off the porch and getting into his car.
He makes a face at us and says, ‘Aw, hell, shines,’ and gets in his heap and
goes away. Don’t even go in the house.” “Maybe he’s a parole breaker,” I said.
“You’d get some co-operation on that. But pick him up nice or he’ll knock off a
brace of prowlies for you. Then you’ll get space.” “And I wouldn’t have the case no more
neither,” Nulty sneered. The phone rang on his desk. He listened to
it and smiled sorrowfully. He hung up and scribbled on a pad and there was a
faint gleam in his eyes, a light far back in a dusty corridor. “Hell, they got him. That was Records. Got
his prints, mug and everything. Jesus, that’s a little something anyway.” He
read from his pad. “Jesus, this is a man. Six five and one-half, two hundred
sixty-four pounds, without his necktie. Jesus, that’s a boy. Well, the hell
with him. They got him on the air now. Probably at the end of the hot car list.
Ain’t nothing to do but just wait.” He threw his cigar into a spittoon. “Try looking for the girl,” I said.
“Velma. Malloy will be looking for her. That’s what started it all. Try Velma.”
“You try her,” Nulty said. “I ain’t been
in a joy house in twenty years.” I stood up. “Okay,” I said, and started
for the door. “Hey, wait a minute,” Nulty said. “I was
only kidding. You ain’t awful busy, are you?” I rolled a cigarette around in my fingers
and looked at him and waited by the door. “I mean you got time to sort of take a
gander around for this dame. That’s a good idea you had there. You might pick
something up. You can work under glass.” “What’s in it for me?” He spread his yellow hands sadly. His
smile was cunning as a broken mousetrap. “You been in jams with us boys before.
Don’t tell me no. I heard different. Next time it ain’t doing you any harm to
have a pal.” “What good is it going to do me?” “Listen,” Nulty urged. “I’m just a quiet
guy. But any guy in the department can do you a lot of good.” “Is this for love—or are you paying
anything in money?” “No money,” Nulty said, and wrinkled his
sad yellow nose. “But I’m needing a little credit bad. Since the last shake-up,
things is really tough. I wouldn’t forget it, pal. Not ever.” I looked at my watch. “Okay, if I think of
anything, it’s yours. And when you get the mug, I’ll identify it for you. After
lunch.” We shook hands and I went down the mud-colored hall and stairway to the
front of the building and my car. It was two hours since Moose Malloy had
left Florian’s with the Army Colt in his hand. I ate lunch at a drugstore,
bought a pint of bourbon, and drove eastward to Central Avenue and north on
Central again. The hunch I had was as vague as the heat waves that danced above
the sidewalk. Nothing made it my business except
curiosity. But strictly speaking, I hadn’t had any business in a month. Even a
no-charge job was a change. 4 Florian’s was closed up, of course. An
obvious plainclothesman sat in front of it in a car, reading a paper with one
eye. I didn’t know why they bothered. Nobody there knew anything about Moose
Malloy. The bouncer and the barman had not been found. Nobody on the block knew
anything about them, for talking purposes. I drove past slowly and parked around the
corner and sat looking at a Negro hotel which was diagonally across the block
from Florian’s and beyond the nearest intersection. It was called the Hotel
Sans Souci. I got out and walked back across the intersection and went into it.
Two rows of hard empty chairs stared at each other across a strip of tan fiber
carpet. A desk was back in the dimness and behind the desk a baldheaded man had
his eyes shut and his soft brown hands clasped peacefully on the desk in front
of him. He dozed, or appeared to. He wore an Ascot tie that looked as if it had
been tied about the year 1880. The green stone in his stickpin was not quite as
large as an apple. His large loose chin was folded down gently on the tie, and
his folded hands were peaceful and clean, with manicured nails, and gray
half-moons in the purple of the nails. A metal embossed sign at his elbow said:
“This Hotel is Under the Protection of The International Consolidated Agencies,
Ltd. Inc.” When the peaceful brown man opened one eye
at me thoughtfully I pointed at the sign. “H.P.D. man checking up. Any trouble
here?” H.P.D. means Hotel Protective Department,
which is the department of a large agency that looks after check bouncers and
people who move out by the back stairs leaving unpaid bills and second-hand
suitcases full of bricks. “Trouble, brother,” the clerk said in a
high sonorous voice, “is something we is fresh out of.” He lowered his voice
four or five notches and added “What was the name again?” “Marlowe Philip Marlowe—” “A nice name, brother. Clean and cheerful.
You’re looking right well today.” He lowered his voice again. “But you ain’t no
H.P.D. man. Ain’t seen one in years.” He unrolled his hands and pointed
languidly at the sign. “I acquired that second-hand, brother, just for the
effect.” “Okay,” I said. I leaned on the counter
and started to spin a half dollar on the bare, scarred wood of the counter. “Heard what happened over at Florian’s
this morning?” “Brother, I forgit.” Both his eyes were
open now and he was watching the blur of light made by the spinning coin. “The boss got bumped off,” I said. “Man
named Montgomery. Somebody broke his neck.” “May the Lawd receive his soul, brother.”
Down went the voice again. “Cop?” “Private—on a confidential lay. And I know
a man who can keep things confidential when I see one.” He studied me, then closed his eyes and thought.
He reopened them cautiously and stared at the spinning coin. He couldn’t resist
looking at it. “Who done it?” he asked softly. “Who fixed
Sam?” “A tough guy out of the jailhouse got sore
because it wasn’t a white joint. It used to be, it seems. Maybe you remember?” He said nothing. The coin fell over with a
light ringing whirr and lay still. “Call your play,” I said. “I’ll read you a
chapter of the Bible or buy you a drink. Say which.” “Brother, I kind of like to read my Bible
in the seclusion of my family.” His eyes were bright, toad like, steady. “Maybe you’ve just had lunch,” I said. “Lunch,” he said, “is something a man of
my shape and disposition aims to do without.” Down went the voice. “Come ‘round
this here side of the desk.” I went around and drew the flat pint of
bonded bourbon out of my pocket and put it on the shelf. I went back to the
front of the desk. He bent over and examined it. He looked satisfied. “Brother, this don’t buy you nothing at
all,” he said. “But I is pleased to take a light snifter in your company.” He opened the bottle, put two small
glasses on the desk and quietly poured each full to the brim. He lifted one,
sniffed it carefully, and poured it down his throat with his little finger
lifted. He tasted it, thought about it, nodded and
said: “This come out of the correct bottle, brother. In what manner can I be of
service to you? There ain’t a crack in the sidewalk ‘round here I don’t know by
its first name. Yessuh, this liquor has been keepin’ the right company.” He
refilled his glass. I told him what had happened at Florian’s
and why. He started at me solemnly and shook his bald head. “A nice quiet place Sam run too,” he said.
“Ain’t nobody been knifed there in a month.” “When Florian’s was a white joint some six
or eight years ago or less, what was the name of it?” “Electric signs come kind of high,
brother.” I nodded. “I thought it might have had the
same name. Malloy would probably have said something if the name had been
changed. But who ran it?” “I’m a mite surprised at you, brother. The
name of that pore sinner was Florian. Mike Florian—” “And what happened to Mike Florian?” The Negro spread his gentle brown hands.
His voice was sonorous and sad. “Daid, brother. Gathered to the Lawd. Nineteen
hundred and thirty-four, maybe thirty-five. I ain’t precise on that. A wasted
life, brother, and a case of pickled kidneys, I heard say. The ungodly man
drops like a polled steer, brother, but mercy waits for him up yonder.” His
voice went down to the business level. “Damm if I know why.” “Who did he leave behind him? Pour another
drink.” He corked the bottle firmly and pushed it
across the counter. “Two is all, brother—before sundown. I thank you. Your
method of approach is soothin’ to a man’s dignity . . . Left a widow. Name of
Jessie.” “What happened to her?” “The pursuit of knowledge, brother, is the
askin’ of many questions. I ain’t heard. Try the phone book.” There was a booth in the dark corner of
the lobby. I went over and shut the door far enough to put the light on. I
looked up the name in the chained and battered book. No Florian in it at all. I
went back to the desk. “No soap,” I said. The Negro bent regretfully and heaved a
city directory up on top of the desk and pushed it towards me. He closed his
eyes. He was getting bored. There was a Jessie Florian, Widow, in the book. She
lived at 1644 West 54th Place. I wondered what I had been using for
brains all my life. I wrote the address down on a piece of
paper and pushed the directory back across the desk. The Negro put it back
where he had found it, shook hands with me, then folded his hands on the desk
exactly where they had been when I came in. His eyes drooped slowly and he
appeared to fall asleep. The incident for him was over. Halfway to
the door I shot a glance back at him. His eyes were closed and he breathed
softly and regularly, blowing a little with his lips at the end of each breath.
His bald head shone. I went out of the Hotel Sans Souci and
crossed the street to my car. It looked too easy. It looked much too easy. 5 1644 West 54th Place was a
dried-out brown house with a dried-out brown lawn in front of it. There was a
large bare patch around a tough-looking palm tree. On the porch stood one
lonely wooden rocker, and the afternoon breeze made the unpruned shoots of last
year’s poinsettias tap-tap against the cracked stucco wall. A line of stiff
yellowish half-washed clothes jittered on a rusty wire in the side yard. I drove on a quarter block, parked my car
across the street and walked back. The bell didn’t work so I rapped on the
wooden margin of the screen door. Slow steps shuffled and the door opened and I
was looking into dimness at a blowsy woman who was blowing her nose as she
opened the door. Her face was gray and puffy. She had weedy hair of that vague
color which is neither brown nor blond, that hasn’t enough life in it to be
ginger, and isn’t clean enough to be gray. Her body was thick in a shapeless
outing flannel bathrobe many moons past color and design. It was just something
around her body. Her toes were large and obvious in a pair of man’s slippers of
scuffed brown leather. I said: “Mrs. Florian? Mrs. Jessie
Florian?” “Uh-huh,” the voice dragged itself out of
her throat like a sick man getting out of bed. “You are the Mrs. Florian whose husband
once ran a place of entertainment on Central Avenue? Mike Florian?” She thumbed a wick of hair past her large
ear. Her eyes glittered with surprise. Her heavy clogged voice said: “Wha-what? My goodness sakes alive. Mike’s
been gone these five years. Who did you say you was?” The screen door was still shut and hooked.
“I’m a detective,” I said. “I’d like a
little information.” She stared at me a long dreary minute.
Then with effort she unhooked the door and turned away from it. “Come on in then. I ain’t had time to get
cleaned up yet,” she whined. “Cops, huh?” I stepped through the door and hooked the
screen again. A large handsome cabinet radio droned to the left of the door in
the corner of the room. It was the only decent piece of furniture the place
had. It looked brand new. Everything was junk—dirty overstuffed pieces, a
wooden rocker that matched the one on the porch, a square arch into a dining
room with a stained table, finger marks all over the swing door to the kitchen
beyond. A couple of frayed lamps with once gaudy shades that were now as gay as
superannuated streetwalkers. The woman sat down in the rocker and
flopped her slippers and looked at me. I looked at the radio and sat down at
the end of a davenport. She saw me looking at it. A bogus heartiness, as weak
as a Chinaman’s tea, moved into her face and voice. “All the comp’ny I got,”
she said. Then she tittered. “Mike ain’t done nothing new, has he? I don’t get
cops calling on me much.” Her titter contained a loose alcoholic
overtone. I leaned back against something hard, felt for it and brought up an
empty quart gin bottle. The woman tittered again. “A joke that was,” she said. “But I hope
to Christ they’s enough cheap blondes where he is. He never got enough of them
here.” “I was thinking more about a redhead,” I
said. “I guess he could use a few of them too.”
Her eyes, it seemed to me, were not so vague now. “I don’t call to mind. Any
special redhead?” “Yes. A girl named Velma. I don’t know
what last name she used except that it wouldn’t be her real one. I’m trying to
trace her for her folks. Your place on Central is a colored place now, although
they haven’t changed the name, and of course the people there never heard of
her. So I thought of you.” “Her folks taken their time getting around
to it—looking for her,” the woman said thoughtfully. “There’s a little money involved. Not
much. I guess they have to get her in order to touch it. Money sharpens the
memory.” “So does liquor,” the woman said. “Kind of
hot today, ain’t it? You said you was a copper though.” Cunning eyes, steady
attentive face. The feet in the man’s slippers didn’t move. I held up the dead soldier and shook it.
Then I threw it to one side and reached back on my hip for the pint of bond bourbon
the Negro hotel clerk and I had barely tapped. I held it out on my knee. The
woman’s eyes became fixed in an incredulous stare. Then suspicion climbed all
over her face, like a kitten, but not so playfully. “You ain’t no copper,” she said softly. “No
copper ever bought a drink of that stuff. What’s the gag, mister?” She blew her nose again, on one of the
dirtiest handkerchiefs I ever saw. Her eyes stayed on the bottle. Suspicion
fought with thirst, and thirst was winning. It always does. “This Velma was an entertainer, a singer.
You wouldn’t know her? I don’t suppose you went there much.” Seaweed colored eyes stayed on the bottle.
A coated tongue coiled on her lips. “Man, that’s liquor,” she sighed. “I don’t
give a damn who you are. Just hold it careful, mister. This ain’t no time to
drop anything.” She got up and waddled out of the room and
come back with two thick smeared glasses. “No fixin’s. Just what you brought is
all,” she said. I poured her a slug that would have made
me float over a wall. She reached for it hungrily and put it down her throat
like an aspirin tablet and looked at the bottle. I poured her another and a
smaller one for me. She took it over to her rocker. Her eyes had turned two
shades browner already. “Man, this stuff dies painless with me,”
she said and sat down. “It never knows what hit it. What was we talkin’ about?”
“A red-haired girl named Velma who used to
work in your place on Central Avenue.” “Yeah.” She used her second drink. I went
over and stood the bottle on an end beside her. She reached for it. “Yeah. Who
you say you was?” I took out a card and gave it to her. She
read it with her tongue and lips, dropped it on a table beside her and set her
empty glass on it. “Oh, a private guy. You ain’t said that,
mister.” She waggled a finger at me with gay reproach. “But your liquor says
you’re an all right guy at that. Here’s to crime.” She poured a third drink for
herself and drank it down. I sat down and rolled a cigarette around
in my fingers and waited. She either knew something or she didn’t. If the knew
something, she either would tell me or she wouldn’t. It was that simple. “Cute little redhead,” she said slowly and
thickly. “Yeah, I remember her. Song and dance. Nice legs and generous with
‘em. She went off somewheres. How would I know what them tramps do?” “Well, I didn’t really think you would
know,” I said. “But it was natural to come and ask you, Mrs. Florian. Help
yourself to the whiskey—I could run out for more when we need it.” “You ain’t drinkin’,” she said suddenly. I put my hand around my glass and
swallowed what was in it slowly enough to make it seem more than it was. “Where’s her folks at?” she asked
suddenly. “What does that matter?” “Okay,” she sneered. “All cops is the
same. Okay, handsome. A guy that buys me a drink is a pal.” She reached for the
bottle and set up Number 4. “I shouldn’t ought to bother with you. But when I
like a guy, the ceiling’s the limit.” She simpered. She was as cute as a
washtub. “Hold onto your hair and don’t step on no snakes,” she said. “I got me
an idea.” She got up out of the rocker, sneezed,
almost lost the bathrobe, slapped it back against her stomach and stared at me
coldly. “No peekin’,” she said, and went out of
the room again, hitting the doorframe with her shoulder. I heard her fumbling steps going into the
back part of the house. The poinsettia shoots tap-tapped dully
against the front wall. The clothesline creaked vaguely at the side of the
house. The ice cream peddler went by ringing his bell. The big new handsome
radio in the corner whispered of dancing and love with a deep soft throbbing
note like the catch in a torch singer’s voice. Then from the back of the house there were
various types of crashing sounds. A chair seemed to fall over backwards, a
bureau drawer was pulled out too far and crashed to the floor, there was
fumbling and thudding and muttered thick language. Then the slow click of a
lock and the squeak of a trunk top going up. More fumbling and banging. A tray
landed on the floor. I got up from the davenport and sneaked into the dining
room and from that into a short hail. I looked around the edge of an open door.
She was in there swaying in front of the
trunk, making grabs at what was in it, and then throwing her hair back over her
forehead with anger. She was drunker than she thought. She leaned down and
steadied herself on the trunk and coughed and sighed. Then she went down on her
thick knees and plunged both hands into the trunk and groped. They came up holding something unsteadily.
A thick package tied with faded pink tape. Slowly, clumsily, she undid the
tape. She slipped an envelope out of the package and leaned down again to
thrust the envelope out of sight into the right-hand side of the trunk. She
retied the tape with fumbling fingers. I sneaked back the way I had come and sat
down on the davenport. Breathing stertorous noises, the woman came back into
the living room and stood swaying in the doorway with the tape-tied package. She grinned at me triumphantly, tossed the
package and it fell somewhere near my feet. She waddled back to the rocker and
sat down and reached for the whiskey. I picked the package off the floor and
untied the faded pink tape. “Look ‘em over,” the woman grunted.
“Photos. Newspaper stills. Not that them tramps ever got in no newspapers
except by way of the police blotter. People from the joint they are. They’re
all the bastard left me—them and his old clothes.” I leafed through the bunch of shiny
photographs of men and women in professional poses. The men had sharp foxy
faces and racetrack clothes or eccentric clown-like makeup. Hoofers and comics
from the filling station circuit. Not many of them would ever get west of Main
Street. You would find them in tanktown vaudeville acts, cleaned up, or down in
the cheap burlesque houses, as dirty as the law allowed and once in a while
just enough dirtier for a raid and a noisy police court trial, and then back in
their shows again, grinning, sadistically filthy and as rank as the smell of
stale sweat. The women had good legs and displayed their inside curves more
than Will Hays would have liked. But their faces were as threadbare as a
bookkeeper’s office coat. Blondes, brunettes, large cow-like eyes with a
peasant dullness in them. Small sharp eyes with urchin greed in them. One or
two of the faces obviously vicious. One or two of them might have had red hair.
You couldn’t tell from the photographs. I looked them over casually, without
interest and tied the tape again. “I wouldn’t know any of these,” I said. “Why
am I looking at them?” She leered over the bottle her right hand
was grappling with unsteadily. “Ain’t you looking for Velma?” “Is she one of these?” Thick cunning played on her face, had no
fun there and went somewhere else. “Ain’t you got a photo of her—from her
folks?” That troubled her. Every girl has a photo
somewhere, if it’s only in short dresses with a bow in her hair. I should have
had it. “I ain’t beginnin’ to like you again,” the
woman said almost quietly. I stood up with my glass and went over and
put it down beside hers on the end table. “Pour me a drink before you kill the
bottle.” She reached for the glass and I turned and
walked swiftly through the square arch into the dining room, into the hall,
into the cluttered bedroom with the open trunk and the spilled tray. A voice
shouted behind me. I plunged ahead down into the right side of the trunk, felt
an envelope and brought it up swiftly. She was out of her chair when I got back
to the living room, but she had only taken two or three steps. Her eyes had a
peculiar glassiness. A murderous glassiness. “Sit down,” I snarled at her deliberately.
“You’re not dealing with a simple-minded lug like Moose Malloy this time.” It was a shot more or less in the dark,
and it didn’t hit anything. She blinked twice and tried to lift her nose with
her upper lip. Some dirty teeth showed in a rabbit leer. “Moose? The Moose? What about him?” she
gulped. “He’s loose,” I said. “Out of jail. He’s
wandering, with a forty-five gun in his hand. He killed a nigger over on
Central this morning because he wouldn’t tell him where Velma was. Now he’s
looking for the fink that turned him up eight years ago.” A white look smeared the woman’s face. She
pushed the bottle against her lips and gurgled at it. Some of the whiskey ran
down her chin. “And the cops are looking for him,” she
said and laughed. “Cops. Yah!” A lovely old woman. I liked being with
her. I liked getting her drunk for my own sordid purposes. I was a swell guy. I
enjoyed being me. You find almost anything under your hand in my business, but
I was beginning to be a little sick at my stomach. I opened the envelope my hand was
clutching and drew out a glazed still. It was like the others but it was
different, much nicer. The girl wore a Pierrot costume from the waist up. Under
the white conical hat with a black pompon on the top, her fluffed out hair had
a dark tinge that might have been red. The face was in profile but the visible
eye seemed to have gaiety in it. I wouldn’t say the face was lovely and
unspoiled. I’m not that good at faces. But it was pretty. People had been nice
to that face, or nice enough for their circle. Yet it was a very ordinary face
and its prettiness was strictly assembly line. You would see a dozen faces like
it on a city block in the noon hour. Below the waist the photo was mostly legs
and very nice legs at that. It was signed across the lower right hand corner:
“Always yours—Velma Valento.” I held it up in front of the Florian
woman, out of her reach. She lunged but came short. “Why hide it?” I asked. She made no sound except thick breathing.
I slipped the photo back into the envelope and the envelope into my pocket. “Why hide it?” I asked again. “What makes
it different from the others? Where is she?” “She’s dead,” the woman said. “She was a
good kid, but she’s dead, copper. Beat it.” The tawny mangled brows worked up and
down. Her hand opened and the whiskey bottle slid to the carpet and began to
gurgle. I bent to pick it up. She tried to kick me in the face. I stepped away
from her. “And that still doesn’t say why you hid
it,” I told her. “When did she die? How?” “I am a poor sick old woman,” she grunted.
“Get away from me, you son of a bitch.” I stood there looking at her, not saying
anything, not thinking of anything particular to say. I stepped over to her
side after a moment and put the flat bottle, now almost empty, on the table at
her side. She was staring down at the carpet. The
radio droned pleasantly in the corner. A car went by outside. A fly buzzed in a
window. After a long time she moved one lip over the other and spoke to the
floor, a meaningless jumble of words from which nothing emerged. Then she
laughed and threw her head back and drooled. Then her right hand reached for
the bottle and it rattled against her teeth as she drained it. When it was
empty she held it up and shook it and threw it at me. It went off in the corner
somewhere, skidding along the carpet and bringing up with a thud against the
baseboard. She leered at me once more, then her eyes
closed and she began to snore. It might have been an act, but I didn’t
care. Suddenly I had enough of the scene, too much of it, far too much of it. I picked my hat off the davenport and went
over to the door and opened it and went out past the screen. The radio still
droned in the corner and the woman still snored gently in her chair. I threw a
quick look back at her before I closed the door, then shut it, opened it again
silently and looked again. Her eyes were still shut but something
gleamed below the lids. I went down the steps, along the cracked walk to the
street. In the next house a window curtain was
drawn aside and a narrow intent face was close to the glass, peering, an old
woman’s face with white hair and a sharp nose. Old Nosey checking up on the neighbors.
There’s always at least one like her to the block. I waved a hand at her. The
curtain fell. I went back to my car and got into it and
drove back to the 77th Street Division, and climbed upstairs to
Nulty’s smelly little cubbyhole of an office on the second floor. 6 Nulty didn’t seem to have moved. He sat in
his chair in the same attitude of sour patience. But there were two more cigar
stubs in his ashtray and the floor was a little thicker in burnt matches. I sat down at the vacant desk and Nulty
turned over a photo that was lying face down on his desk and handed it to me.
It was a police mug, front and profile, with a fingerprint classification
underneath. It was Malloy all right, taken in a strong light, and looking as if
he had no more eyebrows than a french roll. “That’s the boy.” I passed it back. “We got a wire from Oregon State pen on
him,” Nulty said. “All time served except his copper. Things look better. We
got him cornered. A prowl car was talking to a conductor the end of the Seventh
Street line. The conductor mentioned a guy that size, looking like that. He got
off Third and Alexandria. What he’ll do is break into some big house where the
folks are away. Lots of ‘em there, old-fashioned places too far downtown now
and hard to rent. He’ll break in one and we got him bottled. What you been
doing?” “Was he wearing a fancy hat and white golf
balls on his jacket?” Nulty frowned and twisted his hands on his
kneecaps. “No, a blue suit. Maybe brown.” “Sure it wasn’t a sarong?” “Huh? Oh yeah, funny. Remind me to laugh
on my day off.” I said: “That wasn’t the Moose. He
wouldn’t ride a streetcar. He had money. Look at the clothes he was wearing. He
couldn’t wear stock sizes. They must have been made to order.” “Okay, ride me,” Nulty scowled. “What you
been doing?” “What you ought to have done. This place
called Florian’s was under the same name when it was a white night trap. I
talked to a Negro hotelman who knows the neighborhood. The sign was expensive
so the shines just went on using it when they took over. The man’s name was
Mike Florian. He’s dead some years, but his widow is still around. She lives at
1644 West 54th Place. Her name is Jessie Florian. She’s not in the
phone book, but she is in the city directory.” “Well, what do I do—date her up?” Nulty
asked. “I did it for you. I took in a pint of
bourbon with me. She’s a charming middle-aged lady with a face like a bucket of
mud and if she has washed her hair since Coolidge’s second term, I’ll eat my
spare tire, rim and all.” “Skip the wisecracks,” Nulty said. “I asked Mrs. Florian about Velma. You
remember, Mr. Nulty, the redhead named Velma that Moose Malloy was looking for?
I’m not tiring you, am I, Mr. Nulty?” “What you sore about?” “You wouldn’t understand. Mrs. Florian
said she didn’t remember Velma. Her home is very shabby except for a new radio,
worth seventy or eighty dollars.” “You ain’t told me why that’s something I
should start screaming about.” “Mrs. Florian—Jessie to me—said her
husband left her nothing but his old clothes and a bunch of stills of the gang
who worked at his joint from time to time. I plied her with liquor and she is a
girl who will take a drink if she has to knock you down to get the bottle.
After the third or fourth she went into her modest bedroom and threw things
around and dug the bunch of stills out of the bottom of an old trunk. But I was
watching her without her knowing it and she slipped one out of the packet and
hid it. So after a while I snuck in there and grabbed it.” I reached into my pocket and laid the
Pierrot girl on his desk. He lifted it and stared at it and his lips quirked at
the corners. “Cute,” he said. “Cute enough, I could
have used a piece of that once. Haw, haw. Velma Valento, huh? What happened to
this doll?” “Mrs. Florian says she died—but that
hardly explains why she hid the photo.” “It don’t do at that. Why did she hide
it?” “She wouldn’t tell me. In the end, after I
told her about the Moose being out, she seemed to take a dislike to me. That
seems impossible, doesn’t it?” “Go on,” Nulty said. “That’s all. I’ve told you the facts and
given you the exhibit. If you can’t get somewhere on this set-up, nothing I
could say would help.” “Where would I get? It’s still a shine
killing. Wait’ll we get the Moose. Hell, it’s eight years since he saw the girl
unless she visited him in the pen.” “All right,” I said. “But don’t forget
he’s looking for her and he’s a man who would bear down. By the way, he was in
for a bank job. That means a reward. Who got it?” “I don’t know,” Nulty said. “Maybe I could
find out. Why?” “Somebody turned him up. Maybe he knows
who. That would be another job he would give time to.” I stood up. “Well,
goodbye and good luck.” “You walking out on me?” I went over to the door. “I have to go
home and take a bath and gargle my throat and get my nails manicured.” “You ain’t sick, are you?” “Just dirty,” I said. “Very, very dirty.” “Well, what’s your hurry? Sit down a
minute.” He leaned back and hooked his thumbs in his vest, which made him look
a little more like a cop, but didn’t make him look any more magnetic. “No hurry,” I said. “No hurry at all.
There’s nothing more I can do. Apparently this Velma is dead, if Mrs. Florian
is telling the truth—and I don’t at the moment know of any reason why she
should lie about it. That was all I was interested in.” “Yeah,” Nulty said suspiciously—from force
of habit. “And you have Moose Malloy all sewed up
anyway, and that’s that. So I’ll just run on home now and go about the business
of trying to earn a living.” “We might miss out on the Moose,” Nulty
said. “Guys get away once in a while. Even big guys.” His eyes were suspicious
also, insofar as they contained any expression at all. “How much she slip you?”
“What?” “How much this old lady slip you to lay
off?” “Lay off what?” “Whatever it is you’re layin’ off from now
on.” He moved his thumbs from his armholes and placed them together in front of
his vest and pushed them against each other. He smiled. “Oh, for Christ’s sake,” I said, and went out
of the office, leaving his mouth open. When I was about a yard from the door, I
went back and opened it again quietly and looked in. He was sitting in the same
position pushing his thumbs at each other. But he wasn’t smiling any more. He
looked worried. His mouth was still open. He didn’t move or look up. I didn’t know
whether he heard me or not. I shut the door again and went away. 7 They had Rembrandt on the calendar that
year, a rather smeary self-portrait due to imperfectly registered color plate.
It showed him holding a smeared palette with a dirty thumb and wearing a
tam-o’-shanter which wasn’t any too clean either. His other hand held a brush
poised in the air, as if he might be going to do a little work after a while,
if somebody made a down payment. His face was aging, saggy, full of the disgust
of life and the thickening effects of liquor. But it had a hard cheerfulness
that I liked, and the eyes were as bright as drops of dew. I was looking at him across my office desk
at about four-thirty when the phone rang and I heard a cool, supercilious voice
that sounded as if it thought it was pretty good. It said drawlingly, after I
had answered: “You are Philip Marlowe, a private
detective?” “Check.” “Oh—you mean, yes. You have been
recommended to me as a man who can be trusted to keep his mouth shut. I should
like you to come to my house at seven o’clock this evening. We can discuss a
matter. My name is Lindsay Marriott and I live at 4212 Cabrillo Street,
Montemar Vista. Do you know where that is?” “I know where Montemar Vista is, Mr.
Marriott.” “Yes. Well, Cabrillo Street is rather hard
to find. The streets down here are all laid out in a pattern of interesting but
intricate curves. I should suggest that you walk up the steps from the sidewalk
cafe. If you do that, Cabrillo is the third street you come to and my house is
the only one on the block. At seven then?” “What is the nature of the employment, Mr.
Marriott?” “I should prefer not to discuss that over
the phone.” “Can’t you give me some idea? Montemar
Vista is quite a distance.” “I shall be glad to pay your expenses, if
we don’t agree. Are you particular about the nature of the employment?” “Not as long as it’s legitimate.” The voice grew icicles. “I should not have
called you, if it were not.” A Harvard boy. Nice use of the subjunctive
mood. The end of my foot itched, but my bank account was still trying to crawl
under a duck. I put honey into my voice and said: “Many thanks for calling me,
Mr. Marriott. I’ll be there.” He hung up and that was that. I thought
Mr. Rembrandt had a faint sneer on his face. I got the office bottle out of the
deep drawer of the desk and took a short drink. That took the sneer out of Mr.
Rembrandt in a hurry. A wedge of sunlight slipped over the edge
of the desk and fell noiselessly to the carpet. Traffic lights bong-bonged
outside on the boulevard, interurban cars pounded by, a typewriter clacked
monotonously in the lawyer’s office beyond the party wall. I had filled and lit
a pipe when the telephone rang again. It was Nulty this time. His voice sounded
full of baked potato. “Well, I guess I ain’t quite bright at that,” he said,
when he knew who he was talking to. “I miss one. Malloy went to see that
Florian dame.” I held the phone tight enough to crack it.
My upper lip suddenly felt a little cold. “Go on. I thought you had him
cornered.” “Was some other guy. Malloy ain’t around
there at all. We get a call from some old window-peeker on West Fifty-four. Two
guys was to see the Florian dame. Number one parked the other side of the
street and acted kind of cagey. Looked the dump over good before he went in.
Was in about an hour. Six feet, dark hair, medium heavy built. Come out quiet.”
“He had liquor on his breath too,” I said.
“Oh, sure. That was you, wasn’t it? Well,
Number Two was the Moose. Guy in loud clothes as big as a house. He come in a
car too but the old lady don’t get the license, can’t read the number that far
off. This was about a hour after you was there, she says. He goes in fast and
is in about five minutes only. Just before he gets back in his car he takes a
big gat out and spins the chamber. I guess that’s what the old lady saw he
done. That’s why she calls up. She don’t hear no shots though, inside the
house.” “That must have been a big
disappointment,” I said. “Yeah. A nifty. Remind me to laugh on my
day off. The old lady misses one too. The prowl boys go down there and don’t
get no answer on the door, so they walk in, the front door not being locked.
Nobody’s dead on the floor. Nobody’s home. The Florian dame has skipped out. So
they stop by next door and tell the old lady and she’s sore as a boil on
account of she didn’t see the Florian dame go out. So they report back and go
on about the job. So about an hour, maybe hour and a half after that, the old
lady phones in again and says Mrs. Florian is home again. So they give the call
to me and I ask her what makes that important and she hangs up in my face.” Nulty paused to collect a little breath
and wait for my comments. I didn’t have any. After a moment he went on
grumbling. “What you make of it?” “Nothing much. The Moose would be likely
to go by there, of course. He must have known Mrs. Florian pretty well.
Naturally he wouldn’t stick around very long. He would be afraid the law might
be wise to Mrs. Florian.” “What I figure,” Nulty said calmly, “Maybe
I should go over and see her—kind of find out where she went to.” “That’s a good idea,” I said. “If you can
get somebody to lift you out of your chair.” “Huh? Oh, another nifty. It don’t make a
lot of difference any more now though. I guess I won’t bother.” “All right,” I said. “Let’s have it
whatever it is.” He chuckled. “We got Malloy all lined up.
We really got him this time. We make him at Girard, headed north in a rented
hack. He gassed up there and the service station kid recognized him from the
description we broadcast a while back. He said everything jibed except Malloy
had changed to a dark suit. We got county and state law on it. If he goes on
north we get him at the Ventura line, and if he slides over to the Ridge Route,
he has to stop at Castaic for his check ticket. If he don’t stop, they phone
ahead and block the road. We don’t want no cops shot up, if we can help it.
That sound good?” “It sounds all right,” I said. “If it
really is Malloy, and if he does exactly what you expect him to do.” Nulty cleared his throat carefully. “Yeah.
What you doing on it—just in case?” “Nothing. Why should I be doing anything
on it?” “You got along pretty good with that
Florian dame. Maybe she would have some more ideas.” “All you need to find out is a full
bottle,” I said. “You handled her real nice. Maybe you
ought to kind of spend a little more time on her.” “I thought this was a police job.” “Oh sure. Was your idea about the girl
though.” “That seems to be out—unless the Florian
woman is lying about it.” “Dames lie about anything—just for
practice,” Nulty said grimly. “You ain’t real busy, huh?” “I’ve got a job to do. It came in since I
saw you. A job where I get paid. I’m sorry.” “Walking out, huh?” “I wouldn’t put it that way. I just have
to work to earn a living.” “Okay, pal. If that’s the way you feel
about it, Okay.” “I don’t feel any way about it,” I almost
yelled. “I just don’t have time to stooge for you or any other cop.” “Okay, get sore,” Nulty said, and hung up.
I held the dead phone and snarled into it:
“Seventeen hundred and fifty cops in this town and they want me to do their leg
work for them.” I dropped the phone into its cradle and
took another drink from the office bottle. After a while I went down to the lobby of
the building to buy an evening paper. Nulty was right in one thing at least.
The Montgomery killing hadn’t even made the want-ad section so far. I left the office again in time for an
early dinner. 8 I got down to Montemar Vista as the light
began to fade, but there was still a fine sparkle on the water and the surf was
breaking far out in long smooth curves. A group of pelicans was flying bomber
formation just under the creaming lip of the waves. A lonely yacht was tacking
in toward the yacht harbor at Bay City. Beyond it the huge emptiness of the
Pacific was purple-gray. Montemar Vista was a few dozen houses of
various sizes and shapes hanging by their teeth and eyebrows to a spur of mountain
and looking as if a good sneeze would drop them down among the box lunches on
the beach. Above the beach the highway ran under a
wide concrete arch which was in fact a pedestrian bridge. From the inner end of
this a flight of concrete steps with a thick galvanized handrail on one side
ran straight as a ruler up the side of the mountain. Beyond the arch the
sidewalk cafe my client had spoken of, was bright and cheerful inside, but the
iron-legged tile-topped tables outside under the striped awning were empty save
for a single dark woman in slacks who smoked and stared moodily out to sea,
with a bottle of beer in front of her. A fox terrier was using one of the iron
chairs for a lamppost. She chided the dog absently as I drove past and gave the
sidewalk cafe my business to the extent of using its parking space. I walked back through the arch and started
up the steps. It was a nice walk if you liked grunting. There were two hundred
and eighty steps up to Cabrillo Street. They were drifted over with windblown
sand and the handrail was as cold and wet as a toad’s belly. When I reached the top the sparkle had
gone from the water and a seagull with a broken trailing leg was twisting
against the off-sea breeze. I sat down on the damp cold top step and shook the
sand out of my shoes and waited for my pulse to come down into the low
hundreds. When I was breathing more or less normally again I shook my shirt
loose from my back and went along to the lighted house which was the only one
within yelling distance of the steps. It was a nice little house with a
salt-tarnished spiral of staircase going up to the front door and an imitation
coach lamp for a porch light. The garage was underneath and to one side. Its
door was lifted up and rolled back and the light of the porch lamp shone
obliquely on a huge black battleship of a car with chromium trimmings, a coyote
tail tied to the Winged Victory on the radiator cap and engraved initials where
the emblem should be. The car had a right-hand drive and looked as if had cost
more than the house. I went up the spiral steps, looked for a
bell, and used a knocker in the shape of a tiger’s head. Its clatter was
swallowed in the early evening fog. I heard no steps in the house. My damp
shirt felt like an icepack on my back. The door opened silently, and I was
looking at a tall blond man in a white flannel suit with a violet satin scarf
around his neck. There was a cornflower in the lapel of his
white coat and his pale blue eyes looked faded out by comparison. The violet
scarf was loose enough to show that he wore no tie and that he had a thick,
soft brown neck, like the neck of a strong woman. His features were a little on
the heavy side, but handsome, he had an inch more of height than I had, which
made him six feet one. His blond hair was arranged, by art or nature, in three
precise blond ledges which reminded me of steps, so that I didn’t like them. I
wouldn’t have liked them anyway. Apart from all this he had the general
appearance of a lad who would wear a white flannel suit with a violet scarf
around his neck and a cornflower in his lapel. He cleared his throat lightly and looked
past my shoulder at the darkening sea. His cool supercilious voice said: “Yes?”
“Seven o’clock,” I said. “On the dot.” “Oh yes. Let me see, your name is—” he
paused, and frowned in the effort of memory. The effect was as phony as the
pedigree of a used car. I let him work at it for a minute, then I said: “Philip Marlowe. The same as it was this
afternoon.” He gave me a quick darting frown, as if perhaps
something ought to be done about it. Then he stepped back and said coldly: “Ah yes. Quite so. Come in, Marlowe. My
house boy is away this evening.” He opened the door wide with a fingertip,
as though opening the door himself dirtied him a little. I went in past him and smelled perfume. He
closed the door. The entrance put us on a low balcony with a metal railing that
ran around three sides of a big studio living room. The fourth side contained a
big fireplace and two doors. A fire was crackling in the fireplace. The balcony
was lined with bookshelves and there were pieces of glazed metallic looking
bits of sculpture on pedestals. We went down three steps to the main part
of the living room. The carpet almost tickled my ankles. There was a concert
grand piano, closed down. On one corner of it stood a tall silver vase on a
strip of peach-colored velvet, and a single yellow rose in the vase. There was
plenty of nice soft furniture, a great many floor cushions, some with golden
tassels and some just naked. It was a nice room, if you didn’t get rough. There
was a wide damask covered divan in a shadowy corner, like a casting couch. It
was the kind of room where people sit with their feet in their laps and sip
absinthe through lumps of sugar and talk with high affected voices and
sometimes just squeak. It was a room where anything could happen except work. Mr. Lindsay Marriott arranged himself in
the curve of the grand piano, leaned over to sniff at the yellow rose, then
opened a french enamel cigarette case and lit a long brown cigarette with a
gold tip. I sat down on a pink chair and hoped I wouldn’t leave a mark on it. I
lit a Camel, blew smoke through my nose and looked at a piece of shiny metal on
a stand. It showed a full, smooth curve with a shallow fold in it and two
protuberances on the curve. I stared at it, Marriott saw me staring at it. “An interesting bit,” he said negligently.
“I picked it up just the other day. Asta Dial’s Spirit of Dawn.” “I thought it was Klopstein’s Two Warts on
a Fanny,” I said. Mr. Lindsay Marriott’s face looked as if
he had swallowed a bee. He smoothed it out with an effort. “You have a somewhat peculiar sense of
humor,” he said. “Not peculiar,” I said. “Just
uninhibited.” “Yes,” he said very coldly. “Yes—of course.
I’ve no doubt… Well, what I wished to see you about is, as a matter of fact, a
very slight matter indeed. Hardly worth bringing you down here for. I am
meeting a couple of men tonight and paying them some money. I thought I might
as well have someone with me. You carry a gun?” “At times. Yes,” I said. I looked at the
dimple in his broad, fleshy chin. You could have lost a marble in it. “I shan’t want you to carry that. Nothing
of that sort at all. This is a purely business transaction.” “I hardly ever shoot anybody,” I said. “A
matter of blackmail?” He frowned. “Certainly not. I’m not in the
habit of giving people grounds for blackmail.” “It happens to the nicest people. I might
say particularly to the nicest people.” He waved his cigarette. His aquamarine
eyes had a faintly thoughtful expression, but his lips smiled. The kind of
smile that goes with a silk noose. He blew some more smoke and tilted his
head back. This accentuated the soft firm lines of his throat. His eyes came
down slowly and studied me. “I’m meeting these men—most probably—in a
rather lonely place. I don’t know where yet. I expect a call giving me the
particulars. I have to be ready to leave at once. It won’t be very far away
from here. That’s the understanding.” “You’ve been making this deal some time?” “Three or four days, as a matter of fact.”
“You left your bodyguard problem until
pretty late.” He thought that over. He snicked some dark
ash from his cigarette. “That’s true. I had some difficulty making my mind up.
It would be better for me to go alone, although nothing has been said
definitely about my having someone with me. On the other hand I’m not much of a
hero.” “They know you by sight, of course?” “I—I’m not sure. I shall be carrying a
large amount of money and it is not my money. I’m acting for a friend. I
shouldn’t feel justified in letting it out of my possession, of course.” I snubbed out my cigarette and leaned back
in the pink chair and twiddled my thumbs. “How much money—and what for?” “Well, really—” it was a fairly nice smile
now, but I still didn’t like it. “I can’t go into that.” “You just want me to go along and hold
your hat?” His hand jerked again and some ash fell
off on his white cuff. He shook it off and stared down at the place where it
had been. “I’m afraid I don’t like your manner,” he
said, using the edge of his voice. “I’ve had complaints about it,” I said.
“But nothing seems to do any good. Let’s look at this job a little. You want a
bodyguard, but he can’t wear a gun. You want a helper, but he isn’t supposed to
know what he’s supposed to do. You want me to risk my neck without knowing why
or what for or what the risk is. What are you offering for all this?” “I hadn’t really got around to thinking
about it.” His cheekbones were dusky red. “Do you suppose you could get around to
thinking about it?” He leaned forward gracefully and smiled
between his teeth. “How would you like a swift punch on the nose?” I grinned and stood up and put my hat on.
I started across the carpet towards the front door, but not very fast. His voice snapped at my back. “I’m
offering you a hundred dollars for a few hours of your time. If that isn’t
enough, say so. There’s no risk. Some jewels were taken from a friend of mine
in a holdup—and I’m buying them back. Sit down and don’t be so touchy.” I went back to the pink chair and sat down
again. “All right,” I said. “Let’s hear about
it.” We stared at each other for all of ten
seconds. “Have you ever heard of Fei Tsui jade?” he asked slowly, and lit
another of his dark cigarettes. “No.” “It’s the only really valuable kind. Other
kinds are valuable to some extent for the material, but chiefly for the
workmanship on them. Fei Tsui is valuable in itself. All known deposits were
exhausted hundreds of years ago. A friend of mine owns a necklace of sixty
beads of about six carats each, intricately carved. Worth eighty or ninety
thousand dollars. The Chinese government has a very slightly larger one valued
at a hundred and twenty-five thousand. My friend’s necklace was taken in a
holdup a few nights ago. I was present, but quite helpless. I had driven my
friend to an evening party and later to the Trocadero and we were on our way
back to her home from there. A car brushed the left front fender and stopped,
as I thought, to apologize. Instead of that it was a very quick and very neat
holdup. Either three or four men, I really saw only two, but I’m sure another
stayed in the car behind the wheel, and I thought I saw a glimpse of still a
fourth at the rear window. My friend was wearing the jade necklace. They took
that and two rings and a bracelet. The one who seemed to be the leader looked
the things over without any apparent hurry under a small flashlight. Then he
handed one of the rings back and said that would give us an idea what kind of
people we were dealing with and to wait for a phone call before reporting to
the police or the insurance company. So we obeyed their instructions. There’s
plenty of that sort of thing going on, of course. You keep the affair to
yourself and pay ransom, or you never see your jewels again. If they’re fully
insured, perhaps you don’t mind, but if they happen to be rare pieces, you
would rather pay ransom.” I nodded. “And this jade necklace is
something that can’t be picked up every day.” He slid a finger along the polished
surface of the piano with a dreamy expression, as if touching smooth things
pleased him. “Very much so. It’s irreplaceable. She
shouldn’t have worn it out—ever. But she’s a reckless sort of woman. The other
things were good but ordinary.” “Uh-huh. How much are you paying?” “Eight thousand dollars. It’s dirt-cheap.
But if my friend couldn’t get another like it, these thugs couldn’t very easily
dispose of it either. It’s probably known to every one in the trade, all over
the country.” “This friend of yours—does she have a
name?” “I’d prefer not to mention it at the
moment.” “What are the arrangements?” He looked at me along his pale eyes. I
thought he seemed a bit scared, but I didn’t know him very well. Maybe it was a
hangover. The hand that held the dark cigarette couldn’t keep still. “We have been negotiating by telephone for
several days—through me. Everything is settled except the time and place of
meeting. It is to be sometime tonight. I shall presently be getting a call to
tell me of that. It will not be very far away, they say, and I must be prepared
to leave at once. I suppose that is so that no plant could be arranged. With
the police, I mean.” “Uh-huh. Is the money marked? I suppose it
is money?” “Currency, of course. Twenty-dollar bills.
No, why should it be marked?” “It can be done so that it takes black
light to detect it. No reason—except that the cops like to break up these
gangs—if they can get any co-operation. Some of the money might turn up on some
lad with a record.” He wrinkled his brow thoughtfully. “I’m
afraid I don’t know what black light is.” “Ultra-violet It makes certain metallic
inks glisten in the dark. I could get it done for you.” “I’m afraid there isn’t time for that
now,” he said shortly. “That’s one of the things that worries
me.” “Why?” “Why you only called me this afternoon.
Why you picked on me. Who told you about me?” He laughed. His laugh was rather boyish,
but not a very young boy. “Well, as a matter of fact I’ll have to confess I
merely picked your name at random out of the phone book. You see I hadn’t
intended to have anyone go with me. Then this afternoon I got to thinking why
not.” I lit another of my squashed cigarettes
and watched his throat muscles. “What’s the plan?” He spread his hands. “Simply to go where I
am told, hand over the package of money, and receive back the jade necklace.” “Uh-huh.” “You seem fond of that expression.” “What expression?” “Uh-huh.” “Where will I be—in the back of the car?” “I suppose so. It’s a big car. You could
easily hide in the back of it.” “Listen,” I said slowly. “You plan to go
out with me hidden in your car to a destination you are to get over the phone
some time tonight. You will have eight grand in currency on you and with that
you are supposed to buy back a jade necklace worth ten or twelve times that
much. What you will probably get will be a package you won’t be allowed to
open—providing you get anything at all. It’s just as likely they will simply
take your money, count it over in some other place, and mail you the necklace,
if they feel bighearted. There’s nothing to prevent them double-crossing you.
Certainly nothing I could do would stop them. These are heist guys. They’re
tough. They might even knock you on the head—not hard—just enough to delay you
while they go on their way.” “Well, as a matter of fact, I’m a little
afraid of something like that,” he said quietly, and his eyes twitched. “I
suppose that’s really why I wanted somebody with me.” “Did they put a flash on you when they
pulled the stick up?” He shook is head, no. “No matter. They’ve had a dozen chances to
look you over since. They probably knew all about you before that anyway. These
jobs are cased. They’re cased the way a dentist cases your tooth for a gold
inlay. You go out with this dame much?” “Well—not infrequently,” he said stiffly. “Married?” “Look here,” he snapped. “Suppose we leave
the lady out of this entirely.” “Okay,” I said. “But the more I know the
fewer cups I break. I ought to walk away from this job, Marriott. I really
ought. If the boys want to play ball, you don’t need me. If they don’t want to
play ball, I can’t do anything about it.” “All I want is your company,” he said
quickly. I shrugged and spread my hands. “Okay—but
I drive the car and carry the money—and you do the hiding in the back. We’re
about the same height. If there’s any question, we’ll just tell them the truth.
Nothing to lose by it.” “No.” He bit his lip. “I’m getting a hundred dollars for doing
nothing. If anybody gets conked, it ought to be me.” He frowned and shook his head, but after
quite a long time his face cleared slowly and he smiled. “Very well,” he said slowly. “I don’t
suppose it matters much. We’ll be together. Would you care for a spot of
brandy?” “Uh-huh. And you might bring me my hundred
bucks. I like to feel money.” He moved away like a dancer, his body
almost motionless from the waist up. The phone rang as he was on his way out.
It was in a little alcove off the living room proper, cut into the balcony. It wasn’t the call we were thinking about
though. He sounded too affectionate. He danced back after a while with a bottle
of Five-Star Martell and five nice crisp twenty-dollar bills. That made it a
nice evening—so far. 9 The house was very still. Far off there
was a sound which might have been beating surf or cars zooming along a highway,
or wind in pine trees. It was the sea, of course, breaking far down below. I
sat there and listened to it and thought long, careful thoughts. The phone rang four times within the next
hour and a half. The big one came at eight minutes past ten. Marriott talked
briefly, in a very low voice, cradled the instrument without a sound and stood
up with a sort of hushed movement. His face looked drawn. He had changed to
dark clothes now. He walked silently back into the room and poured himself a
stiff drink in a brandy glass. He held it against the light a moment with a
queer unhappy smile, swirled it once quickly and tilted his head back to pour
it down his throat. “Well—we’re all set, Marlowe. Ready?” “That’s all I’ve been all evening. Where
do we go?” “A place called Purissima Canyon.” “I never heard of it.” “I’ll get a map.” He got one and spread it
out quickly and the light blinked in his brassy hair as he bent over it. Then
he pointed with his finger. The place was one of the many canyons off the
foothill boulevard that turns into town from the coast highway north of Bay
City. I had a vague idea where it was, but no more. It seemed to be at the end
of a street called Camino de la Costa. “It will be not more than twelve minutes
from here,” Marriott said quickly. “We’d better get moving. We only have twenty
minutes to play with.” He handed me a light colored overcoat
which made me a fine target. It fitted pretty well. I wore my own hat. I had a
gun under my arm, but I hadn’t told him about that. While I put the coat on, he went on
talking in a light nervous voice and dancing on his hands the thick manila
envelope with the eight grand in it. “Purissima Canyon has a sort of level
shelf at the inner end of it, they say. This is walled off from the road by a
white fence of four-by-fours, but you can just squeeze by. A dirt road winds
down into a little hollow and we are to wait there without lights. There are no
houses around.” “We?” “Well, I mean ‘I’—theoretically.” He handed me the manila envelope and I
opened it up and looked at what was inside. It was money all right, a huge wad
of currency. I didn’t count it. I snapped the rubber around again and stuffed
the packet down inside my overcoat. It almost caved in a rib. We went to the door and Marriott switched
off all the lights. He opened the front door cautiously and peered out at the
foggy air. We went out and down the salt-tarnished spiral stairway to the
street level and the garage. It was a little foggy, the way it always
is down there at night. I had to start up the windshield wiper for a while. The big foreign car drove itself, but I
held the wheel for the sake of appearances. For two minutes we figure-eighted back and
forth across the face of the mountain and then popped out right beside the
sidewalk cafe. I could understand now why Marriott had told me to walk up the
steps. I could have driven about in those curving, twisting streets for hours without
making any more yardage than an angleworm in a bait can. On the highway the lights of the streaming
cars made an almost solid beam in both directions. The big corn poppers were
rolling north growling as they went and festooned all over with green and
yellow overhang lights. Three minutes of that and we turned inland, by a big
service station, and wound along the flank of the foothills. It got quiet.
There was loneliness and the smell of kelp and the smell of wild sage from the
hills. A yellow window hung here and there, all by itself, like the last
orange. Cars passed, spraying the pavement with cold white light, then growled
off into the darkness again. Wisps of fog chased the stars down the sky. Marriott leaned forward from the dark rear
seat and said: “Those lights off to the right are the
Belvedere Beach Club. The next canyon is Las Pulgas and the next after that
Purissima. We turn right at the top of the second rise.” His voice was hushed
and taut. I grunted and kept on driving. “Keep your
head down,” I said over my shoulder. “We may be watched all the way. This car
sticks out like spats at an Iowa picnic. Could be the boys don’t like your
being twins.” We went down into a hollow at the inward
end of a canyon and then up on the high ground and after a little while down
again and up again. Then Marriott’s tight voice said in my ear: “Next street on the right. The house with
the square turret. Turn beside that.” “You didn’t help them pick this place out,
did you?” “Hardly,” he said, and laughed grimly. “I
just happen to know these canyons pretty well.” I swung the car to the right past a big
corner house with a square white turret topped with round tiles. The headlights
sprayed for an instant on a street sign that read: Camino de la Costa. We slid
down a broad avenue lined with unfinished electroliers and weed-grown
sidewalks. Some realtor’s dream had turned into a hangover there. Crickets
chirped and bullfrogs whooped in the darkness behind the overgrown sidewalks.
Marriott’s car was that silent. There was a house to a block, then a house
to two blocks, then no houses at all. A vague window or two was still lighted,
but the people around there seemed to go to bed with the chickens. Then the
paved avenue ended abruptly in a dirt road packed as hard as concrete in dry
weather. The lights of the Belvedere Beach Club hung in the air to the right
and far ahead there was a gleam of moving water. The acrid smell of the sage
filled the night. Then a white painted barrier loomed across the dirt road and
Marriott spoke at my shoulder again. “I don’t think you can get past it,” he
said. “The space doesn’t look wide enough.” I cut the noiseless motor, dimmed the
lights and sat there, listening. Nothing. I switched the light off altogether
and got out of the car. The crickets stopped chirping. For a little while the
silence was so complete that I could hear the sound of tires on the highway at
the bottom of the cliffs, a mile away. Then one by one the crickets started up
again until the night was full of them. “Sit tight. I’m going down there and have
a look see,” I whispered into the back of the car. I touched the gun butt inside my coat and
walked forward. There was more room between the brush and the end of the white
barrier than there had seemed to be from the car. Someone had hacked the brush
away and there were car marks in the dirt. Probably kids going down there to
neck on warm nights. I went on past the barrier. The road dropped and curved.
Below was darkness and a vague far off sea-sound. And the lights of cars on the
highway. I went on. The road ended in a shallow bowl entirely surrounded by
brush. It was empty. There seemed to be no way into it but the way I had come.
I stood there in the silence and listened. Minute passed slowly after minute, but I
kept on waiting for some new sound. None came. I seemed to have that hollow
entirely to myself. I looked across to the lighted beach club.
From its upper windows a man with a good night glass could probably cover this
spot fairly well. He could see a car come and go, see who got out of it,
whether there was a group of men or just one. Sitting in a dark room with a
good night glass you can see a lot more detail than you would think possible. I turned to go back up the hill. From the
base of a bush a cricket chirped loud enough to make me jump. I went on up
around the curve and past the white barricade. Still nothing. The black car
stood dimly shining against a grayness which was neither darkness nor light. I
went over to it and put a foot on the running board beside the driver’s seat. “Looks like a tryout,” I said under my
breath, but loud enough for Marriott to hear me from the back of the car. “Just
to see if you obey orders.” There was a vague movement behind but he
didn’t answer. I went on trying to see something besides bushes. Whoever it was had a nice easy shot at the
back of my head. Afterwards I thought I might have heard the swish of a sap.
Maybe you always think that—afterwards. 10 “Four minutes,” the voice said. “Five,
possibly six. They must have moved quick and quiet. He didn’t even let out a
yell.” I opened my eyes and looked fuzzily at a
cold star. I was lying on my back. I felt sick. The voice said: “It could have been a
little longer. Maybe even eight minutes altogether. They must have been in the
brush, right where the car stopped. The guy scared easily. They must have
thrown a small light in his face and he passed out—just from panic. The pansy.”
There was silence. I got up on one knee.
Pains shot from the back of my head clear to my ankles. “Then one of them got into the car,” the
voice said, “and waited for you to come back. The others hid again. They must
have figured he would be afraid to come alone. Or something in his voice made
them suspicious, when they talked to him on the phone.” I balanced myself woozily on the flat of
my hands, listening. “Yeah, that was about how it was,” the
voice said. It was my voice. I was talking to myself,
coming out of it. I was trying to figure the thing out subconsciously. “Shut up, you dimwit,” I said, and stopped
talking to myself. Far off the purl of motors, nearer the
chirp of crickets, the peculiar long drawn ee-ee-ee of tree frogs. I didn’t
think I was going to like those sounds any more. I lifted a hand off the ground and tried to
shake the sticky sage ooze off it, then rubbed it on the side of my coat. Nice
work, for a hundred dollars. The hand jumped at the inside pocket of the
overcoat. No manila envelope, naturally. The hand jumped inside my own suit
coat. My wallet was still there. I wondered if my hundred was still in it.
Probably not. Something felt heavy against my left ribs. The gun in the
shoulder holster. That was a nice touch. They left me my
gun. A nice touch of something or other—like closing a man’s eyes after you knife
him. I felt the back of my head. My hat was
still on. I took it off, not without discomfort and felt the head underneath.
Good old head, I’d had it a long time. It was a little soft now, a little
pulpy, and more than a little tender. But a pretty light sapping at that. The
hat had helped. I could still use the head. I could use it another year anyway.
I put my right hand back on the ground and
took the left off and swiveled it around until I could see my watch. The
illuminated dial showed 10:56, as nearly as I could focus on it. The call had come at 10:08. Marriott had
talked maybe two minutes. Another four had got us out of the house. Time passes
very slowly when you are actually doing something. I mean, you can go through a
lot of movements in very few minutes. Is that what I mean? What the hell do I
care what I mean? Okay, better men than me have meant less. Okay, what I mean
is, that would be 10:15, say. The place was about twelve minutes away. 10:27. I
get out, walk down in the hollow, spend at the most eight minutes fooling
around and come on back up to get my head treated. 10:35. Give me a minute to
fall down and hit the ground with my face. The reason I hit it with my face, I
got my chin scraped. It hurts. It feels scraped. That way I know it’s scraped.
No, I can’t see it. I don’t have to see it. It’s my chin and I know whether
it’s scraped or not. Maybe you want to make something of it. Okay, shut up and
let me think. What with?… The watch showed 10:56 p.m. That meant I
had been out for twenty minutes. Twenty minutes’ sleep. Just a nice doze.
In that time I had muffed a job and lost eight thousand dollars. Well, why not?
In twenty minutes you can sink a battleship, down three or four planes, hold a
double execution. You can die, get married, get fired and find a new job, have
a tooth pulled, have your tonsils out. In twenty minutes you can even get up in
the morning. You can get a glass of water at a nightclub—maybe. Twenty minutes’ sleep. That’s a long time.
Especially on a cold night, out in the open. I began to shiver. I was still on my knees. The smell of the
sage was beginning to bother me. The sticky ooze from which wild bees get their
honey. Honey was sweet, much too sweet. My stomach took a whirl. I clamped my
teeth tight and just managed to keep it down my throat. Cold sweat stood out in
lumps on my forehead, but I shivered just the same. I got up on one foot, then
on both feet, straightened up, wobbling a little. I felt like an amputated leg.
I turned slowly. The car was gone. The dirt
road stretched empty, back up the shallow hill towards the paved street, the
end of Camino de la Costa. To the left the barrier of white-painted
four-by-fours stood out against the darkness. Beyond the low wall of brush the
pale glow in the sky would be the lights of Bay City. And over farther to the
right and near by were the lights of the Belvedere Club. I went over where the car had stood and
got a fountain pen flash unclipped from my pocket and poked the little light
down at the ground. The soil was red loam, very hard in dry weather, but the
weather was not bone dry. There was a little fog in the air, and enough of the
moisture had settled on the surface of the ground to show where the car had
stood. I could see, very faint, the tread marks of the heavy ten-ply Vogue
tires. I put the light on them and bent over and the pain made my head dizzy. I
started to follow the tracks. They went straight ahead for a dozen feet, then
swung over to the left. They didn’t turn, They went towards the gap at the left
hand end of the white barricade. Then I lost them. I went over to the barricade and shone the
little light on the brush. Fresh-broken twigs. I went through the gap, on down
the curving road. The ground was still softer here. More marks of the heavy
tires. I went on down, rounded the curve and was at the edge of the hollow
closed in by brush. It was there all right, the chromium and
glossy paint shining a little even in the dark, and the red reflector glass of
the tail-lights shining back at the pencil flash. It was there, silent,
lightless, all the doors shut. I went towards it slowly, gritting my teeth at
every step. I opened one of the rear doors and put the beam of the flash
inside. Empty. The front was empty too. The ignition was off. The key hung in the
lock on a thin chain. No torn upholstery, no scarred glass, no blood, no
bodies. Everything neat and orderly. I shut the doors and circled the car
slowly, looking for a sign and not finding any. A sound froze me. A motor throbbed above the rim of the brush.
I didn’t jump more than a foot. The flash in my hand went out. A gun slid into
my hand all by itself. Then headlight beams tilted up towards the sky, then
tilted down again. The motor sounded like a small car. It had that contented
sound that comes with moisture in the air. The lights tilted down still more and got
brighter. A car was coming down the curve of the dirt road. It came two-thirds
of the way and then stopped. A spotlight clicked on and swung out to the side,
held there for a long moment, went out again. The car came on down the hill. I
slipped the gun out of my pocket and crouched behind the motor of Marriott’s
car. A small coupe of no particular shape or
color slid into the hollow and turned so that its headlights raked the sedan
from one end to the other. I got my head down in a hurry. The lights swept
above me like a sword. The coupe stopped. The motor died. The headlights died.
Silence. Then a door opened and a light foot touched the ground. More silence.
Even the crickets were silent. Then a beam of light cut the darkness low down,
parallel to the ground and only a few inches above it. The beam swept, and
there was no way I could get my ankles out of it quickly enough. The beam
stopped on my feet. Silence. The beam came up and raked the top of the hood
again. Then a laugh. It was a girl’s laugh.
Strained, taut as a mandolin wire. A strange sound in that place. The white
beam shot under the car again and settled on my feet. The voice said, not quite shrilly: “All
right, you. Come out of there with your hands up and very damned empty. You’re
covered.” I didn’t move. The light wavered a little, as though the
hand that held it wavered. It swept slowly along the hood once more. The voice
stabbed at me again. “Listen, stranger. I’m holding a ten shot
automatic. I can shoot straight. Both your feet are vulnerable. What do you
bid?” “Put it up—or I’ll blow it out of your
hand!” I snarled. My voice sounded like somebody tearing slats off a chicken
coop. “Oh—a hardboiled gentleman.” There was a
quaver in the voice, a nice little quaver. Then it hardened again. “Coming out?
I’ll count three. Look at the odds I’m giving you—twelve fat cylinders, maybe
sixteen. But your feet will hurt. And ankle bones take years and years to get
well and sometimes they never do really—” I straightened up slowly and looked into
the beam of the flashlight. “I talk too much when I’m scared too,” I
said. “Don’t—don’t move another inch! Who are
you?” I moved around the front of the car
towards her. When I was six feet from the slim dark figure behind the flash I
stopped. The flash glared at me steadily. “You stay right there,” the girl snapped
angrily, after I had stopped. “Who are you?” “Let’s see your gun.” She held it forward into the light. It was
pointed at my stomach. It was a little gun, it looked like a small Colt vest
pocket automatic. “Oh, that,” I said. “That toy. It doesn’t
either hold ten shots. It holds six. It’s just a little gun, a butterfly gun.
They shoot butterflies with them. Shame on you for telling a deliberate lie
like that.” “Are you crazy?” “Me? I’ve been sapped by a holdup man. I
might be a little goofy.” “Is that your car?” “Who are you?” “What were you looking at back there with
your spotlight?” “I get it. You ask the answers. He-man
stuff. I was looking at a man.” “Does he have blond hair in waves?” “Not now,” she said quietly. “He might
have had—once.” That jarred me. Somehow I hadn’t expected
it. “I didn’t see him,” I said lamely. “I was following the tire marks with a
flashlight down the hill. Is he badly hurt?” I went another step towards her.
The little gun jumped at me and the flash held steady. “Take it easy,” she said quietly. “Very
easy. Your friend is dead.” I didn’t say anything for a moment. Then I
said: “All right, let’s go look at him.” “Let’s stand right here and not move and
you tell me who you are and what happened.” The voice was crisp. It was not
afraid. It meant what it said. “Marlowe. Philip Marlowe. An investigator.
Private.” “That’s who you are—if it’s true. Prove
it.” “I’m going to take my wallet out.” “I don’t think so. Just leave your hands
where they happen to be. We’ll skip the proof for the time being. What’s your
story?” “This man may not be dead.” “He’s dead all right. With his brains on his
face. The story, mister. Make it fast.” “As I said—he may not be dead. We’ll go
look at him.” I moved one foot forward. “Move and I’ll drill you!” she snapped.
I moved the other foot forward. The flash
jumped about a little. I think she took a step back. “You take some awful chances, mister,” she
said quietly. “All right, go on ahead and I’ll follow. You look like a sick
man. If it hadn’t been for that—” “You’d have shot me. I’ve been sapped. It
always makes me a little dark under the eyes.” “A nice sense of humor—like a morgue
attendant,” she almost wailed. I turned away from the light and
immediately it shone on the ground in front of me. I walked past the little
coup, an ordinary little car, clean and shiny under the misty starlight. I went
on, up the dirt road, around the curve. The steps were close behind me and the
flashlight guided me. There was no sound anywhere now except our steps and the
girl’s breathing. I didn’t hear mine. 11 Halfway up the slope I looked off to the
right and saw his foot. She swung the light. Then I saw all of him. I ought to
have seen him as I came down, but I had been bent over, peering at the ground
with the fountain pen flash, trying to read tire marks by a light the size of a
quarter. “Give me the flash,” I said and reached
back. She put it into my hand, without a word. I
went down on a knee. The ground felt cold and damp through the cloth. He lay smeared to the ground, on his back,
at the base of a bush, in that bag-of-clothes position that always means the same
thing. His face was a face I had never seen before. His hair was dark with
blood, the beautiful blond ledges were tangled-with blood and some thick
grayish ooze, like primeval slime. The girl behind me breathed hard, but she
didn’t speak. I held the light on his face. He had been beaten to a pulp. One
of his hands was flung out in a frozen gesture, the fingers curled. His
overcoat was half twisted under him, as though he had rolled as he fell. His
legs were crossed. There was a trickle as black as dirty oil at the corner of
his mouth. “Hold the flash on him,” I said, passing
it back to her. “If it doesn’t make you sick.” She took it and held it without a word, as
steady as an old homicide veteran. I got my fountain pen flash out again and
started to go through his pockets, trying not to move him. “You shouldn’t do that,” she said tensely.
“You shouldn’t touch him until the police come.” “That’s right,” I said. “And the prowl car
boys are not supposed to touch him until the K-car men come and they’re not
supposed to touch him until the coroner’s examiner sees him and the
photographers have photographed him and the fingerprint man has taken his
prints. And do you know how long all that is liable to take out here? A couple
of hours.” “All right,” she said. “I suppose you’re
always right. I guess you must be that kind of person. Somebody must have hated
him to smash his head in like that.” “I don’t suppose it was personal,” I
growled. “Some people just like to smash heads.” “Seeing that I don’t know what it’s all
about, I couldn’t guess,” she said tartly. I went through his clothes. He had loose
silver and bills in one trouser pocket, a tooled leather key case in the other,
also a small knife. His left hip pocket yielded a small billfold with more
currency, insurance cards, a driver’s license, a couple of receipts. In his
coat loose match folders, a gold pencil clipped to a pocket, two thin cambric
handkerchiefs as fine and white as dry powdered snow. Then the enamel cigarette
case from which I had seen him take his brown gold-tipped cigarettes. They were
South American, from Montevideo. And in the other inside pocket a second
cigarette case I hadn’t seen before. It was made of embroidered silk, a dragon
on each side, a frame of imitation tortoiseshell so thin it was hardly there at
all. I tickled the catch open and looked in at three oversized Russian
cigarettes under the band of elastic. I pinched one. They felt old and dry and
loose. They had hollow mouthpieces. “He smoked the others,” I said over my shoulder.
“These must have been for a lady friend. He would be a lad who would have a lot
of lady friends.” The girl was bent over, breathing on my
neck now. “Didn’t you know him?” “I only met him tonight. He hired me for a
bodyguard.” “Some bodyguard.” I didn’t say anything to that. “I’m sorry,” she almost whispered. “Of
course I don’t know the circumstances. Do you suppose those could be jujus? Can
I look?” I passed the embroidered case back to her.
“I knew a guy once who smoked jujus,” she
said. “Three highballs and three sticks of tea and it took a pipe wrench to get
him off the chandelier.” “Hold the light steady.” There was a rustling pause. Then she spoke
again. “I’m sorry.” She handed the case down
again and I slipped it back in his pocket. That seemed to be all. All it proved
was that he hadn’t been cleaned out. I stood up and took my wallet out. The
five twenties were still in it. “High class boys,” I said. “They only took
the large money.” The flash was drooping to the ground. I
put my wallet away again, clipped my own small flash to my pocket and reached
suddenly for the little gun she was still holding in the same hand with the
flashlight. She dropped the flashlight, but I got the gun. She stepped back
quickly and I reached down for the light. I put it on her face for a moment,
then snapped it off. “You didn’t have to be rough,” she said,
putting her hands down into the pockets of a long rough coat with flaring
shoulders. “I didn’t think you killed him.” I liked the cool quiet of her voice. I
liked her nerve. We stood in the darkness, face to face, not saying anything
for a moment. I could see the brush and light in the sky. I put the light on her face and she
blinked. It was a small neat vibrant face with large eyes. A face with bone under
the skin, fine drawn like a Cremona violin. A very nice face. “Your hair’s red,” I said. “You look
Irish.” “And my name’s Riordan. So what? Put that
light out. It’s not red, it’s auburn.” I put it out. “What’s your first name?” “Anne. And don’t call me Annie.” “What are you doing around here?” “Sometimes at night I go riding. Just
restless. I live alone. I’m an orphan. I know all this neighborhood like a
book. I just happened to be riding along and noticed a light flickering down in
the hollow. It seemed a little cold for love. And they don’t use lights, do
they?” “I never did. You take some awful chances,
Miss Riordan.” “I think I said the same about you. I had
a gun. I wasn’t afraid. There’s no law against going down there.” “Uh-huh. Only the law of
self-preservation. Here. It’s not my night to be clever. I suppose you have a
permit for the gun.” I held it out to her, butt first. She took it and tucked it down into her
pocket. “Strange how curious people can be, isn’t it? I write a little. Feature
articles.” “Any money in it?” “Very damned little. What were you looking
for—in his pockets?” “Nothing in particular. I’m a great guy to
snoop around. We had eight thousand dollars to buy back some stolen jewelry for
a lady. We got hijacked. Why they killed him I don’t know. He didn’t strike me
as a fellow who would put up much of a fight. And I didn’t hear a fight. I was
down in the hollow when he was jumped. He was in the car, up above. We were
supposed to drive down into the hollow but there didn’t seem to be room for the
car without scratching it up. So I went down there on foot and while I was down
there they must have stuck him up. Then one of them got into the car and
dry-gulched me. I thought he was still in the car, of course.” “That doesn’t make you so terribly dumb,”
she said. “There was something wrong with the job
from the start. I could feel it. But I needed the money. Now I have to go to
the cops and eat dirt. Will you drive me to Montemar Vista? I left my car
there. He lived there.” “Sure. But shouldn’t somebody stay with
him? You could take my car—or I could go call the cops.” I looked at the dial of my watch. The
faintly glowing hands said that it was getting towards midnight. “No.” “Why not?” “I don’t know why not. I just feel it that
way. I’ll play it alone.” She said nothing. We went back down the
hill and got into her little car and she started it and jockeyed it around
without lights and drove it back up the hill and eased it past the barrier. A
block away she sprang the lights on. My head ached. We didn’t speak until we
came level with the first house on the paved part of the street. Then she said:
“You need a drink. Why not go back to my
house and have one? You can phone the law from there. They have to come from
West Los Angeles anyway. There’s nothing up here but a fire station.” “Just keep on going down to the coast.
I’ll play it solo.” “But why? I’m not afraid of them. My story
might help you.” “I don’t want any help. I’ve got to think.
I want to be by myself for a while.” “I—Okay,” she said. She made a vague sound in her throat and
turned on to the boulevard. We came to the service station at the coast highway
and turned north to Montemar Vista and the sidewalk cafe there. It was lit up
like a luxury liner. The girl pulled over on to the shoulder and I got out and
stood holding the door. I fumbled a card out of my wallet and
passed it in to her. “Some day you may need a strong back,” I said. “Let me
know. But don’t call me if it’s brain work.” She tapped the card on the wheel and said
slowly: “You’ll find me in the Bay City phone book. 819 Twenty-fifth Street.
Come around and pin a putty medal on me for minding my own business. I think
you’re still woozy from that crack on the head.” She swung her car swiftly around on the
highway and I watched its twin tail-lights fade into the dark. I walked past the arch and the sidewalk
cafe into the parking space and got into my car. A bar was right in front of me
and I was shaking again. But it seemed smarter to walk into the West Los
Angeles police station the way I did twenty minutes later, as cold as a frog
and as green as the back of a new dollar bill. 12 It was an hour and a half later. The body
had been taken away, the ground gone over, and I had told my story three or
four times. We sat, four of us, in the day captain’s room at the West Los
Angeles station. The building was quiet except for a drunk in a cell who kept
giving the Australian bush call while he waited to go downtown for sunrise
court. A hard white light inside a glass
reflector shone down on the flat topped table on which were spread the things
that had come from Lindsay Marriott’s pockets, things now that seemed as dead
and homeless as their owner. The man across the table from me was named Randall
and he was from Central Homicide in Los Angeles. He was a thin quiet man of
fifty with smooth creamy gray hair, cold eyes, a distant manner. He wore a dark
red tie with black spots on it and the spots kept dancing in front of my eyes.
Behind him, beyond the cone of light, two beefy men lounged like bodyguards,
each of them watching one of my ears. I fumbled a cigarette around in my fingers
and lit it and didn’t like the taste of it. I sat watching it burn between my
fingers. I felt about eighty years old and slipping fast. Randall said coldly: “The oftener you tell
this story the sillier it sounds. This man Marriott had been negotiating for
days, no doubt, about this pay-off and then just a few hours before the final
meeting he calls up a perfect stranger and hires him to go with him as a
bodyguard.” “Not exactly as a bodyguard,” I said. “I
didn’t even tell him I had a gun. Just for company.” “Where did he hear of you?” “First he said a mutual friend. Then that
he just picked my name out of the book.” Randall poked gently among the stuff on
the table and detached a white card with an air of touching something not quite
clean. He pushed it along the wood. “He had your card. Your business card.” I glanced at the card. It had come out of
his billfold, together with a number of other cards I hadn’t bothered to
examine back there in the hollow of Purissima Canyon. It was one of my cards
all right. It looked rather dirty at that, for a man like Marriott. There was a
round smear across one corner. “Sure,” I said. “I hand those out whenever
I get a chance. Naturally.” “Marriott let you carry the money,”
Randall said. “Eight thousand dollars. He was rather a trusting soul.” I drew on my cigarette and blew the smoke
towards the ceiling. The light hurt my eyes. The back of my head ached. “I don’t have the eight thousand dollars,”
I said. “Sorry.” “No. You wouldn’t be here, if you had the
money. Or would you?” There was a cold sneer on his face now, but it looked
artificial. “I’d do a lot for eight thousand dollars,”
I said. “But if I wanted to kill a man with a sap, I’d only hit him twice at
the most—on the back of the head.” He nodded slightly. One of the dicks
behind him spit into the wastebasket. “That’s one of the puzzling features. It
looks like an amateur job, but of course it might be meant to look like an
amateur job. The money was not Marriott’s, was it?” “I don’t know. I got the impression not,
but that was just an impression. He wouldn’t tell me who the lady in the case
was.” “We don’t know anything about
Marriott—yet,” Randall said slowly. “I suppose it’s at least possible he meant
to steal the eight thousand himself.” “Huh?” I felt surprised. I probably looked
surprised. Nothing changed in Randall’s smooth face. “Did you count the money?” “Of course not. He just gave me a package.
There was money in it and it looked like a lot. He said it was eight grand. Why
would he want to steal it from me when he already had it before I came on the
scene?” Randall looked at a corner of the ceiling
and drew his mouth down at the corners. He shrugged. “Go back a bit,” he said. “Somebody had
stuck up Marriott and a lady and taken this jade necklace and stuff and had
later offered to sell it back for what seems like a pretty small amount, in
view of its supposed value. Marriott was to handle the payoff. He thought of
handling it alone and we don’t know whether the other parties made a point of
that or whether it was mentioned. Usually in cases like that they are rather
fussy. But Marriott evidently decided it was all right to have you along. Both
of you figured you were dealing with an organized gang and that they would play
ball within the limits of their trade. Marriott was scared. That would be
natural enough. He wanted company. You were the company. But you are a complete
stranger to him, just a name on a card handed to him by some unknown party,
said by him to be a mutual friend. Then at the last minute Marriott decides to
have you carry the money and do the talking while he hides in the car. You say
that was your idea, but he may have been hoping you would suggest it, and if
you didn’t suggest it, he would have had the idea himself.” “He didn’t like the idea at first,” I
said. Randall shrugged again. “He pretended not
to like the idea—but he gave in. So finally he gets a call and off you go to
the place he describes. All this is coming from Marriott. None of it is known
to you independently. When you get there, there seems to be nobody about. You
are supposed to drive down into that hollow, but it doesn’t look to be room
enough for the big car. It wasn’t, as a matter of fact, because the car was
pretty badly scratched on the left side. So you get out and walk down into the
hollow, see and hear nothing, wait a few minutes, come back to the car and then
somebody in the car socks you on the back of the head. Now suppose Marriott
wanted that money and wanted to make you the fall guy—wouldn’t he have acted
just the way he did?” “It’s a swell theory,” I said. “Marriott
socked me, took the money, then he got sorry and beat his brains out, after
first burying the money under a bush.” Randall looked at me woodenly. “He had an
accomplice of course. Both of you were supposed to be knocked out, and the
accomplice would beat it with the money. Only the accomplice double-crossed
Marriott by killing him. He didn’t have to kill you because you didn’t know
him.” I looked at him with admiration and ground
out my cigarette stub in a wooden tray that had once had a glass lining in it
but hadn’t any more. “It fits the facts—so far as we know
them,” Randall said calmly. “It’s no sillier than any other theory we could
think up at the moment.” “It doesn’t fit one fact—that I was socked
from the car, does it? That would make me suspect Marriott of having socked
me—other things being equal. Although I didn’t suspect him after he was
killed.” “The way you were socked fits best of
all,” Randall said. “You didn’t tell Marriott you had a gun, but he may have
seen the bulge under your arm or at least suspected you had a gun. In that case
he would want to hit you when you suspected nothing. And you wouldn’t suspect
anything from the back of the car.” “Okay,” I said. “You win. It’s a good
theory, always supposing the money was not Marriott’s and that he wanted to
steal it and that he had an accomplice. So his plan is that we both wake up
with bumps on our heads and the money is gone and we say so sorry and I go home
and forget all about it. Is that how it ends? I mean is that how he expected it
to end? It had to look good to him too, didn’t it?” Randall smiled wryly. “I don’t like it
myself. I was just trying it out. It fits the facts—as far as I know them,
which is not far.” “We don’t know enough to even start
theorizing,” I said. “Why not assume he was telling the truth and that he perhaps
recognized one of the stick-up men?” “You say you heard no struggle, no cry?” “No. But he could have been grabbed
quickly, by the throat. Or he could have been too scared to cry out when they
jumped him. Say they were watching from the bushes and saw me go down the hill.
I went some distance, you know. A good hundred feet. They go over to look into
the car and see Marriott. Somebody sticks a gun in his face and makes him get
out—quietly. Then he’s sapped down. But something he says, or some way he looks,
makes them think he has recognized somebody.” “In the dark?” “Yes,” I said. “It must have been
something like that. Some voices stay in your mind. Even in the dark people are
recognized.” Randall shook his head. “If this was an
organized gang of jewel thieves, they wouldn’t kill without a lot of
provocation.” He stopped suddenly and his eyes got a glazed look. He closed his
mouth very slowly, very tight. He had an idea. “Hijack,” he said. I nodded. “I think that’s an idea.” “There’s another thing,” he said. “How did
you get here?” “I drove my car.” “Where was your car?” “Down at Montemar Vista, in the parking
lot by the sidewalk cafe.” He looked at me very thoughtfully. The
dicks behind him looked at me suspiciously. The drunk in the cells tried to
yodel, but his voice cracked and that discouraged him. He began to cry. “I walked back to the highway,” I said. “I
flagged a car. A girl was driving it alone. She stopped and took me down.”. “Some girl,” Randall said. “It was late at
night, on a lonely road, and she stopped.” “Yeah. Some of them will do that. I didn’t
get to know her, but she seemed nice.” I stared at them, knowing they didn’t
believe me and wondering why I was lying about it. “It was a small car,” I said. “A Chevy
coupe. I didn’t get the license number.” “Haw, he didn’t get the license number,”
one of the dicks said and spat into the wastebasket again. Randall leaned forward and stared at me
carefully. “If you’re holding anything back with the idea of working on this
case yourself to make yourself a little publicity, I’d forget it, Marlowe. I
don’t like all the points in your story and I’m going to give you the night to
think it over. Tomorrow I’ll probably ask you for a sworn statement. In the
meantime let me give you a tip. This is a murder and a police job and we
wouldn’t want your help, even if it was good. All we want from you is facts.
Get me?” “Sure. Can I go home now? I don’t feel any
too well.” “You can go home now.” His eyes were icy. I got up and started towards the door in a
dead silence. When I had gone four steps Randall cleared his throat and said
carelessly: “Oh, one small point. Did you notice what
kind of cigarettes Marriott smoked?” I turned. “Yes. Brown ones. South
American, in a french enamel case.” He leaned forward and pushed the
embroidered silk case out of the pile of junk on the table and then pulled it
towards him. “Ever see this one before?” “Sure. I was just looking at it.” “I mean, earlier this evening.” “I believe I did,” I said. “Lying around somewhere.
Why?” “You didn’t search the body?” “Okay,” I said. “Yes, I looked through his
pockets. That was in one of them. I’m sorry. Just professional curiosity. I
didn’t disturb anything. After all he was my client.” Randall took hold of the embroidered case
with both hands and opened it. He sat looking into it. It was empty. The three
cigarettes were gone. I bit hard on my teeth and kept the tired
look on my face. It was not easy. “Did you see him smoke a cigarette out of
this?” “No.” Randall nodded coolly. “It’s empty as you
see. But it was in his pocket just the same. There’s a little dust in it. I’m
going to have it examined under a microscope. I’m not sure, but I have an idea
it’s marijuana.” I said: “If he had any of those, I should
think he would have smoked a couple tonight. He needed something to cheer him
up.” Randall closed the case carefully and
pushed it away. “That’s all,” he said. “And keep your nose
clean.” I went out. The fog had cleared off outside and the
stars were as bright as artificial stars of chromium on a sky of black velvet.
I drove fast. I needed a drink badly and the bars were closed. 13 I got up at nine, drank three cups of
black coffee, bathed the back of my head with ice-water and read the two
morning papers that had been thrown against the apartment door. There was a
paragraph and a bit about Moose Malloy, in Part II, but Nulty didn’t get his
name mentioned. There was nothing about Lindsay Marriott, unless it was on the
society page. I dressed and ate two soft-boiled eggs and
drank a fourth cup of coffee and looked myself over in the mirror. I still
looked a little shadowy under the eyes. I had the door open to leave when the
phone rang. It was Nulty. He sounded mean. “Marlowe?” “Yeah. Did you get him?” “Oh sure. We got him.” He stopped to
snarl. “On the Ventura line, like I said. Boy, did we have fun! Six foot six,
built like a cofferdam, on his way to Frisco to see the Fair. He had five
quarts of hooch in the front seat of the rent car, and he was drinking out of
another one as he rode along, doing a quiet seventy. All we had to go up
against him with was two county cops with guns and blackjacks.” He paused and I turned over a few witty
sayings in my mind, but none of them seemed amusing at the moment. Nulty went
on: “So he done exercises with the cops and
when they was tired enough to go to sleep, he pulled one side off their car,
threw the radio into the ditch, opened a fresh bottle of hooch, and went to
sleep hisself. After a while the boys snapped out of it and bounced blackjacks
off his head for about ten minutes before he noticed it. When he began to get
sore they got handcuffs on him. It was easy. We got him in the icebox now,
drunk driving, drunk in auto, assaulting police officer in performance of duty,
two counts, malicious damage to official property, attempted escape from
custody, assault less than mayhem, disturbing the peace, and parking on a state
highway. Fun, ain’t it?” “What’s the gag?” I asked. “You didn’t
tell me all that just to gloat.” “It was the wrong guy,” Nulty said
savagely. “This bird is named Stoyanoffsky and he lives in Hemet and he just
got through working as a sandhog on the San Jack tunnel. Got a wife and four
kids. Boy, is she sore. What you doing on Malloy?” “Nothing. I have a headache.” “Any time you get a little free time—” “I don’t think so,” I said. “Thanks just
the same. When is the inquest on the nigger coming up?” “Why bother?” Nulty sneered, and hung up. I drove down to Hollywood Boulevard and
put my car in the parking space beside the building and rode up to my floor. I
opened the door of the little reception room which I always left unlocked, in
case I had a client and the client wanted to wait. Miss Anne Riordan looked up from a
magazine and smiled at me. She was wearing a tobacco brown suit with
a high-necked white sweater inside it. Her hair by daylight was pure auburn and
on it she wore a hat with a crown the size of a whiskey glass and a brim you
could have wrapped the week’s laundry in. She wore it at an angle of
approximately forty-five degrees, so that the edge of the brim just missed her
shoulder. In spite of that it looked smart. Perhaps because of that. She was about twenty-eight years old. She
had a rather narrow forehead of more height than is considered elegant. Her
nose was small and inquisitive, her upper lip a shade too long and her mouth
more than a shade too wide. Her eyes were gray-blue with flecks of gold in
them. She had a nice smile. She looked as if she had slept well. It was a nice
face, a face you get to like. Pretty, but not so pretty that you would have to
wear brass knuckles every time you took it out. “I didn’t know just what your office hours
were,” she said. “So I waited. I gather that your secretary is not here today.”
“I don’t have a secretary.” I went across and unlocked the inner door,
then switched on the buzzer that rang on the outer door. “Let’s go into my
private thinking parlor.” She passed in front of me with a vague
scent of very dry sandalwood and stood looking at the five green filing cases,
the shabby rust-red rug, the half-dusted furniture, and the not too clean net
curtains. “I should think you would want somebody to
answer the phone,” she said. “And once in a while to send your curtains to the
cleaners.” “I’ll send them out come St. Swithin’s
Day. Have a chair. I might miss a few unimportant jobs. And a lot of leg art. I
save money.” “I see,” she said demurely, and placed a
large suede bag carefully on the corner of the glass-topped desk. She leaned
back and took one of my cigarettes. I burned my finger with a paper match
lighting it for her. She blew a fan of smoke and smiled though
it. Nice teeth, rather large. “You probably didn’t expect to see me
again so soon. How is your head?” “Poorly. No, I didn’t.” “Were the police nice to you?” “About the way they always are.” “I’m not keeping you from anything
important, am I?” “No.” “All the same I don’t think you’re very
pleased to see me.” I filled a pipe and reached for the packet
of paper matches. I lit the pipe carefully. She watched that with approval.
Pipe smokers were solid men. She was going to be disappointed in me. “I tried to leave you out of it,” I said.
“I don’t know why exactly. It’s no business of mine any more anyhow. I ate my
dirt last night and banged myself to sleep with a bottle and now it’s a police
case: I’ve been warned to leave it alone.” “The reason you left me out of it,” she
said calmly, “was that you didn’t think the police would believe just mere idle
curiosity took me down into that hollow last night. They would suspect some
guilty reason and hammer at me until I was a wreck.” “How do you know I didn’t think the same
thing?” “Cops are just people,” she said
irrelevantly. “They start out that way, I’ve heard.” “Oh—cynical this morning.” She looked
around the office with an idle but raking glance. “Do you do pretty well in
here? I mean financially? I mean, do you make a lot of money—with this kind of
furniture?” I grunted. “Or should I try minding my own business
and not asking impertinent questions?” “Would it work, if you tried it?” “Now we’re both doing it. Tell me, why did
you cover up for me last night? Was it on account of I have reddish hair and a
beautiful figure?” I didn’t say anything. “Let’s try this one,” she said cheerfully.
“Would you like to know who that jade necklace belonged to?” I could feel my face getting stiff. I
thought hard but I couldn’t remember for sure. And then suddenly I could. I
hadn’t said a word to her about a jade necklace. I reached for the matches and relit my
pipe. “Not very much,” I said. “Why?” “Because I know.” “Uh-huh.” “What do you do when you get real
talkative—wiggle your toes?” “All right,” I growled. “You came here to
tell me. Go ahead and tell me.” Her blue eyes widened and for a moment I
thought they looked a little moist. She took her lower lip between her teeth
and held it that way while she stared down at the desk. Then she shrugged and
let go of her lip and smiled at me candidly. “Oh I know I’m just a damned inquisitive
wench. But there’s a strain of bloodhound in me. My father was a cop. His name
was Cliff Riordan and he was police chief of Bay City for seven years. I
suppose that’s what’s the matter.” “I seem to remember. What happened to
him?” “He was fired. It broke his heart. A mob
of gamblers headed by a man named Laird Brunette elected themselves a mayor. So
they put Dad in charge of the Bureau of Records and Identification, which in
Bay City is about the size of a tea bag. So Dad quit and pottered around for a
couple of years and then died. And Mother died soon after him. So I’ve been
alone for two years.” “I’m sorry,” I said. She ground out her cigarette. It had no
lipstick on it. “The only reason I’m boring you with this is that it makes it
easy for me to get along with policemen. I suppose I ought to have told you
last night. So this morning I found out who had charge of the case and went to
see him. He was a little sore at you at first.” “That’s all right,” I said. “If I had told
him the truth on all points, he still wouldn’t have believed me. All he will do
is chew one of my ears off.” She looked hurt. I got up and opened the
other window. The noise of the traffic from the boulevard came in in waves,
like nausea. I felt lousy. I opened the deep drawer of the desk and got the
office bottle out and poured myself a drink. Miss Riordan watched me with disapproval.
I was no longer a solid man. She didn’t say anything. I drank the drink and put
the bottle away again and sat down. “You didn’t offer me one,” she said
coolly. “Sorry. It’s only eleven o’clock or less.
I didn’t think you looked the type.” Her eyes crinkled at the corners. “Is that
a compliment?” “In my circle, yes.” She thought that over. It didn’t mean
anything to her. It didn’t mean anything to me either when I thought it over.
But the drink made me feel a lot better. She leaned forward and scraped her gloves
slowly across the glass of the desk. “You wouldn’t want to hire an assistant,
would you? Not if it only cost you a kind word now and then?” “No.” She nodded. “I thought probably you
wouldn’t. I’d better just give you my information and go on home.” I didn’t say anything. I lit my pipe
again. It makes you look thoughtful when you are not thinking. “First of all, it occurred to me that a
jade necklace like that would be a museum piece and would be well known,” she
said. I held the match in the air, still burning
and watching the flame crawl close to my fingers. Then I blew it out softly and
dropped it in the tray and said: “I didn’t say anything to you about a jade
necklace.” “No, but Lieutenant Randall did.” “Somebody ought to sew buttons on his
face.” “He knew my father. I promised not to
tell.” “You’re telling me.” “You knew already, silly.” Her hand suddenly flew up as if it was
going to fly to her mouth, but it only rose halfway and then fell back slowly
and her eyes widened. It was a good act, but I knew something else about her
that spoiled it. “You did know, didn’t you?” She breathed
the words, hushedly. “I thought it was diamonds. A bracelet, a
pair of earrings, a pendant, three rings, one of the rings with emeralds too.” “Not funny,” she said. “Not even fast.” “Fei Tsui jade. Very rare. Carved beads
about six carats apiece, sixty of them. Worth eighty thousand dollars.” “You have such nice brown eyes,” she said.
“And you think you’re tough.” “Well, who does it belong to and how did
you find out?” “I found out very simply. I thought the
best jeweler in town would probably know, so I went and asked the manager of
Block’s. I told him I was a writer and wanted to do an article on rare jade—you
know the line.” “So he believed your red hair and your
beautiful figure.” She flushed clear to the temples. “Well, he told me anyway. It belongs to a
rich lady who lives in Bay City, in an estate on the canyon. Mrs. Lewin
Lockridge Grayle. Her husband is an investment banker or something, enormously
rich, worth about twenty millions. He used to own a radio station in Beverly
Hills, Station KFDK, and Mrs. Grayle used to work there. He married her five
years ago. She’s a ravishing blonde. Mr. Grayle is elderly, liverish, stays
home and takes calomel while Mrs. Grayle goes places and has a good time.” “This manager of Block’s,” I said. “He’s a
fellow that gets around.” “Oh, I didn’t get all that from him,
silly. Just about the necklace. The rest I got from Giddy Gertie Arbogast.” I reached into the deep drawer and brought
the office bottle up again. “You’re not going to turn out to be one of
those drunken detectives, are you?” she asked anxiously. “Why not? They always solve their cases
and they never even sweat. Get on with the story.” “Giddy Gertie is the society editor of the
Chronicle. I’ve known him for years. He weighs two hundred and wears a Hitler
mustache. He got out his morgue file on the Grayles. Look.” She reached into her bag and slid a
photograph across the desk, a five-by-three glazed still. It was a blonde. A blonde to make a bishop
kick a hole in a stained glass window. She was wearing street clothes that
looked black and white, and a hat to match and she was a little haughty, but
not too much. Whatever you needed, wherever you happened to be—she had it.
About thirty years old. I poured a fast drink and burned my throat
getting it down. “Take it away,” I said. “I’ll start jumping.” “Why, I got it for you. You’ll want to see
her, won’t you?” I looked at it again. Then I slid it under
the blotter. “How about tonight at eleven?” “Listen, this isn’t just a bunch of gag
lines, Mr. Marlowe. I called her up. She’ll see you. On business.” “It may start out that way.” She made an impatient gesture, so I
stopped fooling around and got my battle-scarred frown back on my face. “What
will she see me about?” “Her necklace, of course. It was like
this. I called her up and had a lot of trouble getting to talk to her, of
course, but finally I did. Then I gave her the song and dance I had given the
nice man at Block’s and it didn’t take. She sounded as if she had a hangover.
She said something about talking to her secretary, but I managed to keep her on
the phone and ask her if it was true she had a Fei Tsui jade necklace. After a
while she said, yes. I asked if I might see it. She said, what for? I said my
piece over again and it didn’t take any better than the first time. I could
hear her yawning and bawling somebody outside the mouthpiece for putting me on.
Then I said I was working for Philip Marlowe. She said ‘So what?’ Just like
that.” “Incredible. But all the society dames
talk like tramps nowadays.” “I wouldn’t know,” Miss Riordan said
sweetly. “Probably some of them are tramps. So I asked her if she had a phone
with no extension and she said what business was it of mine. But the funny
thing was she hadn’t hung up on me.” “She had the jade on her mind and she
didn’t know what you were leading up to. And she may have heard from Randall
already.” Miss Riordan shook her head. “No, I called
him later and he didn’t know who owned the necklace until I told him. He was
quite surprised that I had found out.” “He’ll get used to you,” I said. “He’ll
probably have to. What then?” “So I said to Mrs. Grayle: ‘You’d still
like it back, wouldn’t you?’ Just like that. I didn’t know any other way to
say. I had to say something that would jar her a bit. It did. She gave me
another number in a hurry. And I called that and I said I’d like to see her.
She seemed surprised. So I had to tell her the story. She didn’t like it. But
she had been wondering why she hadn’t heard from Marriott. I guess she thought
he had gone south with the money or something. So I’m to see her at two
o’clock. Then I’ll tell her about you and how nice and discreet you are and how
you would be a good man to help her get it back, if there’s any chance and so
on. She’s already interested.” I didn’t say anything. I just stared at
her. She looked hurt. “What’s the matter? Did I do right?” “Can’t you get it through your head that
this is a police case now and that I’ve been warned to stay off it?” “Mrs. Grayle has a perfect right to employ
you, if she wants to.” “To do what?” She snapped and unsnapped her bag
impatiently. “Oh, my goodness—a woman like that—with her looks—can’t you see—”
She stopped and bit her lip. “What kind of man was Marriott?” “I hardly knew him. I thought he was a bit
of a pansy. I didn’t like him very well.” “Was he a man who would be attractive to
women?” “Some women. Others would want to spit.” “Well, it looks as if he might have been
attractive to Mrs. Grayle. She went out with him.” “She probably goes out with a hundred men.
There’s very little chance to get the necklace now.” “Why?” I got up and walked to the end of the
office and slapped the wall with the flat of my hand, hard. The clacking
typewriter on the other side stopped for a moment, and then went on. I looked
down through the open window into the shaft between my building and the Mansion
House Hotel. The coffee shop smell was strong enough to build a garage on. I
went back to my desk, dropped the bottle of whiskey back into the drawer, shut
the drawer and sat down again. I lit my pipe for the eighth or ninth time and
looked carefully across the half-dusted glass to Miss Riordan’s grave and
honest little face. You could get to like that face a lot.
Glamoured up blondes were a dime a dozen, but that was a face that would wear.
I smiled at it. “Listen, Anne. Killing Marriott was a dumb
mistake. The gang behind this holdup would never pull anything like that. What
must have happened was that some gowed-up run they took along for a gun-holder
lost his head. Marriott made a false move and some punk beat him down and it
was done so quickly nothing could be done to prevent it. Here is an organized
mob with inside information on jewels and the movements of the women that wear
them. They ask moderate returns and they would play ball. But here also is a
back alley murder that doesn’t fit at all. My idea is that whoever did it is a
dead man hours ago, with weights on his ankles, deep in the Pacific Ocean. And
either the jade went down with him or else they have some idea of its real
value and they have cached it away in a place where it will stay for a long
time—maybe for years before they dare bring it out again. Or, if the gang is
big enough, it may show up on the other side of the world. The eight thousand
they asked seems pretty low if they really know the value of the jade. But it
would be hard to sell. I’m sure of one thing. They never meant to murder
anybody.” Anne Riordan was listening to me with her
lips slightly parted and a rapt expression on her face, as if she was looking
at the Dalai Lhama. She closed her mouth slowly and nodded
once. “You’re wonderful,” she said softly. “But you’re nuts.” She stood up and gathered her bag to her.
“Will you go to see her or won’t you?” “Randall can’t stop me—if it comes from
her.” “All right. I’m going to see another
society editor and get some more dope on the Grayles if I can. About her love
life. She would have one, wouldn’t she?” The face framed in auburn hair was
wistful. “Who hasn’t?” I sneered. “I never had. Not really.” I reached up and shut my mouth with my
hand. She gave me a sharp look and moved towards the door. “You’ve forgotten something,” I said. She stopped and turned. “What?” She looked
all over the top of the desk. “You know damn well what.” She came back to the desk and leaned
across it earnestly. “Why would they kill the man that killed Marriott, if they
don’t go in for murder?” “Because he would be the type that would
get picked up sometime and would talk—when they took his dope away from him. I
mean they wouldn’t kill a customer.” “What makes you so sure the killer took
dope?” “I’m not sure. I just said that. Most
punks do.” “Oh.” She straightened up and nodded and
smiled. “I guess you mean these,” she said and reached quickly into her bag and
laid a small tissue bag package on the desk. I reached for it, pulled a rubber band off
it carefully and opened up the paper. On it lay three long thick Russian
cigarettes with paper mouthpieces. I looked at her and didn’t say anything. “I know I shouldn’t have taken them,” she
said almost breathlessly. “But I knew they were jujus. They usually come in
plain papers but lately around Bay City they have been putting them out like
this. I’ve seen several. I thought it was kind of mean for the poor man to be
found dead with marijuana cigarettes in his pocket.” “You ought to have taken the case too,” I
said quietly. “There was dust in it. And it being empty was suspicious.” “I couldn’t—with you there. I—I almost
went back and did. But I didn’t quite have the courage. Did it get you in
wrong?” “No,” I lied. “Why should it?” “I’m glad of that,” she said wistfully. “Why didn’t you throw them away?” She thought about it, her bag clutched to
her side, her wide-brimmed absurd hat tilted so that it hid one eye. “I guess it must be because I’m a cop’s
daughter,” she said at last. “You just don’t throw away evidence.” Her smile
was frail and guilty and her cheeks were flushed. I shrugged. “Well—” the word hung in the air, like
smoke in a closed room. Her lips stayed parted after saying it. I let it hang.
The flush on her face deepened. “I’m horribly sorry. I shouldn’t have done
it.” I passed that too. She went very quickly to the door and out.
14 I poked at one of the long Russian
cigarettes with a finger, then laid them in a neat row, side by side and
squeaked my chair. You just don’t throw away evidence. So they were evidence.
Evidence of what? That a man occasionally smoked a stick of tea, a man who
looked as if any touch of the exotic would appeal to him. On the other hand lots
of tough guys smoked marijuana, also lots of band musicians and high school
kids, and nice girls who had given up trying. American hashish. A weed that
would grow anywhere. Unlawful to cultivate now. That meant a lot in a country
as big as the U.S.A. I sat there and puffed my pipe and
listened to the clacking typewriter behind the wall of my office and the
bong-bong of the traffic lights changing on Hollywood Boulevard and spring
rustling in the air, like a paper bag blowing along a concrete sidewalk. They were pretty big cigarettes, but a lot
of Russians are, and marijuana is a coarse leaf. Indian hemp. American hashish.
Evidence. God, what hats the women wear. My head ached. Nuts. I got my penknife out and opened the small
sharp blade, the one I didn’t clean my pipe with, and reached for one of them.
That’s what a police chemist would do. Slit one down the middle and examine the
stuff under a microscope, to start with. There might just happen to be
something unusual about it. Not very likely, but what the hell, he was paid by
the month. I slit one down the middle. The mouthpiece
part was pretty tough to slit. Okay, I was a tough guy. I slit it anyway. See
if can you stop me. Out of the mouthpiece shiny segments of
rolled thin cardboard partly straightened themselves and had printing on them.
I sat up straight and pawed for them. I tried to spread them out on the desk in
order, but they slid around on the desk. I grabbed another of the cigarettes
and squinted inside the mouthpiece. Then I went to work with the blade of the
pocketknife in a different way. I pinched the cigarette down to the place where
the mouthpiece began. The paper was thin all the way, you could feel the grain
of what was underneath. So I cut the mouthpiece off carefully and then still
more carefully cut through the mouthpiece longways, but only just enough. It
opened out and there was another card underneath, rolled up, not touched this
time. I spread it out fondly. It was a man’s
calling card. Thin pale ivory, just off white. Engraved on that were delicately
shaded words. In the lower left hand corner a Stillwood Heights telephone
number. In the lower right hand corner the legend, “By Appointment Only.” In
the middle, a little larger, but still discreet: “Jules Amthor.” Below, a little
smaller: “Psychic Consultant.” I took hold of the third cigarette. This
time, with a lot of difficulty. I teased the card out without cutting anything.
It was the same. I put it back where it had been. I looked at my watch, put my pipe in an
ashtray, and then had to look at my watch again to see what time it was. I
rolled the two cut cigarettes and the cut card in part of the tissue paper, the
one that was complete with card inside in another part of the tissue paper and
locked both little packages away in my desk. I sat looking at the card. Jules Amthor,
Psychic Consultant, By Appointment Only, Stillwood Heights phone number, no
address. Three like that rolled inside three sticks of tea, in a Chinese or
Japanese silk cigarette case with an imitation tortoise-shell frame, a trade
article that might have cost thirty-five to seventy-five cents in any Oriental
store, Hooey Phooey Sing—Long Sing Tung, that kind of place, where a
nice-mannered Jap hisses at you, laughing heartily when you say that the Moon of
Arabia incense smells like the girls in Frisco Sadie’s back parlor. And all this in the pocket of a man who
was very dead, and who had another and genuinely expensive cigarette case
containing cigarettes which he actually smoked. He must have forgotten it. It didn’t make
sense. Perhaps it hadn’t belonged to him at all. Perhaps he had picked it up in
a hotel lobby. Forgotten he had it on him. Forgotten to turn it in. Jules
Amthor, Psychic Consultant. The phone rang and I answered it absently.
The voice had the cool hardness of a cop who thinks he is good. It was Randall.
He didn’t bark. He was the icy type. “So you didn’t know who that girl was last
night? And she picked you up on the boulevard and you walked over to there.
Nice lying, Marlowe.” “Maybe you have a daughter and you
wouldn’t like news cameramen jumping out of bushes and popping flashbulbs in
her face.” “You lied to me.” “It was a pleasure.” He was silent a moment, as if deciding
something. “We’ll let that pass,” he said. “I’ve seen her. She came in and told
me her story. She’s the daughter of a man I knew and respected, as it happens.”
“She told you,” I said, “and you told
her.” “I told her a little,” he said coldly.
“For a reason. I’m calling you for the same reason. This investigation is going
to be undercover. We have a chance to break this jewel gang and we’re going to
do it.” “Oh, it’s a gang murder this morning.
Okay.” “By the way, that was marijuana dust in
that funny cigarette case—the one with the dragons on it. Sure you didn’t see
him smoke one out of it?” “Quite sure. In my presence he smoked only
the others. But he wasn’t in my presence all the time.” “I see. Well, that’s all. Remember what I
told you last night. Don’t try getting ideas about this case. All we want from
you is silence. Otherwise—” He paused. I yawned into the mouthpiece. “I heard that,” he snapped. “Perhaps you
think I’m not in a position to make that stick. I am. One false move out of you
and you’ll be locked up as a material witness.” “You mean the papers are not to get the
case?” “They’ll get the murder—but they won’t
know what’s behind it.” “Neither do you,” I said. “I’ve warned you twice now,” be said. “The
third time is out.” “You’re doing a lot of talking,” I said,
“for a guy that holds cards.” I got the phone hung in my face for that.
Okay, the hell with him, let him work at it. I walked around the office a little to
cool off, bought myself a short drink, looked at my watch again and didn’t see
what time it was, and sat down at the desk once more. Jules Amthor, Psychic Consultant.
Consultations by Appointment Only. Give him enough time and pay him enough
money and he’ll cure anything from a jaded husband to a grasshopper plague. He
would be an expert in frustrated love affairs, women who slept alone and didn’t
like it, wandering boys and girls who didn’t write home, sell the property now
or hold it for another year, will this part hurt me with my public or make me
seem more versatile? Men would sneak in on him too, big strong guys that roared
like lions around their offices and were all cold mush under their vests. But
mostly it would be women, fat women that panted and thin women that burned, old
women that dreamed and young women that thought they might have Electra
complexes, women of all sizes, shapes and ages, but with one thing in
common—money; No Thursdays at the County Hospital for Mr. Jules Amthor. Cash on
the line for him. Rich bitches who had to be dunned for their milk bills would
pay him right now. A fakeloo artist, a hoopla spreader, and a
lad who had his card rolled up inside sticks of tea, found on a dead man. This was going to be good. I reached for
the phone and asked the 0-operator for the Stillwood Heights number. 15 A woman’s voice answered, a dry,
husky-sounding foreign voice: “’Allo.” “May I talk to Mr. Amthor?” “Ah no. I regret. I am ver-ry sor-ry.
Amthor never speaks upon the telephone. I am hees secretary. Weel I take the
message?” “What’s the address out there? I want to
see him.” “Ah, you weesh to consult Amthor
professionally? He weel be ver-ry pleased. But he ees ver-ry beesy. When you
weesh to see him?” “Right away. Sometime today.” “Ah,” the voice regretted, “that cannot
be. The next week per’aps. I weel look at the book.” “Look,” I said, “never mind the book You
‘ave the pencil?” “But certainly I ‘ave the pencil. I—” “Take this down. My name is Philip
Marlowe. My address is 615 Cahuenga Building, Hollywood. That’s on Hollywood
Boulevard near Ivar. My phone number is Glenview 7537.” I spelled the hard ones
and waited. “Yes, Meester Marlowe. I ‘ave that.” “I want to see Mr. Amthor about a man
named Marriott.” I spelled that too. “It is very urgent. It is a matter of life
and death. I want to see him fast. F-a-s-t—fast. Sudden, in other words. Am I
clear?” “You talk ver-ry strange,” the foreign
voice said. “No.” I took hold of the phone standard
and shook it. “I feel fine. I always talk like that. This is a very queer
business. Mr. Amthor will positively want to see me. I’m a private detective.
But I don’t want to go to the police until I’ve seen him.” “Ah,” the voice got as cool as a cafeteria
dinner. “You are of the police, no.” “Listen,” I said. “I am of the police, no.
I am a private detective. Confidential. But it is very urgent just the same.
You call me back, no? You ‘ave the telephone number, yes?” “Si. I ‘ave the telephone number. Meester
Marriott—he ees sick.” “Well, he’s not up and around,” I said.
“So you know him?” “But no. You say a matter of life and
death. Amthor he cure many people—” “This is one time he flops,” I said. “I’ll
be waiting for a call.” I hung up and lunged for the office
bottle. I felt as if I had been through a meat grinder. Ten minutes passed. The
phone rang. The voice said: “Amthor he weel see you at six o’clock.” “That’s fine. What’s the address?” “He weel send a car.” “I have a car of my own. Just give me—” “He weel send a car,” the voice said
coldly, and the phone clicked in my ear. I looked at my watch once more. It was
more than time for lunch. My stomach burned from the last drink. I wasn’t
hungry. I lit a cigarette. It tasted like a plumber’s handkerchief. I nodded
across the office at Mr. Rembrandt, then I reached for my hat and went out. I
was halfway to the elevator before the thought hit me. It hit me without any
reason or sense, like a dropped brick. I stopped and leaned against the marbled
wall and pushed my hat around on my head and suddenly I laughed. A girl passing me on the way from the
elevators back to her work turned and gave me one of those looks which are
supposed to make your spine feel like a run in a stocking. I waved my hand at
her and went back to my office and grabbed the phone. I called up a man I knew
who worked on the Lot Books of a title company. “Can you find a property by the address
alone?” I asked him. “Sure. We have a cross index. What is it?”
“1644 West 54th Place. I’d like
to know a little something about the condition of the title.” “I’d better call you back. What’s that
number?” He called back in about three minutes. “Get your pencil out,” he said. “It’s Lot
8 of Block 11 of Caraday’s Addition to the Maplewood Tract Number 4. The owner
of record, subject to certain things, is Jessie Pierce Florian, widow.” “Yeah. What things?” “Second half taxes, two ten-year street improvement
bonds, one storm drain assessment bond also ten year, none of these
delinquents, also a first trust deed of $2600.” “You mean one of those things where they
can sell you out on ten minutes’ notice?” “Not quite that quick, but a lot quicker
than a mortgage. There’s nothing unusual about it except the amount. It’s high
for that neighborhood, unless it’s a new house.” “It’s a very old house and in bad repair,”
I said. “I’d say fifteen hundred would buy the place.” “Then it’s distinctly unusual, because the
refinancing was done only four years ago.” “Okay, who holds it? Some investment
company?” “No. An individual. Man named Lindsay
Marriott, a single man. Okay?” I forget what I said to him or what thanks
I made. They probably sounded like words. I sat there, just staring at the
wall. My stomach suddenly felt fine. I was
hungry. I went down to the Mansion House Coffee Shop and ate lunch and got my
car out of the parking lot next to my building. I drove south and east, towards West 54th
Place. I didn’t carry any liquor with me this time. 16 The block looked just as it had looked the
day before. The street was empty except for an ice truck, two Fords in
driveways, and a swirl of dust going around a corner. I drove slowly past No.
1644 and parked farther along and studied the houses on either side of mine. I
walked back and stopped in front of it, looking at the tough palm tree and the
drab unwatered scrap of lawn. The house seemed empty, but probably wasn’t. It
just had that look. The lonely rocker on the front porch stood just where it
had stood yesterday. There was a throw-away paper on the walk. I picked it up
and slapped it against my leg and then I saw the curtain move next door, in the
near front window. Old Nosey again. I yawned and tilted my
hat down. A sharp nose almost flattened itself against the inside of the glass.
White hair above it, and eyes that were just eyes from where I stood. I
strolled along the sidewalk and the eyes watched me. I turned in towards her
house. I climbed the wooden steps and rang the bell. The door snapped open as if it had been on
a spring. She was a tall old bird with a chin like a rabbit. Seen from close
her eyes were as sharp as lights on still water. I took my hat off. “Are you the lady who called the police
about Mrs. Florian?” She stared at me coolly and missed nothing
about me, probably not even the mole on my right shoulder blade. “I ain’t sayin’ I am, young man, and I
ain’t sayin’ I ain’t. Who are you?” It was a high twangy voice, made for
talking over an eight party line. “I’m a detective.” “Land’s sakes. Why didn’t you say so?
What’s she done now? I ain’t seen a thing and I ain’t missed a minute. Henry
done all the goin’ to the store for me. Ain’t been a sound out of there.” She snapped the screen door unhooked and
drew me in. The hall smelled of furniture oil. It had a lot of dark furniture
that had once been in good style. Stuff with inlaid panels and scallops at the
corners. We went into a front room that had cotton lace antimacassars pinned on
everything you could stick a pin into. “Say, didn’t I see you before?” she asked
suddenly, a note of suspicion crawling around in her voice. “Sure enough I did.
You was the man that—” “That’s right. And I’m still a detective.
Who’s Henry?” “Oh, he’s just a little colored boy that
goes errands for me. Well, what you want, young man?” She patted a clean red
and white apron and gave me the beady eye. She clicked her store teeth a couple
of times for practice. “Did the officers come here yesterday
after they went to Mrs. Florian’s house?” “What officers?” “The uniformed officers,” I said
patiently. “Yes, they was here a minute. They didn’t
know nothing.” “Describe the big man to me—the one that
had a gun and made you call up.” She described him, with complete accuracy.
It was Malloy all right. “What kind of car did he drive?” “A little car. He couldn’t hardly get into
it.” “That’s all you can say? This man’s a
murderer!” Her mouth gaped, but her eyes were
pleased. “Land’s sakes, I wish I could tell you, young man. But I never knew
much about cars. Murder, eh? Folks ain’t safe a minute in this town. When I
come here twenty-two years ago we didn’t lock our doors hardly. Now it’s
gangsters and crooked police and politicians fightin’ each other with machine
guns, so I’ve heard. Scandalous is what it is, young man.” “Yeah. What do you know about Mrs.
Florian?” The small mouth puckered. “She ain’t
neighborly. Plays her radio loud late nights. Sings. She don’t talk to
anybody.” She leaned forward a little. “I’m not positive, but my opinion is she
drinks liquor.” “She have many visitors?” “She don’t have no visitors at all.” “You’d know, of course, Mrs.—” “Mrs. Morrison. Land’s sakes, yes. What
else have I got to do but look out of the windows?” “I bet it’s fun. Mrs. Florian has lived
here a long time—” “About ten years, I reckon. Had a husband
once. Looked like a bad one to me. He died.” She paused and thought “I guess he
died natural,” she added. “I never heard different.” “Left her money?” Her eyes receded and her chin followed
them. She sniffed hard. “You been drinkin’ liquor,” she said coldly. “I just had a tooth out. The dentist gave
it to me.” “I don’t hold with it.” “It’s bad stuff, except for medicine,” I
said. “I don’t hold with it for medicine
neither.” “I think you’re right,” I said. “Did he
leave her money? Her husband?” “I wouldn’t know.” Her mouth was the size
of a prune and as smooth. I had lost out. “Has anybody at all been there since the
officers?” “Ain’t seen.” “Thank you very much, Mrs. Morrison. I
won’t trouble you any more now. You’ve been very kind and helpful.” I walked out of the room and opened the
door. She followed me and cleared her throat and clicked her teeth a couple
more times. “What number should I call?” she asked,
relenting a little. “University 4-5000. Ask for Lieutenant
Nulty. What does she live on—relief?” “This ain’t a relief neighborhood,” she
said coldly. “I bet that side piece was the admiration
of Sioux Falls once,” I said, gazing at a carved sideboard that was in the hall
because the dining room was too small for it. It had curved ends, thin carved
legs, was inlaid all ever, and had a painted basket of fruit on the front. “Mason City,” she said softly. “Yessir, we
had a nice home once, me and George. Best there was.” I opened the screen door and stepped
through it and thanked her again. She was smiling now. Her smile was as sharp
as her eyes. “Gets a registered letter first of every
month,” she said suddenly. I turned and waited. She leaned towards
me. “I see the mailman go up to the door and get her to sign. First day of
every month. Dresses up then and goes out. Don’t come home till all hours.
Sings half the night. Times I could have called the police it was so loud.” I patted the thin malicious arm. “You’re one in a thousand, Mrs. Morrison,”
I said. I put my hat on, tipped it to her and left. Halfway down the walk I
thought of something and swung back. She was still standing inside the screen
door, with the house door open behind her. I went back up on the steps. “Tomorrow’s the first,” I said. “First of
April. April Fool’s Day. Be sure to notice whether she gets her registered
letter, will you, Mrs. Morrison?” The eyes gleamed at me. She began to
laugh—a high-pitched old woman’s laugh. “April Fool’s Day,” she tittered.
“Maybe she won’t get it.” I left her laughing. The sound was like a
hen having hiccups. 17 Nobody answered my ring or knock next
door. I tried again. The screen door wasn’t hooked. I tried the house door. It
was unlocked. I stepped inside. Nothing was changed, not even the smell of
gin. There were still no bodies on the floor. A dirty glass stood on the table
beside the chair where Mrs. Florian had sat yesterday. The radio was turned
off. I went over to the davenport and felt down behind the cushions. The same
dead soldier and another one with him now. I called out. No answer. Then I thought I
heard a long slow unhappy breathing that was half groaning. I went through the
arch and sneaked into the little hallway. The bedroom door was partly open and
the groaning sound came from behind it. I stuck my head in and looked. Mrs. Florian was in bed. She was lying
flat on her back with a cotton comforter pulled up to her chin. One of the
little fluff balls on the comforter was almost in her mouth. Her long yellow
face was slack, half dead. Her dirty hair straggled on the pillow. Her eyes
opened slowly and looked at me with no expression. The room had a sickening
smell of sleep, liquor and dirty clothes. A sixty-nine cent alarm clock ticked
on the peeling gray-white paint of the bureau. It ticked loud enough to shake
the walls. Above it a mirror showed a distorted view of the woman’s face. The
trunk from which she had taken the photos was still open. I said: “Good afternoon, Mrs. Florian. Are
you sick?” She worked her lips slowly, rubbed one
over the other, then slid a tongue out and moistened them and worked her jaws.
Her voice came from her mouth sounding like a worn-out phonograph record. Her
eyes showed recognition now, but not pleasure. “You get him?” “The Moose?” “Sure.” “Not yet. Soon, I hope.” She screwed her eyes up and then snapped
them open as if trying to get rid of a film over them. “You ought to keep your house locked up,”
I said. “He might come back.” “You think I’m scared of the Moose, huh?” “You acted like it when I was talking to
you yesterday.” She thought about that. Thinking was weary
work. “Got any liquor?” “No, I didn’t bring any today, Mrs.
Florian. I was a little low on cash.” “Gin’s cheap. It hits.” “I might go out for some in a little
while. So you’re not afraid of Malloy?” “Why would I be?” “Okay, you’re not. What are you afraid
of?” Light snapped into her eyes, held for a
moment, and faded out again. “Aw beat it. You coppers give me an ache in the
fanny.” I said nothing. I leaned against the door
frame and put a cigarette in my mouth and tried to jerk it up far enough to hit
my nose with it. This is harder than it looks. “Coppers,” she said slowly, as if talking
to herself, “will never catch that boy. He’s good and he’s got dough and he’s
got friends. You’re wasting your time, copper.” “Just the routine,” I said. “It was
practically a self-defense anyway. Where would he be?” She snickered and wiped her mouth on the
cotton comforter. “Soap now,” she said. “Soft stuff. Copper
smart. You guys still think it gets you something.” “I liked the Moose,” I said. Interest flickered in her eyes. “You know
him?” “I was with him yesterday—when he killed
the nigger over on Central.” She opened her mouth wide and laughed her
head off without making any more sound than you would make cracking a
breadstick. Tears ran out of her eyes and down her face. “A big strong guy,” I said. “Soft-hearted
in spots too. Wanted his Velma pretty bad.” The eyes veiled. “Thought it was her folks
was looking for her,” she said softly. “They are. But she’s dead, you said.
Nothing there. Where did she die?” “Dalhart, Texas. Got a cold and went to
the chest and off she went.” “You were there?” “Hell, now. I just heard.” “Oh. Who told you, Mrs. Florian?” “Some hoofer. I forget the name right now.
Maybe a good stiff drink might help some. I feel like Death Valley.” “And you look like a dead mule,” I
thought, but didn’t say it out loud. “There’s just one more thing,” I said,
“then I’ll maybe run out for some gin. I looked up the title to your house, I
don’t know just why.” She was rigid under the bedclothes, like a
wooden woman. Even her eyelids were frozen half down over the clogged iris of
her eyes. Her breath stilled. “There’s a rather large trust deed on it,”
I said. “Considering the low value of property around here. It’s held by a man
named Lindsay Marriott.” Her eyes blinked rapidly, but nothing else
moved. She stared. “I used to work for him,” she said at last.
“I used to be a servant in his family. He kind of takes care of me a little.” I took the unlighted cigarette out of my
mouth and looked at it aimlessly and stuck it back in. “Yesterday afternoon, a few hours after I
saw you, Mr. Marriott called me up at my office. He offered me a job.” “What kind of job?” Her voice croaked now,
badly. I shrugged. “I can’t tell you that.
Confidential. I went to see him last night.” “You’re a clever son of a bitch,” she said
thickly and moved a hand under the bedclothes. I stared at her and said nothing. “Copper-smart,” she sneered. I ran a hand up and down the doorframe. It
felt slimy. Just touching it made me want to take a bath. “Well, that’s all,” I said smoothly. “I
was just wondering how come. Might be nothing at all. Just a coincidence. It
just looked as if it might mean something.” “Copper-smart,” she said emptily. “Not a
real copper at that. Just a cheap shamus.” “I suppose so,” I said. “Well, goodbye,
Mrs. Florian. By the way, I don’t think you’ll get a registered letter tomorrow
morning.” She threw the bedclothes aside and jerked
upright with her eyes blazing. Something glittered in her right hand. A small
revolver, a Banker’s Special. It was old and worn, but looked business-like. “Tell it,” she snarled. “Tell it fast.” I looked at the gun and the gun looked at
me. Not too steadily. The hand behind it began to shake, but the eyes still
blazed. Saliva bubbled at the corners of her mouth. “You and I could work together,” I said. The gun and her jaw dropped at the same
time. I was inches from the door. While the gun was still dropping, I slid
through it and beyond the opening. “Think it over,” I called back. There was no sound, no sound of any kind. I went fast back through the hall and
dining room and out of the house. My back felt queer as I went down the walk.
The muscles crawled. Nothing happened. I went along the street
and got into my car and drove away from there. The last day of March and hot enough for
summer. I felt like taking my coat off as I drove. In front of the 77th
Street Station, two prowl car men were scowling at a bent front fender. I went
in through the swing doors and found a uniformed lieutenant behind the railing
looking over the charge sheet. I asked him if Nulty was upstairs. He said he thought he was, was I a friend
of his? I said yes. He said Okay, go on up, so I went up the
worn stairs and along the corridor and knocked at the door. The voice yelled
and I went in. He was picking his teeth, sitting in one
chair with his feet on the other. He was looking at his left thumb, holding it
up in front of his eyes and at arm’s length. The thumb looked all right to me,
but Nulty’s stare was gloomy, as if he thought it wouldn’t get well. He lowered it to his thigh and swung his feet
to the floor and looked at me instead of at his thumb. He wore a dark gray suit
and a mangled cigar end was waiting on the desk for him to get through with the
toothpick. I turned the felt seat cover that lay on
the other chair with its straps not fastened to anything, sat down, and put a
cigarette in my face. “You,” Nulty said, and looked at his
toothpick, to see if it was chewed enough. “Any luck?” “Malloy? I ain’t on it any more.” “Who is?” “Nobody ain’t. Why? The guy’s lammed. We
got him on the teletype and they got readers out. Hell, he’ll be in Mexico long
gone.” “Well, all he did was kill a Negro,” I
said. “I guess that’s only a misdemeanor.” “You still interested? I thought you was
workin’?” His pale eyes moved damply over my face. “I had a job last night, but it didn’t
last. Have you still got that Pierrot photo?” He reached around and pawed under his
blotter. He held it out. It still looked pretty. I stared at the face. “This is really mine,” I said. “If you
don’t need it for the file, I’d like to keep it.” “Should be in the file, I guess,” Nulty
said. “I forgot about it. Okay, keep it under your hat. I passed the file in.” I put the photo in my breast pocket and
stood up. “Well, I guess that’s all,” I said, a little too airily. “I smell something,” Nulty said coldly. I looked at the piece of rope on the edge
of his desk. His eyes followed my look. He threw the toothpick on the floor and
stuck the chewed cigar in his mouth. “Not this either,” he said. “It’s a vague hunch. If it grows more
solid, I won’t forget you.” “Things is tough. I need a break, pal.” “A man who works as hard as you deserves
one,” I said. He struck a match on his thumbnail, looked
pleased because it caught the first time, and started inhaling smoke from the
cigar. “I’m laughing,” Nulty said sadly, as I
went out. The hall was quiet, the whole building was
quiet. Down in front the prowl car men were still looking at their bent fender.
I drove back to Hollywood. The phone was ringing as I stepped into
the office. I leaned down over the desk and said, “Yes?” “Am I addressing Mr. Philip Marlowe?” “Yes, this is Marlowe.” “This is Mrs. Grayle’s residence. Mrs.
Lewin Lockridge Grayle. Mrs. Grayle would like to see you here as soon as
convenient.” “Where?” “The address is Number 862 Aster Drive, in
Bay City. May I say you will arrive within the hour?” “Are you Mr. Grayle?” “Certainly not, sir. I am the butler.” “That’s me you hear ringing the doorbell,”
I said. 18 It was close to the ocean and you could feel
the ocean in the air but you couldn’t see water from the front of the place.
Aster Drive had a long smooth curve there and the houses on the inland side
were just nice houses, but on the canyon side they were great silent estates,
with twelve foot walls and wrought-iron gates and ornamental hedges; and
inside, if you could get inside, a special brand of sunshine, very quiet, put
up in noise-proof containers just for the upper classes. A man in a dark blue Russian tunic and
shiny black puttees and flaring breeches stood in the half-open gates. He was a
dark, good-looking lad, with plenty of shoulders and shiny smooth hair and the
peak on his rakish cap made a soft shadow over his eyes. He had a cigarette in
the corner of his mouth and he held his head tilted a little, as if he liked to
keep the smoke out of his nose. One hand had a smooth black gauntlet on it and
the other was bare. There was a heavy ring on his third finger. There was no number in sight, but this
should be 862. I stopped my car and leaned out and asked him. It took him a
long time to answer. He had to look me over very carefully. Also the car I was
driving. He came over to me and as he came he carelessly dropped his ungloved
hand towards his hip. It was the kind of carelessness that was meant to be
noticed. He stopped a couple of feet away from my
car and looked me over again. “I’m looking for the Grayle residence,” I
said. “This is it. Nobody in.” “I’m expected.” He nodded. His eyes gleamed like water.
“Name?” “Philip Marlowe.” “Wait there.” He strolled, without hurry,
over to the gates and unlocked an iron door set into one of the massive
pillars. There was a telephone inside. He spoke briefly into it, snapped the
door shut, and came back to me. “You have some identification.” I let him look at the license on the
steering post. “That doesn’t prove anything,” he said. “How do I know it’s your
car?” I pulled the key out of the ignition and
threw the door open and got out. That put me about a foot from him. He had a
nice breath. Haig and Haig at least. “You’ve been at the side boy again,” I
said. He smiled. His eyes measured me. I said: “Listen, I’ll talk to the butler over that
phone and he’ll know my voice. Will that pass me in or do I have to ride on
your back?” “I just work here,” he said softly. “If I
didn’t—” he let the rest hang in the air, and kept on smiling. “You’re a nice lad,” I said and patted his
shoulder. “Dartmouth or Dannemora?” “Christ,” he said. “Why didn’t you say you
were a cop?” We both grinned. He waved his hand and I
went in through the half open gate. The drive curved and tall molded hedges of
dark green completely screened it from the street and from the house. Through a
green gate I saw a Jap gardener at work weeding a huge lawn. He was pulling a
piece of weed out of the vast velvet expanse and sneering at it the way Jap
gardeners do. Then the tall hedge closed in again and I didn’t see anything
more for a hundred feet. Then the hedge ended in a wide circle in which half a
dozen cars were parked. One of them was a small coupe. There were
a couple of very nice two-tone Buicks of the latest model, good enough to go
for the mail in. There was a black limousine, with dull nickel louvers and
hubcaps the size of bicycle wheels. There was a long sport phaeton with the top
down. A short very wide all-weather concrete driveway led from these to the
side entrance of the house. Off to the left, beyond the parking space
there was a sunken garden with a fountain at each of the four corners. The
entrance was barred by a wrought-iron gate with a flying Cupid in the middle.
There were busts on light pillars and a stone seat with crouching griffins at
each end. There was an oblong pool with stone water lilies in it and a big
stone bullfrog sitting on one of the leaves. Still farther a rose colonnade led
to a thing like an altar, hedged in at both sides, yet not so completely but
that the sun lay in an arabesque along the steps of the altar. And far over to
the left there was a wild garden, not very large, with a sundial in the corner
near an angle of wall that was built to look like a ruin. And there were
flowers. There were a million flowers. The house itself was not so much. It was
smaller than Buckingham Palace, rather gray for California, and probably had
fewer windows than the Chrysler Building. I sneaked over to the side entrance and
pressed a bell and somewhere a set of chimes made a deep mellow sound like
church bells. A man in a striped vest and gilt buttons
opened the door, bowed, took my hat and was through for the day. Behind him in
dimness, a man in striped knife-edged pants and a black coat and wing collar
with gray striped tie leaned his gray head forward about half an inch and said:
“Mr. Marlowe? If you will come this way, please—” We went down a hall. It was a very quiet
hail. Not a fly buzzed in it. The floor was covered with Oriental rugs and
there were paintings along the walls. We turned a corner and there was more
hall. A french window showed a gleam of blue water far off and I remembered
almost with a shock that we were near the Pacific Ocean and that this house was
on the edge of one of the canyons. The butler reached a door and opened it
against voices and stood aside and I went in. It was a nice room with large
chesterfields and lounging chairs done in pale yellow leather arranged around a
fireplace in front of which, on the glossy but not slippery floor, lay a rug as
thin as silk and as old as Aesop’s aunt. A jet of flowers glistened in a
corner, another on a low table, the walls were of dull painted parchment, there
was comfort, space, coziness, a dash of the very modern and a dash of the very
old, and three people sitting in a sudden silence watching me cross the floor. One of them was Anne Riordan, looking just
as I had seen her last, except that she was holding a glass of amber fluid in
her hand. One was a tall thin sad-faced man with a stony chin and deep eyes and
no color in his face but an unhealthy yellow. He was a good sixty, or rather a
bad sixty. He wore a dark business suit, a red carnation, and looked subdued. The third was the blonde. She was dressed
to go out, in a pale greenish blue. I didn’t pay much attention to her clothes.
They were what the guy designed for her and she would go to the right man. The
effect was to make her look very young and to make her lapis lazuli eyes look
very blue. Her hair was of the gold of old paintings and had been fussed with
just enough but not too much. She had a full set of curves which nobody had
been able to improve on. The dress was rather plain except for a clasp of
diamonds at the throat. Her hands were not small, but they had shape, and the
nails were the usual jarring note—almost magenta. She was giving me one of her
smiles. She looked as if she smiled easily, but her eyes had a still look, as
if they thought slowly and carefully. And her mouth was sensual. “So nice of you to come,” she said. “This
is my husband. Mix Mr. Marlowe a drink, honey.” Mr. Grayle shook hands with me. His hand
was cold and a little moist. His eyes were sad. He mixed a Scotch and soda and
handed it to me. Then he sat down in a corner and was
silent. I drank half of the drink and grinned at Miss Riordan. She looked at me
with a sort of absent expression, as if she had another clue. “Do you think you can do anything for us?”
the blonde asked slowly, looking down into her glass. “If you think you can,
I’d be delighted. But the loss is rather small, compared with having any more
fuss with gangsters and awful people.” “I don’t know very much about it really,”
I said. “Oh, I hope you can.” She gave me a smile
I could feel in my hip pocket. I drank the other half of my drink. I
began to feel rested. Mrs. Grayle rang a bell set into the arm of the leather
chesterfield and a footman came in. She half pointed to the tray. He looked
around and mixed two drinks. Miss Riordan was still playing cute with the same
one and apparently Mr. Grayle didn’t drink. The footman went out. Mrs. Grayle and I held our glasses. Mrs.
Grayle crossed her legs, a little carelessly. “I don’t know whether I can do anything,”
I said. “I doubt it. What is there to go on?” “I’m sure you can.” She gave me another
smile. “How far did Lin Marriott take you into his confidence?” She looked sideways at Miss Riordan. Miss
Riordan just couldn’t catch the look. She kept right on sitting. She looked
sideways the other way. Mrs. Grayle looked at her husband. “Do you have to
bother with this, honey?” Mr. Grayle stood up and said he was very
glad to have met me and that he would go and lie down for a while. He didn’t
feel very well. He hoped I would excuse him. He was so polite I wanted to carry
him out of the room just to show my appreciation. He left. He closed the door softly, as if
he was afraid to wake a sleeper. Mrs. Grayle looked at the door for a moment
and then put the smile back on her face and looked at me. “Miss Riordan is in your complete
confidence, of course.” “Nobody’s In my complete confidence, Mrs.
Grayle. She happens to know about this case—what there is to know.” “Yes.” She drank a sip or two, then
finished her glass at a swallow and set it aside. “To hell with this polite drinking,” she
said suddenly. “Let’s get together on this. You’re a very good-looking man to
be in your sort of racket.” “It’s a smelly business,” I said. “I didn’t quite mean that. Is there any
money in it—or is that impertinent?” “There’s not much money in it. There’s a
lot of grief. But there’s a lot of fun too. And there’s always a chance of a
big case.” “How does one get to be a private
detective? You don’t mind my sizing you up a little? And push that table over
here, will you? So I can reach the drinks.” I got up and pushed the huge silver tray
on a stand across the glossy floor to her side. She made two more drinks. I
still had half of my second. “Most of us are ex-cops,” I said. “I
worked for the D.A. for a while. I got fired.” She smiled nicely. “Not for incompetence,
I’m sure.” “No, for talking back. Have you had any
more phone calls?” “Well—” She looked at Anne Riordan. She
waited. Her look said things. Anne Riordan stood up. She carried her
glass, still full, over to the tray and set it down. “You probably won’t run
short,” she said. “But if you do—and thanks very much for talking to me, Mrs.
Grayle. I won’t use anything. You have my word for it.” “Heavens, you’re not leaving,” Mrs. Grayle
said with a smile. Anne Riordan took her lower lip between
her teeth and held it there for a moment as if making up her mind whether to
bite it off and spit it out or leave it on a while longer. “Sorry, afraid I’ll have to. I don’t work
for Mr. Marlowe, you know. Just a friend. Goodbye, Mrs. Grayle.” The blonde gleamed at her. “I hope you’ll
drop in again soon. Any time.” She pressed the bell twice. That got the butler.
He held the door open. Miss Riordan went out quickly and the door
closed. For quite a while after it closed, Mrs. Grayle stared at it with a
faint smile. “It’s much better this way, don’t you think?” she said after an
interval of silence. I nodded. “You’re probably wondering how
she knows so much if she’s just a friend,” I said. “She’s a curious little
girl. Some of it she dug out herself, like who you were and who owned the jade
necklace. Some of it just happened. She came by last night to that dell where
Marriott was killed. She was out riding. She happened to see a light and came
down there.” “Oh.” Mrs. Grayle lifted a glass quickly
and made a face. “It’s horrible to think of. Poor Lin. He was rather a heel.
Most of one’s friends are. But to die like that is awful.” She shuddered. Her
eyes got large and dark. “So it’s all right about Miss Riordan. She
won’t talk. Her father was chief of police here for a long time,” I said. “Yes. So she told me. You’re not
drinking.” “I’m doing what I call drinking.” “You and I should get along. Did Lin—Mr.
Marriott—tell you how the hold-up happened?” “Between here and the Trocadero somewhere.
He didn’t say exactly. Three or four men.” She nodded her golden gleaming head. “Yes.
You know there was something rather funny about that holdup. They gave me back
one of my rings, rather a nice one, too.” “He told me that.” “Then again I hardly ever wore the jade.
After all, it’s a museum piece, probably not many like it in the world, a very
rare type of jade. Yet they snapped at it. I wouldn’t expect them to think it
had any value much, would you?” “They’d know you wouldn’t wear it
otherwise. Who knew about its value?” She thought. It was nice to watch her
thinking. She still had her legs crossed, and still carelessly. “All sorts of people, I suppose.” “But they didn’t know you would be wearing
it that night? Who knew that?” She shrugged her pale blue shoulders. I
tried to keep my eyes where they belonged. “My maid. But she’s had a hundred chances.
And I trust her—” “Why?” “I don’t know. I just trust some people. I
trust you.” “Did you trust Marriott?” Her face got a little hard. Her eyes a
little watchful. “Not in some things. In others, yes. There are degrees.” She
had a nice way of talking, cool, half-cynical, and yet not hardboiled. She
rounded her words well. “All right—besides the maid. The
chauffeur?” She shook her head, no. “Lin drove me that
night, in his own car. I don’t think George was around at all. Wasn’t it
Thursday?” “I wasn’t there. Marriott said four or
five days before in telling me about it. Thursday would have been an even week
from last night.” “Well, it was Thursday.” She reached for
my glass and her fingers touched mine a little, and were soft to the touch.
“George gets Thursday evening off. That’s the usual day, you know.” She poured
a fat slug of mellow-looking Scotch into my glass and squirted in some
fizz-water. It was the kind of liquor you think you can drink forever, and all
you do is get reckless. She gave herself the same treatment. “Lin told you my name?” she asked softly, the
eyes still watchful. “He was careful not to.” “Then he probably misled you a little
about the time. Let’s see what we have. Maid and chauffeur out. Out of
consideration as accomplices, I mean.” “They’re not out by me.” “Well, at least I’m trying,” she laughed.
“Then there’s Newton, the butler. He might have seen it on my neck that night.
But it hangs down rather low and I was wearing a white fox evening wrap; no, I
don’t think he could have seen it.” “I bet you looked like a dream,” I said. “You’re not getting a little tight, are
you?” “I’ve been known to be soberer.” She put her head back and went off into a
peal of laughter. I have only known four women in my life who could do that and
still look beautiful. She was one of them. “Newton is Okay,” I said. “His type don’t
run with hoodlums. That’s just guessing, though. How about the footman?” She thought and remembered, then shook her
head. “He didn’t see me.” “Anybody ask you to wear the jade?” Her eyes instantly got more guarded.
“You’re not fooling me a damn bit,” she said. She reached for my glass to refill it. I
let her have it, even though it still had an inch to go. I studied the lovely
lines of her neck. When she had filled the glasses and we
were playing with them again I said, “Let’s get the record straight and then
I’ll tell you something. Describe the evening.” She looked at her wristwatch, drawing a
full-length sleeve back to do it. “I ought to be—” “Let him wait.” Her eyes flashed at that. I liked them
that way. “There’s such a thing as being just a little too frank,” she said. “Not in my business. Describe the evening.
Or have me thrown out on my ear. One or the other. Make your lovely mind up.” “You’d better sit over here beside me.” “I’ve been thinking that a long time,” I
said. “Ever since you crossed your legs, to be exact.” She pulled her dress down. “These damn
things are always up around your neck.” I sat beside her on the yellow leather
chesterfield. “Aren’t you a pretty fast worker?” she asked quietly. I didn’t answer her. “Do you do much of this sort of thing?”
she asked with a sidelong look. “Practically none. I’m a Tibetan monk, in
my spare time.” “Only you don’t have any spare time.” “Let’s focus,” I said. “Let’s get what’s
left of our minds—or mine—on the problem. How much are you going to pay me?” “Oh, that’s the problem. I thought you
were going to get my necklace back. Or try to.” “I have to work in my own way. This way.”
I took a long drink and it nearly stood me on my head. I swallowed a little
air. “And investigate a murder,” I said. “That has nothing to do with it. I mean
that’s a police affair, isn’t it?” “Yeah—only the poor guy paid me a hundred
bucks to take care of him—and I didn’t. Makes me feel guilty. Makes we want to
cry. Shall I cry?” “Have a drink.” She poured us some more
Scotch. It didn’t seem to affect her any more than water affects Boulder Dam. “Well, where have we got to?” I said,
trying to hold my glass so that the whiskey would stay inside it. “No maid, no
chauffeur, no butler, no footman. We’ll be doing our own laundry next. How did
the holdup happen? Your version might have a few details Marriott didn’t give
me.” She leaned forward and cupped her chin in
her hand. She looked serious without looking silly-serious. “We went to a party in Brentwood Heights.
Then Lin suggested we run over to the Troc for a few drinks and a few dances.
So we did. They were doing some work on Sunset and it was very dusty. So coming
back Lin dropped down to Santa Monica. That took us past a shabby looking hotel
called the Hotel Indio, which I happened to notice for some silly meaningless
reason. Across the street from it was a beer joint and a car was parked in
front of that.” “Only one car—in front of a beer joint?” “Yes. Only one. It was a very dingy place.
Well, this car started up and followed us and of course I thought nothing of
that either. There was no reason to. Then before we got to where Santa Monica
turns into Arguello Boulevard, Lin said, ‘Let’s go over the other road’ and
turned up some curving residential street. Then all of a sudden a car rushed by
us and grazed the fender and then pulled over to stop. A man in an overcoat and
scarf and hat low on his face came back to apologize. It was a white scarf
bunched out and it drew my eyes. It was about all I really saw of him except
that he was tall and thin. As soon as he got close—and I remembered afterwards
that he didn’t walk in our headlights at all—” “That’s natural. Nobody likes to look into
headlights. Have a drink. My treat this time.” She was leaning forward, her fine
eyebrows—not daubs of paint—drawn together in a frown of thought. I made two
drinks. She went on: “As soon as he got close to the side where
Lin was sitting he jerked the scarf up over his nose and a gun was shining at
us. ‘Stick-up,’ he said. ‘Be very quiet and everything will be jake.’ Then
another man came over on the other side.” “In Beverly Hills,” I said, “the best
policed four square miles in California.” She shrugged. “It happened just the same.
They asked for my jewelry and bag. The man with the scarf did. The one on my
side never spoke at all. I passed the things across Lin and the man gave me
back my bag and one ring. He said to hold off calling the police and insurance
people for a while. They would make us a nice smooth easy deal. He said they
found it easier to work on a straight percentage. He seemed to have all the
time in the world. He said they could work through the insurance people, if
they had to, but that meant cutting in a shyster, and they preferred not to. He
sounded like a man with some education.” “It might have been Dressed-Up Eddie,” I
said. “Only he got bumped off in Chicago.” She shrugged. We had a drink. She went on.
“Then they left and we went home and I
told Lin to keep quiet about it. The next day I got a call. We have two phones,
one with extensions and one in my bedroom with no extensions. The call was on
this. It’s not listed, of course.” I nodded. “They can buy the number for a
few dollars. It’s done all the time. Some movie people have to change their
numbers every month.” We had a drink. “I told the man calling to take it up with
Lin and he would represent me and if they were not too unreasonable, we might
deal. He said Okay, and from then on I guess they just stalled long enough to
watch us a little. Finally, as you know, we agreed on eight thousand dollars
and so forth.” “Could you recognize any of them?” “Of course not” “Randall know all this?” “Of course. Do we have to talk about it
any more? It bores me.” She gave me the lovely smile. “Did he make any comment?” She yawned. “Probably. I forget.” I sat with my empty glass in my hand and
thought. She took it away from me and started to fill it again. I took the refilled glass out of her hand
and transferred it to my left and took hold of her left hand with my right. It
felt smooth and soft and warm and comforting. It squeezed mine. The muscles in
it were strong. She was a well built woman, and no paper flower. “I think he had an idea, she said. “But he
didn’t say what it was.” “Anybody would have an idea out of all
that,” I said. She turned her head slowly and looked at
me. Then she nodded. “You can’t miss it, can you?” “How long have you known him?” “Oh, years. He used to be an announcer at
the station my husband owned. KFDK. That’s where I met him. That’s where I met
my husband too.” “I knew that. But Marriott lived as if he
had money. Not riches, but comfortable money.” “He came into some and quit radio
business.” “Do you know for a fact he came into
money—or was that just something he said?” She shrugged. She squeezed my hand. “Or it may not have been very much money
and he may have gone through it pretty fast.” I squeezed her hand back. “Did he
borrow from you?” “You’re a little old-fashioned, aren’t you?”
She looked down at the hand I was holding. “I’m still working. And your Scotch is so
good it keeps me half-sober. Not that I’d have to be drunk—” “Yes.” She drew her hand out of mine and
rubbed it. “You must have quite a clutch—in your spare time. Lin Marriott was a
high-class blackmailer, of course. That’s obvious. He lived on women.” “He had something on you?” “Should I tell you?” “It probably wouldn’t be wise.” She laughed. “I will, anyhow. I got a
little tight at his house once and passed out. I seldom do. He took some photos
of me—with my clothes up to my neck.” “The dirty dog,” I said. “Have you got any
of them handy?” She slapped my wrist. She said softly: “What’s your name?” “Phil. What’s yours?” “Helen. Kiss me.” She fell softly across my lap and I bent
down over her face and began to browse on it. She worked her eyelashes and made
butterfly kisses on my cheeks. When I got to her mouth it was half open and
burning and her tongue was a darting snake between her teeth. The door opened and Mr. Grayle stepped
quietly into the room. I was holding her and didn’t have a chance to let go. I
lifted my face and looked at him. I felt as cold as Finnegan’s feet, the day
they buried him. The blonde in my arms didn’t move, didn’t
even close her lips. She had a half-dreamy, half-sarcastic expression on her
face. Mr. Grayle cleared his throat slightly and
said: “I beg your pardon, I’m sure,” and went quietly out of the room. There
was an infinite sadness in his eyes. I pushed her away and stood up and got my
handkerchief out and mopped my face. She lay as I had left her, half sideways
along the davenport, the skin showing in a generous sweep above one stocking. “Who was that?” she asked thickly. “Mr. Grayle.” “Forget him.” I went away from her and sat down in the
chair I had sat in when I first came into the room. After a moment she straightened herself
out and sat up and looked at me steadily. “It’s all right. He understands. What the
hell can he expect?” “I guess he knows.” “Well, I tell you it’s all right. Isn’t
that enough? He’s a sick man. What the hell—” “Don’t go shrill on me. I don’t like
shrill women.” She opened a bag lying beside her and took
out a small handkerchief and wiped her lips, then looked at her face in a
mirror. “I guess you’re right,” she said. “Just too much Scotch. Tonight at the
Belvedere Club. Ten o’clock.” She wasn’t looking at me. Her breath was fast. “Is that a good place?” “Laird Brunette owns it I know him pretty
well.” “Right,” I said. I was still cold. I felt
nasty, as if I had picked a poor man’s pocket. She got a lipstick out and touched her
lips very lightly and then looked at me along her eyes. She tossed the mirror.
I caught it and looked at my face. I worked at it with my handkerchief and
stood up to give her back the mirror. She was leaning back, showing all her
throat, looking at me lazily down her eyes. “What’s the matter?” “Nothing. Ten o’clock at the Belvedere
Club. Don’t be too magnificent. All I have is a dinner suit. In the bar?” She nodded, her eyes still lazy. I went across the room and out, without
looking back. The footman met me in the hall and gave me my hat, looking like
the Great Stone Face. 19 I walked down the curving driveway and
lost myself in the shadow of the tall trimmed hedges and came to the gates.
Another man was holding the fort now, a husky in plainclothes, an obvious
bodyguard. He let me out with a nod. A horn tooted. Miss Riordan’s coupe was
drawn up behind my car. I went over there and looked in at her. She looked cool
and sarcastic. She sat there with her hands on the wheel,
gloved and slim. She smiled. “I waited. I suppose it was none of my
business. What did you think of her?” “I bet she snaps a mean garter.” “Do you always have to say things like
that?” She flushed bitterly. “Sometimes I hate men. Old men, young men,
football players, opera tenors, smart millionaires, beautiful men who are
gigolos and almost-heels who are—private detectives.” I grinned at her sadly. “I know I talk too
smart. It’s in the air nowadays. Who told you he was a gigolo?” “Who?” “Don’t be obtuse. Marriott.” “Oh, it was a cinch guess. I’m sorry. I
don’t mean to be nasty. I guess you can snap her garter any time you want to,
without much of a struggle. But there’s one thing you can be sure of—you’re a
late comer to the show.” The wide curving street dozed peacefully
in the sun. A beautifully painted panel truck slid noiselessly to a stop before
a house across the street, then backed a little and went up the driveway to a
side entrance. On the side of the panel truck was painted the legend. “Bay City
Infant Service.” Anne Riordan leaned towards me, her
gray-blue eyes hurt and clouded. Her slightly too long upper lip pouted and
then pressed back against her teeth. She made a sharp little sound with her
breath. “Probably you’d like me to mind my own business, is that it? And not
have ideas you don’t have first. I thought I was helping a little.” “I don’t need any help. The police don’t
want any from me. There’s nothing I can do for Mrs. Grayle. She has a yarn
about a beer parlor where a car started from and followed them, but what does
that amount to? It was a crummy dive on Santa Monica. This was a high-class
mob. There was somebody in it that could even tell Fei Tsui jade when he saw
it.” “If he wasn’t tipped off.” “There’s that too,” I said, and fumbled a
cigarette out of a package. “Either way there’s nothing for me in it.” “Not even about psychics?” I stared rather blankly. “Psychics?” “My God,” she said softly. “And I thought
you were a detective.” “There’s a hush on part of this,” I said.
“I’ve got to watch my step. This Grayle packs a lot of dough in his pants. And
law is where you buy it in this town. Look at the funny way the cops are
acting. No build-up, no newspaper handout, no chance for the innocent stranger
to step in with the trifling clue that turns out to be all important. Nothing
but silence and warnings to me to lay off. I don’t like it at all.” “You got most of the lipstick off,” Anne
Riordan said. “I mentioned psychics. Well, goodbye. It was nice to know you—in
a way.” She pressed her starter button and jammed
her gears in and was gone in a swirl of dust. I watched her go. When she was gone I
looked across the street. The man from the panel truck that said Bay City
Infant Service came out of the side door of the house dressed in a uniform so
white and stiff and gleaming that it made me feel clean just to look at it. He
was carrying a carton of some sort. He got into his panel truck and drove away.
I figured he had just changed a diaper. I got into my own car and looked at my
watch before starting up. It was almost five. The Scotch, as good enough Scotch will,
stayed with me all the way back to Hollywood. I took the red lights as they
came. “There’s a nice little girl,” I told
myself out loud, in the car, “for a guy that’s interested in a nice little
girl.” Nobody said anything. “But I’m not,” I said. Nobody said anything to
that either. “Ten o’clock at the Belvedere Club,” I said. Somebody said:
“Phooey.” It sounded like my voice. It was a quarter to six when I reached my
office again. The building was very quiet. The typewriter beyond the party wall
was still. I lit a pipe and sat down to wait. 20 The Indian smelled. He smelled clear
across the little reception room when the buzzer sounded and I opened the door
between to see who it was. Ho stood just inside the corridor door looking as if
he had been cast in bronze. He was a big man from the waist up and he had a big
chest. He looked like a bum. He wore a brown suit of which the coat was
too small for his shoulders and his trousers were probably a little tight at
the waist. His hat was at least two sizes too small and had been perspired in
freely by somebody it fitted better than it fitted him. He wore it about where
a house wears a wind vane. His collar had the snug fit of a horse-collar and
was of about the same shade of dirty brown. A tie dangled outside his buttoned
jacket, a black tie which had been tied with a pair of pliers in a knot the
size of a pea. Around his bare and magnificent throat, above the dirty collar,
he wore a wide piece of black ribbon, like an old woman trying to freshen up
her neck. He had a big flat face and a high bridged
fleshy nose that looked as hard as the prow of a cruiser. He had lidless eyes,
drooping jowls, the shoulders of a blacksmith and the short and apparent
awkward legs of a chimpanzee. I found out later that they were only short. If he had been cleaned up a little and
dressed in a white nightgown, he would have looked like a very wicked Roman
senator. His smell was the earthy smell of
primitive man, and not the slimy dirt of cities. “Huh,” he said. “Come quick. Come now.” I backed into my office and wiggled my
finger at him and he followed me making as much noise as a fly makes walking on
the wall. I sat down behind my desk and squeaked my swivel chair professionally
and pointed to the customer’s chair on the other side. He didn’t sit down. His
small black eyes were hostile. “Come where?” I said. “Huh. Me Second Planting. Me Hollywood
Indian.” “Have a chair, Mr. Planting.” He snorted and his nostrils got very wide.
They had been wide enough for mouse holes to start with. “Name Second Planting. Name no Mister
Planting.” “What can I do for you?” He lifted his voice and began to intone in
a deep-chested sonorous boom. “He say come quick. Great white father say come
quick. He say me bring you in fiery chariot. He say—” “Yeah. Cut out the pig Latin,” I said.
“I’m no schoolmarm at the snake dances.” “Nuts,” the Indian said. We sneered at each other across the desk
for a moment. He sneered better than I did. Then he removed his hat with
massive disgust and turned it upside down. He rolled a finger around under the
sweatband. That turned the sweatband up into view, and it had not been
misnamed. He removed a paper clip from the edge and threw a fold of tissue
paper on the desk. He pointed at it angrily, with a well-chewed fingernail. His
lank hair had a shelf around it, high up, from the too-tight hat. I unfolded the piece of tissue paper and
found a card inside. The card was no news to me. There had been three exactly
like it in the mouth-pieces of three Russian-appearing cigarettes. I played with my pipe, stared at the
Indian and tried to ride him with my stare. He looked as nervous as a brick
wall. “Okay, what does he want?” “He want you come quick. Come now. Come in
fiery—” “Nuts,” I said. The Indian liked that. He closed his mouth
slowly and winked an eye solemnly and then almost grinned. “Also it will cost him a hundred bucks as
a retainer,” I added, trying to look as if that was a nickel. “Huh?” Suspicious again. Stick to basic
English. “Hundred dollars,” I said. “Iron men.
Fish. Bucks to the number of one hundred. Me no money, me no come. Savvy?” I began
to count a hundred with both hands. “Huh. Big shot,” the Indian sneered. He worked under his greasy hatband and
threw another fold of tissue paper on the desk. I took it and unwound it. It
contained a brand new hundred-dollar bill. The Indian put his hat back on his head
without bothering to tuck the hatband back in place. It looked only slightly
more comic that way. I sat staring at the hundred-dollar bill, with my mouth
open. “Psychic is right,” I said at last. “A guy
that smart I’m afraid of.” “Not got all day,” the Indian remarked,
conversationally. I opened my desk and took out a Colt .38 automatic of the
type known as Super Match. I hadn’t worn it to visit Mrs. Lewin Lockridge
Grayle. I stripped my coat off and strapped the leather harness on and tucked
the automatic down inside it and strapped the lower strap and put my coat back
on again. This meant as much to the Indian as if I
had scratched my neck. “Gottum car,” he said. “Big car.” “I don’t like big cars any more,” I said.
“I gottum own car.” “You come my car,” the Indian said
threateningly. “I come your car,” I said. I locked the desk and office up, switched
the buzzer off and went out, leaving the reception room door unlocked as usual.
We went along the hall and down in the
elevator. The Indian smelled. Even the elevator operator noticed it. 21 The car was a dark blue seven-passenger
sedan, a Packard of the latest model, custom-built. It was the kind of car you
wear your rope pearls in. It was parked by a fire hydrant and a dark foreign-looking
chauffeur with a face of carved wood was behind the wheel. The interior was
upholstered in quilted gray chenille. The Indian put me in the back. Sitting
there alone I felt like a high-class corpse, laid out by an undertaker with a
lot of good taste. The Indian got in beside the chauffeur and
the car turned in the middle of the block and a cop across the street said:
“Hey,” weakly, as if he didn’t mean it, and then bent down quickly to tie his
shoe. We went west, dropped over to Sunset and slid
fast and noiselessly along that. The Indian sat motionless beside the
chauffeur. An occasional whiff of his personality drifted back to me. The
driver looked as if he was half asleep but he passed the fast boys in the
convertible sedans as though they were being towed. They turned on all the
green lights for him. Some drivers are like that. He never missed one. We curved through the bright mile or two
of the Strip, past the antique shops with famous screen names on them, past the
windows full of point lace and ancient pewter, past the gleaming new nightclubs
with famous chefs and equally famous gambling rooms, run by polished graduates
of the Purple Gang, past the Georgian-Colonial vogue, now old hat, past the
handsome modernistic buildings in which the Hollywood flesh-peddlers never stop
talking money, past a drive-in lunch which somehow didn’t belong, even though
the girls wore white silk blouses and drum majorettes’ shakos and nothing below
the hips but glazed kid Hessian boots. Past all this and down a wide smooth
curve to the bridle path of Beverly Hills and lights to the south, all colors
of the spectrum and crystal clear in an evening without fog, past the shadowed
mansions up on the hills to the north, past Beverly Hills altogether and up
into the twisting foothill boulevard and the sudden cool dusk and the drift of
wind from the sea. It had been a warm afternoon, but the heat
was gone. We whipped past a distant cluster of lighted buildings and an endless
series of lighted mansions, not too close to the road. We dipped down to skirt
a huge green polo field with another equally huge practice field beside it,
soared again to the top of a hill and swung mountainward up a steep hill road
of clean concrete that passed orange groves, some rich man’s pet because this
is not orange country, and then little by little the lighted windows of the
millionaires’ homes were gone and the road narrowed and this was Stillwood
Heights. The smell of sage drifted up from a canyon
and made me think of a dead man and a moonless sky. Straggly stucco houses were
molded flat to the side of the hill, like bas-reliefs. Then there were no more
houses, just the still dark foothills with an early star or two above them, and
the concrete ribbon of road and a sheer drop on one side into a tangle of scrub
oak and manzanita where sometimes you can hear the call of the quails if you
stop and keep still and wait. On the other side of the road was a raw clay bank
at the edge of which a few unbeatable wild flowers hung on like naughty children
that won’t go to bed. Then the road twisted into a hairpin and
the big tires scratched over loose stones, and the car tore less soundlessly up
a long driveway lined with the wild geraniums. At the top of this, faintly
lighted, lonely as a lighthouse, stood an aerie, an eagle’s nest, an angular
building of stucco and glass brick, raw and modernistic and yet not ugly and
altogether a swell place for a psychic consultant to hang out his shingle.
Nobody would be able to hear any screams. The car turned beside the house and a
light flicked on over a black door set into the heavy wall. The Indian climbed
out grunting and opened the rear door of the car. The chauffeur lit a cigarette
with an electric lighter and a harsh smell of tobacco came back to me softly in
the evening. I got out. We went over to the black door. It opened
of itself slowly, almost with menace. Beyond it a narrow hallway probed back
into the house. Light glowed from the glass brick walls. The Indian growled. “Huh. You go in, big
shot.” “After you, Mr. Planting.” He scowled and went in and the door closed
after us as silently and mysteriously as it had opened. At the end of the
narrow hallway we squeezed into a little elevator and the Indian closed the
door and pressed a button. We rose softly, without sound. Such smelling as the
Indian had done before was a moon-cast shadow to what he was doing now. The elevator stopped, the door opened.
There was light and I stepped out into a turret room where the day was still
trying to be remembered. There were windows all around it. Far off the sea
flickered. Darkness prowled slowly on the hills. There were paneled walls where
there were no windows, and rugs on the floor with the soft colors of old
Persians, and there was a reception desk that looked as if it had been made of
carvings stolen from an ancient church. And behind the desk a woman sat and
smiled at me, a dry tight withered smile that would turn to powder if you
touched it. She had sleek coiled hair and a dark,
thin, wasted Asiatic face. There were heavy colored stones in her ears and
heavy rings on her fingers, including a moonstone and an emerald in a silver
setting that may have been a real emerald but somehow managed to look as phony
as a dime store slave bracelet. And her hands were dry and dark and not young
and not fit for rings. She spoke. The voice was familiar. “Ah,
Meester Marlowe, so ver-ry good of you to come. Amthor he weel be so ver-ry
pleased.” I laid the hundred dollar bill the Indian
had given me down on the desk. I looked behind me. The Indian had gone down
again in the elevator. “Sorry. It was a nice thought, but I can’t
take this.” “Amthor he—he weesh to employ you, is it
not?” She smiled again. Her lips rustled like tissue paper. “I’d have to find out what the job is
first.” She nodded and got up slowly from behind
the desk. She swished before me in a tight dress that fitted her like a
mermaid’s skin and showed that she had a good figure if you like them four
sizes bigger below the waist. “I weel conduct you,” she said. She pressed a button in the paneling and a
door slid open noiselessly. There was a milky glow beyond it, I looked back at
her smile before I went through. It was older than Egypt now. The door slid
silently shut behind me. There was nobody in the room. It was octagonal, draped in black velvet
from floor to ceiling, with a high remote black ceiling that may have been of
velvet too. In the middle of a coal black lusterless rug stood an octagonal
white table, just large enough for two pairs of elbows and in the middle of it
a milk white globe on a black stand. The light came from this. How, I couldn’t
see. On either side of the table there was a white octagonal stool which was a
smaller edition of the table. Over against one wall there was one more such
stool. There were no windows. There was nothing else in the room, nothing at
all. On the walls there was not even a light fixture. If there were other
doors, I didn’t see them. I looked back at the one by which I had come in. I
couldn’t see that either. I stood there for perhaps fifteen seconds
with the faint obscure feeling of being watched. There was probably a peephole
somewhere, but I couldn’t spot it. I gave up trying. I listened to my breath.
The room was so still that I could hear it going through my nose, softly, like
little curtains rustling. Then an invisible door on the far side of
the room slid open and a man stepped through and the door closed behind him.
The man walked straight to the table with his head down and sat on one of the
octagonal stools and made a sweeping motion with one of the most beautiful
hands I have ever seen. “Please be seated. Opposite me. Do not
smoke and do not fidget. Try to relax, completely. Now how may I serve you?” I sat down, got a cigarette into my mouth
and rolled it along my lips without lighting it. I looked him over. He was
thin, tall and straight as a steel rod. He had the palest finest white hair I
ever saw. It could have been strained through silk gauze. His skin was as fresh
as a rose petal. He might have been thirty-five or sixty-five. He was ageless.
His hair was brushed straight back from as good a profile as Barrymore ever
had. His eyebrows were coal black, like the walls and ceiling and floor. His
eyes were deep, far too deep. They were the depthless drugged eyes of the
somnambulist. They were like a well I read about once. It was nine hundred
years old, in an old castle. You could drop a stone into it and wait. You could
listen and wait and then you would give up waiting and laugh and then just as
you were ready to turn away a faint, minute splash would come back up to you
from the bottom of that well, so tiny, so remote that you could hardly believe
a well like that possible. His eyes were deep like that. And they
were also eyes without expression, without soul, eyes that could watch lions
tear a man to pieces and never change, that could watch a man impaled and
screaming in the hot sun with his eyelids cut off. He wore a double-breasted black business
suit that had been cut by an artist. He stared vaguely at my fingers. “Please do not fidget,” he said. “It
breaks the waves, disturbs my concentration.” “It makes the ice melt, the butter run and
the cat squawk,” I said. He smiled the faintest smile in the world.
“You didn’t come here to be impertinent, I’m sure.” “You seem to forget why I did come. By the
way, I gave that hundred dollar bill back to your secretary. I came, as you may
recall, about some cigarettes. Russian cigarettes filled with marijuana. With
your card rolled in the hollow mouthpiece. “You wish to find out why that happened?” “Yeah. I ought to be paying you the
hundred dollars.” “That will not be necessary. The answer is
simple. There are things I do not know. This is one of them.” For a moment I almost believed him. His
face was as smooth as an angel’s wing. “Then why send me a hundred dollars—and a
tough Indian that stinks—and a car? By the way, does the Indian have to stink?
If he’s working for you, couldn’t you sort of get him to take a bath?” “He is a natural medium. They are
rare—like diamonds, and like diamonds, are sometimes found in dirty places. I
understand you are a private detective?” “Yes.” “I think you are a very stupid person. You
look stupid. You are in a stupid business. And you came here on a stupid mission.”
“I get it,” I said. “I’m stupid. It sank
in after a while.” “And I think I need not detain you any
longer.” “You’re not detaining me,” I said. “I’m
detaining you. I want to know why those cards were in those cigarettes.” He shrugged the smallest shrug that could
be shrugged. “My cards are available to anybody. I do not give my friends
marijuana cigarettes. Your question remains stupid.” “I wonder if this would brighten it up
any. The cigarettes were in a cheap Chinese or Japanese case of imitation
tortoiseshell. Ever see anything like that?” “No. Not that I recall.” “I can brighten it up a little more. The
case was in the pocket of a man named Lindsay Marriott. Ever hear of him?” He thought. “Yes. I tried at one time to
treat him for camera shyness. He was trying to get into pictures. It was a
waste of time. Pictures did not want him.” “I can guess that,” I said. “He would
photograph like Isadora Duncan. I’ve still got the big one left. Why did you
send me the C-note.” “My dear Mr. Marlowe,” he said coldly, “I
am no fool. I sin in a very sensitive profession. I am a quack. That is to say
I do things which the doctors in their small frightened selfish guild cannot
accomplish. I am in danger at all times—from people like you. I merely wish to
estimate the danger before dealing with it.” “Pretty trivial in my case, huh?” “It hardly exists,” he said politely and
made a peculiar motion with his left hand which made my eyes jump at it. Then
he put it down very slowly on the white table and looked at it. Then he raised
his depthless eyes again and folded his arms. “Your hearing—” “I smell it now,” I said. “I wasn’t
thinking of him.” I turned my head to the left. The Indian
was sitting on the third white stool against the black velvet. He had some kind of a white smock on him
over his other clothes. He was sitting without a movement, his eyes dosed, his
head bent forward a little, as if he had been asleep for an hour. His dark
strong face was full of shadows. I looked back at Amthor. He was smiling
his minute smile. “I bet that makes the dowagers shed their
false teeth,” I said. “What does he do for real money—sit on your knee and sing
French songs?” He made an impatient gesture. “Get to the
point, please.” “Last night Marriott hired me to go with
him on an expedition that involved paying some money to some crooks at a spot
they picked. I got knocked on the head. When I came out of it Marriott had been
murdered.” Nothing changed much in Amthor’s face. He
didn’t scream or run up the walls. But for him the reaction was sharp. He
unfolded his arms and refolded them the other way. His mouth looked grim. Then
he sat like a stone lion outside the Public Library. “The cigarettes were found on him,” I
said. He looked at me coolly. “But not by the
police, I take it. Since the police have not been here.” “Correct.” “The hundred dollars,” he said very
softly, “was hardly enough.” “That depends what you expect to buy with
it” “You have these cigarettes with you?” “One of them. But they don’t prove anything.
As you said, anybody could get your cards. I’m just wondering why they were
where they were. Any ideas?” “How well did you know Mr. Marriott?” he
asked softly. “Not at all. But I had ideas about him.
They were so obvious they stuck out.” Amthor tapped lightly on the white table.
The Indian still slept with his chin on his huge chest, his heavy-lidded eyes
tight shut. “By the way, did you ever meet a Mrs.
Grayle, a wealthy lady who lives in Bay City?” He nodded absently. “Yes, I treated her
centers of speech. She had a very slight impediment.” “You did a sweet job on her,” I said. “She
talks as good as I do.” That failed to amuse him. He still tapped
on the table. I listened to the taps. Something about them I didn’t like. They
sounded like a code. He stopped, folded his arms again and leaned back against
the air. “What I like about this job everybody
knows everybody,” I said. “Mrs. Grayle knew Marriott too.” “How did you find that out?” he asked
slowly. I didn’t say anything. “You will have to tell the police—about
those cigarettes,” he said. I shrugged. “You are wondering why I do not have you
thrown out,” Amthor said pleasantly. “Second Planting could break your neck
like a celery stalk. I am wondering myself. You seem to have some sort of theory.
Blackmail I do not pay. It buys nothing—and I have many friends. But naturally
there are certain elements which would like to show me in a bad light.
Psychiatrists, sex specialists, neurologists, nasty little men with rubber
hammers and shelves loaded with the literature of aberrations. And of course
they are all—doctors. While I am still a—quack. What is your theory?” I tried to stare him down, but it couldn’t
be done; I felt myself licking my lips. He shrugged lightly. “I can’t blame you
for wanting to keep it to yourself. This is a matter that I must give thought
to. Perhaps you are a much more intelligent man than I thought. I also make
mistakes. In the meantime—” He leaned forward and put a hand on each side of
the milky globe. “I think Marriott was a blackmailer of
women,” I said. “And finger man for a jewel mob. But who told him what women to
cultivate—so that he would know their comings and goings, get intimate with
them, make love to them, make them load up with the ice and take them out, and
then slip to a phone and tell the boys where to operate?” “That,” Amthor said carefully, “is your
picture of Marriott—and of me. I am slightly disgusted.” I leaned forward until my face was not
more than a foot from his. “You’re in a racket. Dress it up all you please and
it’s still a racket. And it wasn’t just the cards, Amthor. As you say, anybody
could get those. It wasn’t the marijuana. You wouldn’t be in a cheap line like
that—not with your chances. But on the back of each card there is a blank space.
And on blank spaces, or even on written ones, there is sometimes invisible
writing.” He smiled bleakly, but I hardly saw it.
His hands moved over the milky bowl. The light went out. The room was as black
as Carry Nation’s bonnet. 22 I kicked my stool back and stood up and
jerked the gun out of the holster under my arm. But it was no good. My coat was
buttoned and I was too slow. I’d have been too slow anyway, if it came to
shooting anybody. There was a soundless rush of air and an
earthy smell. In the complete darkness the Indian hit me from behind and pinned
my arms to my sides. He started to lift me. I could have got the gun out still
and fanned the room with blind shots, but I was a long way from friends. It
didn’t seem as if there was any point in it. I let go of the gun and took hold of his
wrists. They were greasy and hard to hold. The Indian breathed gutturally and
set me down with a jar that lifted the top of my head. He had my wrists now,
instead of me having his. He twisted them behind me fast and a knee like a
corner stone went into my back. He bent me. I can be bent. I’m not the City
Hall. He bent me. I tried to yell, for no reason at all.
Breath panted in my throat and couldn’t get out. The Indian threw me sideways
and got a body scissors on me as I fell. He had me in a barrel. His hands went
to my neck. Sometimes I wake up in the night. I feel them there and I smell the
smell of him. I feel the breath fighting and losing and the greasy fingers
digging in. Then I get up and take a drink and turn the radio on. I was just about gone when the light
flared on again, blood red, on account of the blood in my eyeballs and at the
back of them. A face floated around and a hand pawed me delicately, but the
other hands stayed on my throat. A voice said softly, “Let him breathe—a
little.” The fingers slackened. I wrenched loose
from them. Something that glinted hit me on the side of the jaw. The voice said softly: “Get him on his
feet.” The Indian got me on my feet. He pulled me
back against the wall, holding me by both twisted wrists. “Amateur,” the voice said softly and the
shiny thing that was as hard and bitter as death hit me again, across the face.
Something warm trickled. I licked at it and tasted iron and salt. A hand explored my wallet. A hand explored
all my pockets. The cigarette in tissue paper came out and was unwrapped. It
went somewhere in the haze that was in front of me. “There were three cigarettes?” the voice
said gently, and the shining thing hit my jaw again. “Three,” I gulped. “Just where did you say the others were?” “In my desk—at the office.” The shiny thing hit me again. “You are
probably lying—but I can find out.” Keys shone with funny little red lights in
front of me. The voice said: “Choke him a little more.” The iron fingers went into my throat. I
was strained back against him, against the smell of him and the hard muscles of
his stomach. I reached up and took one of his fingers and tried to twist it. The voice said softly: “Amazing. He’s
learning.” The glinting thing swayed through the air
again. It smacked my jaw, the thing that had once been my jaw. “Let him go. He’s tame,” the voice said. The heavy strong arms dropped away and I
swayed forward and took a step and steadied myself. Amthor stood smiling very
slightly, almost dreamily in front of me. He held my gun in his delicate,
lovely hand. He held it pointed at my chest. “I could teach you,” he said in his soft
voice. “But to what purpose? A dirty little man in a dirty little world. One
spot of brightness on you and you would still be that. Is it not so?” He
smiled, so beautifully. I swung at his smile with everything I had
left. It wasn’t so bad considering. He reeled
and blood came out of both his nostrils. Then he caught himself and
straightened up and lifted the gun again. “Sit down, my child,” he said softly. “I
have visitors coming. I am so glad you hit me. It helps a great deal.” I felt for the white stool and sat down
and put my head down on the white table beside the milky globe which was now
shining again softly. I stared at it sideways, my face on the table. The light
fascinated me. Nice light, nice soft light. Behind me and around me there was nothing
but silence. I think I went to sleep, just like that, with a bloody face on the
table, and a thin beautiful devil with my gun in his hand watching me and
smiling. 23 “All right,” the big one said. “You can
quit stalling now.” I opened my eyes and sat up. “Out in the other room, pally.” I stood up, still dreamy. We went
somewhere, through a door. Then I saw where it was—the reception room with the
windows all around. It was black dark now outside. The woman with the wrong rings sat at her
desk. A man stood beside her. “Sit here, pally.” He pushed me down. It was a nice chair,
straight but comfortable but I wasn’t in the mood for it. The woman behind the
desk had a notebook open and was reading out loud from it. A short elderly man
with a dead-pan expression and a gray mustache was listening to her. Amthor was standing by a window, with his
back to the room, looking out at the placid line of the ocean, far off, beyond
the pier lights, beyond the world. He looked at it as if he loved it. He half
turned his head to look at me once, and I could see that the blood had been
washed off his face, but his nose wasn’t the nose I had first met, not by two
sizes. That made me grin, cracked lips and all. “You got fun, pally?” I looked at what made the sound, what was
in front of me and what had helped me get where I was. He was a windblown
blossom of some two hundred pounds with freckled teeth and the mellow voice of
a circus barker. He was tough, fast and he ate red meat. Nobody could push him
around. He was the kind of cop who spits on his blackjack every night instead
of saying his prayers. But he had humorous eyes. He stood in front of me splay-legged,
holding my open wallet in his hand, making scratches on the leather with his
nails as if he just liked to spoil things. Little things, if they were all he
had. But probably faces would give him more fun. “Peeper, huh, pally? From the big bad
burg, huh? Little spot of blackmail, huh?” His hat was on the back of his head. He
had dusty brown hair darkened by sweat on his forehead. His humorous eyes were
flecked with red veins. My throat felt as though it had been
through a mangle. I reached up and felt it. That Indian. He had fingers like
pieces of tool steel. The dark woman stopped reading out of her
notebook and closed it. The elderly smallish man with the gray mustache nodded
and came over to stand behind the one who was talking to me. “Cops?” I asked, rubbing my chin. “What do you think, pally?” Policeman’s humor. The small one had a
cast in one eye, and it looked half blind. “Not L.A.,” I said, looking at him. “That
eye would retire him in Los Angeles.” The big man handed me my wallet. I looked
through it. I had all the money still. All the cards. It had everything that
belonged in it. I was surprised. “Say something, pally,” the big one said.
“Something that would make us get fond of you.” “Give me back my gun.” He leaned forward a little and thought. I
could see him thinking. It hurt his corns. “Oh, you want your gun, pally?” He
looked sideways at the one with the gray mustache. “He wants his gun,” he told
him. He looked at me again. “And what would you want your gun for, pally?” “I want to shoot an Indian.” “Oh, you want to shoot an Indian, pally.” “Yeah—just one Indian, pop.” He looked at the one with the mustache
again. “This guy is very tough,” he told him. “He wants to shoot an Indian.” “Listen, Hemingway, don’t repeat
everything I say,” I said. “I think the guy is nuts,” the big one
said. “He just called me Hemingway. Do you think he is nuts?” The one with the mustache bit a cigar and
said nothing. The tall beautiful man at the window turned slowly and said
softly: “I think possibly he is a little unbalanced.” “I can’t think of any reason why he should
call me Hemingway,” the big one said. “My name ain’t Hemingway.” The older man said: “I didn’t see a gun.” They looked at Amthor. Amthor said: “It’s
inside. I have it. I’ll give it to you, Mr. Blane.” The big man leaned down from his hips and
bent his knees a little and breathed in my face. “What for did you call me
Hemingway, pally?” “There are ladies present.” He straightened up again. “You see.” He
looked at the one with the mustache. The one with the mustache nodded and then
turned and walked away, across the room. The sliding door opened. He went in
and Amthor followed him. There was silence. The dark woman looked
down at the top of her desk and frowned. The big man looked at my right eyebrow
and slowly shook his head from side to side, wonderingly. The door opened again and the man with the
mustache came back. He picked a hat up from somewhere and handed it to me. He took
my gun out of his pocket and handed it to me. I knew by the weight it was
empty. I tucked it under my arm and stood up. The big man said: “Let’s go, pally. Away
from here. I think maybe a little air will help you to get straightened out.” “Okay, Hemingway.” “He’s doing that again,” the big man said
sadly. “Calling me Hemingway on account of there are ladies present. Would you
think that would be some kind of dirty crack in his book?” The man with the mustache said, “Hurry
up.” The big man took me by the arm and we went
over to the little elevator. It came up. We got into it. 24 At the bottom of the shaft we got out and
walked along the narrow hallway and out of the black door. It was crisp clear
air outside, high enough to be above the drift of foggy spray from the ocean. I
breathed deeply. The big man still had hold of my arm.
There was a car standing there, a plain dark sedan, with private plates. The big man opened the front door and
complained: “It ain’t really up to your class, pally. But a little air will set
you up fine. Would that be all right with you? We wouldn’t want to do anything
that you wouldn’t like us to do, pally.” “Where’s the Indian?” He shook his head a little and pushed me
into the car. I got into the right side of the front seat. “Oh, yeah, the
Indian,” he said. “You got to shoot him with a bow and arrow. That’s the law.
We got him in the back of the car.” I looked in the back of the car. It was
empty. “Hell, he ain’t there,” the big one said.
“Somebody must of glommed him off. You can’t leave nothing in a unlocked car
any more.” “Hurry up,” the man with the mustache
said, and got into the back seat. Hemingway went around and pushed his hard
stomach behind the wheel. He started the car. We turned and drifted off down the
driveway lined with wild geraniums. A cold wind lifted off the sea. The stars
were too far off. They said nothing. We reached the bottom of the drive and
turned out onto the concrete mountain road and drifted without haste along
that. “How come you don’t have a car with you,
pally?” “Amthor sent for me.” “Why would that be, pally?” “It must have been he wanted to see me.” “This guy is good,” Hemingway said. “He
figures things out.” He spit out of the side of the car and made a turn nicely
and let the car ride its motor down the hill. “He says you called him up on the
phone and tried to put the bite on him. So he figures he better have a look-see
what kind of guy he is doing business with—if he is doing business. So he sends
his own car.” “On account of he knows he is going to
call some cops he knows and I won’t need mine to get home with,” I said. “Okay,
Hemingway.” “Yeah, that again. Okay. Well he has a
Dictaphone under his table and his secretary takes it all down and when we come
she reads it back to Mister Blane here.” I turned and looked at Mister Blane. He
was smoking a cigar, peacefully, as though he had his slippers on. He didn’t
look at me. “Like hell she did,” I said. “More likely
a stock bunch of notes they had all fixed up for a case like that.” “Maybe you would like to tell us why you
wanted to see this guy,” Hemingway suggested politely. “You mean while I still have part of my
face?” “Aw, we ain’t those kind of boys at all,”
he said, with a large gesture. “You know Amthor pretty well, don’t you,
Hemingway?” “Mr. Blane kind of knows him. Me, I just
do what the orders is.” “Who the hell is Mister Blane?” “That’s the gentleman in the back seat.” “And besides being in the back seat who
the hell is he?” “Why, Jesus, everybody knows Mr. Blane.” “All right,” I said, suddenly feeling very
weary. There was a little more silence, more
curves, more winding ribbons of concrete, more darkness, and more pain. The big man said: “Now that we are all
between pals and no ladies present we really don’t give so much time to why you
went back up there, but this Hemingway stuff is what really has me down.” “A gag,” I said. “An old, old gag.” “Who is this Hemingway person at all?” “A guy that keeps saying the same thing
over and over until you begin to believe it must be good.” “That must take a hell of a long time,”
the big man said. “For a private dick you certainly have a wandering kind of
mind. Are you still wearing your own teeth?” “Yeah, with a few plugs in them.” “Well, you certainly have been lucky,
pally.” The man in the back seat said: “This is
all right. Turn right at the next.” “Check.” Hemingway swung the sedan into a narrow
dirt road that edged along the flank of a mountain. We drove along that about a
mile. The smell of the sage became overpowering. “Here,” the man in the back seat said. Hemingway stopped the car and set the
brake. He leaned across me and opened the door. “Well, it’s nice to have met you, pally.
But don’t come back. Anyways not on business. Out.” “I walk home from here?” The man in the back seat said: “Hurry up.”
“Yeah, you walk home from here, pally.
Will that be all right with you?” “Sure, it will give me time to think a few
things out. For instance you boys are not L.A. cops. But one of you is a cop,
maybe both of you. I’d say you are Bay City cops. I’m wondering why you were
out of your territory.” “Ain’t that going to be kind of hard to
prove, pally?” “Goodnight, Hemingway.” He didn’t answer. Neither of them spoke. I
started to get out of the car and put my foot on the running board and leaned
forward, still a little dizzy. The man in the back seat made a sudden
flashing movement that I sensed rather than saw. A pool of darkness opened at
my feet and was far, far deeper than the blackest night. I dived into it. It had no bottom. 25 The room was full of smoke. The smoke hung straight up in the air, in
thin lines, straight up and down like a curtain of small clear beads. Two
windows seemed to be open in an end wall, but the smoke didn’t move. I had
never seen the room before. There were bars across the windows. I was dull, without thought. I felt as if
I had slept for a year. But the smoke bothered me. I lay on my back and thought
about it. After a long time I took a deep breath that hurt my lungs. I yelled: “Fire!” That made me laugh. I didn’t know what was
funny about it but I began to laugh. I lay there on the bed and laughed. I
didn’t like the sound of the laugh. It was the laugh of a nut. The one yell was enough. Steps thumped
rapidly outside the room and a key was jammed into a lock and the door swung
open. A man jumped in sideways and shut the door after him. His right hand
reached toward his hip. He was a short thick man in a white coat.
His eyes had a queer look, black and flat. There were bulbs of gray skin at the
outer corners of them. I turned my head on the hard pillow and
yawned. “Don’t count that one, Jack. It slipped
out,” I said. He stood there scowling, his right hand hovering towards his
right hip. Greenish malignant face and flat black eyes and gray white skin and
nose that seemed just a shell. “Maybe you want some more strait-jacket,”
he sneered. “I’m fine, Jack. Just fine. Had a long
nap. Dreamed a little, I guess. Where am I?” “Where you belong.” “Seems like a nice place,” I said. “Nice
people, nice atmosphere. I guess I’ll have me a short nap again.” “Better be just that,” he snarled. He went out. The door shut. The lock
clicked. The steps growled into nothing. He hadn’t done the smoke any good. It
still hung there in the middle of the room, all across the room. Like a
curtain. It didn’t dissolve, didn’t float off, didn’t move. There was air in
the room, and I could feel it on my face. But the smoke couldn’t feel it. It
was a gray web woven by a thousand spiders. I wondered how they had got them to
work together. Cotton flannel pajamas. The kind they have
in the County Hospital. No front, not a stitch more than is essential. Coarse,
rough material. The neck chafed my throat. My throat was still sore. I began to
remember things. I reached up and felt the throat muscles. They were still
sore. Just one Indian, pop. Okay, Hemingway. So you want to be a detective?
Earn good money. Nine easy lessons. We provide badge. For fifty cents extra we
send you a truss. The throat felt sore but the fingers
feeling it didn’t feel anything. They might just as well have been a bunch of
bananas. I looked at them. They looked like fingers. No good. Mail order
fingers. They must have come with the badge and the truss. And the diploma. It was night. The world outside the
windows was a black world. A glass porcelain bowl hung from the middle of the
ceiling on three brass chains. There was light in it. It had little colored
lumps around the edge, orange and blue alternately. I stared at them. I was
tired of the smoke. As I stared they began to open up like little portholes and
heads popped out. Tiny heads, but alive, heads like the heads of small dolls,
but alive. There was a man in a yachting cap with a Johnnie Walker nose and a
fluffy blonde in a picture hat and a thin man with a crooked bow tie. He looked
like a waiter in a beach town flytrap. He opened his lips and sneered: “Would
you like your steak rare or medium, sir?” I closed my eyes tight and winked them
hard and when I opened them again it was just a sham porcelain bowl on three
brass chains. But the smoke still hung motionless in the
moving air. I took hold of the corner of a rough sheet and wiped the sweat off
my face with the numb fingers the correspondence school had sent me after the
nine easy lessons, one half in advance, Box Two Million Four Hundred and Sixty
Eight Thousand Nine Hundred and Twenty Four, Cedar City, Iowa. Nuts. Completely
nuts. I sat up on the bed and after a while I
could reach the floor with my feet. They were bare and they had pins and
needles in them. Notions counter on the left, madam. Extra large safety pins on
the right. The feet began to feel the floor. I stood up. Too far up. I crouched
over, breathing hard and held the side of the bed and a voice that seemed to
come from under the bed said over and over again: “You’ve got the dt’s… you’ve
got the dt’s… you’ve got the dt’s.” I started to walk, wobbling like a drunk.
There was a bottle of whiskey on a small white enamel table between the two
barred windows. It looked like a good shape. It looked about half full. I
walked towards it. There are a lot of nice people in the world, in spite. You
can crab over the morning paper and kick the shins of the guy in the next seat
at the movies and feel mean and discouraged and sneer at the politicians, but
there are a lot of nice people in the world just the same. Take the guy that
left that half bottle of whiskey there. He had a heart as big as one of Mae
West’s hips. I reached it and put both my half-numb
hands down on it and hauled it up to my mouth, sweating as if I was lifting the
end of the Golden Gate bridge. I took a long untidy drink. I put the
bottle down again, with infinite care. I tried to lick underneath my chin. The whiskey had a funny taste. While I was
realizing that it had a funny taste I saw a washbowl jammed into the corner of
the wall. I made it. I just made it. I vomited. Dizzy Dean never threw anything
harder. Time passed—an agony of nausea and
staggering and dazedness and clinging to the edge of the bowl and making animal
sounds for help. It passed. I staggered back to the bed and
lay down on my back again and lay there panting, watching the smoke. The smoke
wasn’t quite so clear. Not quite so real. Maybe it was just something back of
my eyes. And then quite suddenly it wasn’t there at all and the light from the
porcelain ceiling fixture etched the room sharply. I sat up again. There was a heavy wooden
chair against the wall near the door. There was another door besides the door
the man in the white coat had come in at. A closet door, probably. It might
even have my clothes in it. The floor was covered with green and gray linoleum
in squares. The walls were painted white. A clean room. The bed on which I sat
was a narrow iron hospital bed, lower than they usually are, and there were
thick leather straps with buckles attached to the sides, about where a man’s
wrists and ankles would be. It was a swell room—to get out of. I had feeling all over my body now,
soreness in my head and throat and in my arm. I couldn’t remember about the
arm. I rolled up the sleeve of the cotton pajama thing and looked at it
fuzzily. It was covered with pinpricks on the skin all the way from the elbow
to the shoulder. Around each was a small discolored patch, about the size of a
quarter. Dope. I had been shot full of dope to keep
me quiet. Perhaps scopolamine too, to make me talk. Too much dope for the time.
I was having the French fits coming out of it. Some do, some don’t. It all
depends how you are put together. Dope. That accounted for the smoke and the
little heads around the edge of the ceiling light and the voices and the screwy
thoughts and the straps and bars and the numb fingers and feet. The whiskey was
probably part of somebody’s forty-eight hour liquor cure. They had just left it
around so that I wouldn’t miss anything. I stood up and almost hit the opposite
wall with my stomach. That made me lie down and breathe very gently for quite a
long time. I was tingling all over now and sweating. I could feel little drops
of sweat form on my forehead and then slide slowly and carefully down the side
of my nose to the corner of my mouth. My tongue licked at them foolishly. I sat up once more and planted my feet on
the floor and stood up. “Okay, Marlowe,” I said between my teeth.
“You’re a tough guy. Six feet of iron man. One hundred and ninety pounds
stripped and with your face washed. Hard muscles and no glass jaw. You can take
it. You’ve been sapped down twice, had your throat choked and been beaten half
silly on the jaw with a gun barrel. You’ve been shot full of hop and kept under
it until you’re as crazy as two waltzing mice. And what does all that amount
to? Routine. Now let’s see you do something really tough, like putting your
pants on.” I lay down on the bed again. Time passed again. I don’t know how long.
I had no watch. They don’t make that kind of time in watches anyway. I sat up. This was getting to be stale. I
stood up and started to walk. No fun walking. Makes your heart jump like a
nervous cat. Better lie down and go back to sleep. Better take it easy for a
while. You’re in bad shape, pally. Okay, Hemingway. I’m weak. I couldn’t knock
over a flower vase. I couldn’t break a fingernail. Nothing doing. I’m walking. I’m tough. I’m
getting out of here. I lay down on the bed again. The fourth time was a little better. I got
across the room and back twice. I went over to the washbowl and rinsed it out
and leaned on it and drank water out of the palm of my hand. I kept it down. I
waited a little and drank more. Much better. I walked. I walked. I walked. Half an hour of walking and my knees were
shaking but my head was clear. I drank more water, a lot of water. I almost
cried into the bowl while I was drinking it. I walked back to the bed. It was a lovely
bed. It was made of roseleaves. It was the most beautiful bed in the world.
They had got it from Carole Lombard. It was too soft for her. It was worth the
rest of my life to lie down in it for two minutes. Beautiful soft bed,
beautiful sleep, beautiful eyes closing and lashes falling and the gentle sound
of breathing and darkness and rest sunk in deep pillows. I walked. They built the Pyramids and got tired of
them and pulled them down and ground the stone up to make concrete for Boulder
Dam and they built that and brought the water to the Sunny Southland and used
it to have a flood with. I walked all through it. I couldn’t be
bothered. I stopped walking. I was ready to talk to
somebody. 26 The closet door was locked. The heavy
chair was too heavy for me. It was meant to be. I stripped the sheets and pad
off the bed and dragged the mattress to one side. There was a mesh spring
underneath fastened top and bottom by coil springs of black enameled metal
about nine inches long. I went to work on one of them. It was the hardest work
I ever did. Ten minutes later I had two bleeding fingers and a loose spring. I
swung it. It had a nice balance. It was heavy. It had a whip to it. And when this was all done I looked across
at the whiskey bottle and it would have done just as well, and I had forgotten
all about it. I drank some more water. I rested a
little, sitting on the side of the bare springs. Then I went over to the door
and put my mouth against the hinge side and yelled: “Fire! Fire! Fire!” It was a short wait and a pleasant one. He
came running hard along the hallway outside and his key jammed viciously into
the lock and twisted hard. The door jumped open. I was flat against
the wall on the opening side. He had the sap out this time, a nice little tool
about five inches long, covered with woven brown leather. His eyes popped at
the stripped bed and then began to swing around. I giggled and socked him. I laid the coil
spring on the side of his head and he stumbled forward. I followed him down to
his knees. I hit him twice more He made a moaning sound. I took the sap out of
his limp hand. He whined. I used my knee on his face. It hurt my
knee. He didn’t tell me whether it hurt his face. While he was still groaning I
knocked him cold with the sap. I got the key from the outside of the door
and locked it from the inside and went through him. He had more keys. One of
them fitted my closet. In it my clothes hung. I went through my pockets. The
money was gone from my wallet. I went back to the man with the white coat. He
had too much money for his job. I took what I had started with and heaved him
on to the bed and strapped him wrist and ankle and stuffed half a yard of sheet
into his mouth. He had a smashed nose. I waited long enough to make sure he could
breathe through it. I was sorry for him. A simple hardworking
little guy trying to hold his job down and get his weekly pay check. Maybe with
a wife and kids. Too bad. And all he had to help him was a sap. It didn’t seem
fair. I put the doped whiskey down where he could reach it, if his hands hadn’t
been strapped. I patted his shoulder. I almost cried over
him. All my clothes, even my gun harness and
gun, but no shells in the gun, hung in the closet. I dressed with fumbling
fingers, yawning a great deal. The man on the bed rested. I left him
there and locked him in. Outside was a wide silent hallway with
three closed doors. No sounds came from behind any of them. A wine-colored
carpet crept down the middle and was as silent as the rest of the house. At the
end there was a jog in the hall and then another hall at right angles and the
head of a big old-fashioned staircase with white oak banisters. It curved
graciously down into the dim hall below. Two stained glass inner doors ended
the lower hall. It was tessellated and thick rugs lay on it. A crack of light
seeped past the edge of an almost closed door. But no sound at all. An old house, built as once they built
them and don’t build them any more. Standing probably on a quiet street with a
rose arbor at the side and plenty of flowers in front. Gracious and cool and
quiet in the bright California sun. And inside it who cares, but don’t let them
scream too loud. I had my foot out to go down the stairs
when I heard a man cough. That jerked me around and I saw there was a half open
door along the other hallway at the end. I tiptoed along the runner. I waited,
close to the partly open door, but not in it. A wedge of light lay at my feet
on the carpet. The man coughed again. It was a deep cough, from a deep chest.
It sounded peaceful and at ease. It was none of my business. My business was to
get out of there. But any man whose door could be open in that house interested
me. He would be a man of position, worth tipping your hat to. I sneaked a
little into the wedge of light. A newspaper rustled. I could see part of a room and it was
furnished like a room, not like a cell. There was a dark bureau with a hat on
it and some magazines. Windows with lace curtains, a good carpet. Bed springs creaked heavily. A big guy,
like his cough. I reached out fingertips and pushed the door an inch or two.
Nothing happened. Nothing ever was slower than my head craning in. I saw the
room now, the bed, and the man on it, the ashtray heaped with stubs that
overflowed on to a night table and from that to the carpet. A dozen mangled
newspapers all over the bed. One of them in a pair of huge hands before a huge
face. I saw the hair above the edge of the green paper. Dark, curly—black
even—and plenty of It. A line of white skin under it. The paper moved a little
more and I didn’t breathe and the man on the bed didn’t look up. He needed a shave. He would always need a
shave. I had seen him before, over on Central Avenue, in a Negro dive called
Florian’s. I had seen him in a loud suit with white golf balls on the coat and
a whiskey sour in his hand. And had seen him with an Army Colt looking like a
toy in his fist, stepping softly through a broken door. I had seen some of his
work and it was the kind of work that stays done. He coughed again and rolled his buttocks
on the bed and yawned bitterly and reached sideways for a frayed pack of
cigarettes on the night table. One of them went into his mouth. Light flared at
the end of his thumb. Smoke came out of his nose. “Ah,” he said, and the paper went up in
front of his face again. I left him there and went back along the
side hall. Mr. Moose Malloy seemed to be in very good hands. I went back to the
stairs and down. A voice murmured behind the almost closed
door. I waited for the answering voice. None. It was a telephone conversation.
I went over close to the door and listened. It was a low voice, a mere murmur.
Nothing carried that meant anything. There was finally a dry clicking sound.
Silence continued inside the room after that. This was the time to leave, to go far
away. So I pushed the door open and stepped quietly in. 27 It was an office, not small, not large,
with a neat professional look. A glass-doored bookcase with heavy books inside.
A first aid cabinet on the wall. A white enamel and glass sterilizing cabinet
with a lot of hypodermic needles and syringes inside it being cooked. A wide
flat desk with a blotter on it, a bronze paper cutter, a pen set, an
appointment book, very little else, except the elbows of a man who sat brooding,
with his face in his hands. Between the spread yellow fingers I saw
hair the color of wet brown sand, so smooth that it appeared to be painted on
his skull. I took three more steps and his eyes must have looked beyond the
desk and seen my shoes move. His head came up and he looked at me. Sunken
colorless eyes in a parchment-like face. He unclasped his hands and leaned back
slowly and looked at me with no expression at all. Then he spread his hands with a sort of
helpless but disapproving gesture and when they came to rest again, one of them
was very close to the corner of the desk. I took two steps more and showed him the
blackjack. His index and second finger still moved towards the corner of the
desk. “The buzzer,” I said, “won’t buy you
anything tonight. I put your tough boy to sleep.” His eyes got sleepy. “You have been a very
sick man, air. A very sick man. I can’t recommend your being up and about yet.”
I said: “The right hand.” I snapped the
blackjack at it. It coiled into itself like a wounded snake. I went around the desk grinning without
there being anything to grin at. He had a gun in the drawer of course. They
always have a gun in the drawer and they always get it too late, if they get it
at all. I took it out. It was a .38 automatic, a standard model not as good as
mine, but I could use its ammunition. There didn’t seem to be any in the
drawer. I started to break the magazine out of his. He moved vaguely, his eyes still sunken
and sad. “Maybe you’ve got another buzzer under the
carpet,” I said. “Maybe it rings in the Chief’s office down at headquarters.
Don’t use it. Just for an hour I’m a very tough guy. Anybody comes in that door
is walking into a coffin.” “There is no buzzer under the carpet,” he
said. His voice had the slightest possible foreign accent. I got his magazine out and my empty one
and changed them. I ejected the shell that was in the chamber of his gun and
let it lie. I jacked one up into the chamber of mine and went back to the other
side of the desk again. There was a spring lock on the door. I
backed towards it and pushed it shut and heard the lock click. There was also a
bolt. I turned that. I went back to the desk and sat in a
chair. It took my last ounce of strength. “Whiskey,” I said. He began to move his hands around. “Whiskey,” I said. He went to the medicine cabinet and got a
flat bottle with a green revenue stamp on it and a glass. “Two glasses,” I said. “I tried your
whiskey once. I damn near hit Catalina Island with it.” He brought two small glasses and broke the
seal and filled the two glasses. “You first,” I said. He smiled faintly and raised one of the
glasses. “Your health, sir—what remains of it.” He
drank. I drank. I reached for the bottle and stood it near me and waited for
the heat to get to my heart. My heart began to pound, but it was back up in my
chest again, not hanging on a shoelace. “I had a nightmare,” I said. “Silly idea.
I dreamed I was tied to a cot and shot full of dope and locked in a barred
room. I got very weak. I slept. I had no food. I was a sick man. I was knocked
on the head and brought into a place where they did that to me. They took a lot
of trouble. I’m not that important.” He said nothing. He watched me. There was
a remote speculation in his eyes, as if he wondered how long I would live. “I woke up and the room was full of
smoke,” I said. “It was just a hallucination, irritation of the optic nerve or
whatever a guy like you would call it. Instead of pink snakes I had smoke. So I
yelled and a toughie in a white coat came and showed me a blackjack. It took me
a long time to get ready to take it away from him. I got his keys and my
clothes and even took my money out of his pocket. So here I am. All cured. What
were you saying?” “I made no remark,” he said. “Remarks want you to make them,” I said.
“They have their tongues hanging out waiting to be said. This thing here—” I
waved the blackjack lightly, “is a persuader. I had to borrow it from a guy.” “Please give it to me at once,” he said
with a smile you would get to love. It was like the executioner’s smile when he
comes to your cell to measure you for the drop. A little friendly, a little
paternal, and a little cautious at the same time. You would get to love it if
there was any way you could live long enough. I dropped the blackjack into his palm, his
left palm. “Now the gun, please,” he said softly.
“You have been a very sick man, Mr. Marlowe. I think I shall have to insist
that you go back to bed.” I stared at him. “I am Dr. Sonderborg,” he said, “and I
don’t want any nonsense.” He laid the blackjack down on the desk in
front of him. His smile was as stiff as a frozen fish. His long fingers made
movements like dying butterflies. “The gun, please,” he said softly. “I
advise strongly—” “What time is it, warden?” He looked mildly surprised. I had my
wristwatch on now, but it had run down. “It is almost midnight. Why?” “What day is it?” “Why, my dear sir—Sunday evening, of
course.” I steadied myself on the desk and tried to
think and held the gun close enough to him so that he might try and grab it. “That’s over forty-eight hours. No wonder
I had fits. Who brought me here?” He stared at me and his left hand began to
edge towards the gun. He belonged to the Wandering Hand Society. The girls
would have had a time with him. “Don’t make me get tough,” I whined.
“Don’t make me lose my beautiful manners and my flawless English. Just tell me
how I got here.” He had courage. He grabbed for the gun. It
wasn’t where he grabbed. I sat back and put it in my lap. He reddened and grabbed for the whiskey
and poured himself another drink and downed it fast. He drew a deep breath and
shuddered. He didn’t like the taste of liquor. Dopers never do. “You will be arrested at once, if you
leave here,” he said sharply. “You were properly committed by an officer of the
law—” “Officers of the law can’t do it.” That jarred him, a little. His yellowish
face began to work. “Shake it up and pour it,” I said. “Who
put me in here, why and how? I’m in a wild mood tonight. I want to go dance in
the foam. I hear the banshees calling. I haven’t shot a man in a week. Speak
out, Dr. Fell. Pluck the antique viol, let the soft music float.” “You are suffering from narcotic
poisoning,” he said coldly. “You very nearly died. I had to give you digitalis
three times. You fought, you screamed, you had to be restrained.” His words
were coming so fast they were leap-frogging themselves. “If you leave my
hospital in this condition, you will get into serious trouble.” “Did you say you were a doctor—a medical
doctor?” “Certainly. I am Dr. Sonderborg, as I told
you.” “You don’t scream and fight from narcotic
poisoning. You just lie in a coma. Try again. And skim it. All I want is the
cream. Who put me in your private funny house?” “But—” “But me no buts. I’ll make a sop of you.
I’ll drown you in a butt of Maimsey wine. I wish I had a butt of Malmsey wine
myself to drown in. Shakespeare. He knew his liquor too. Let’s have a little of
our medicine.” I reached for his glass and poured us a couple more. “Get on
with it, Karloff.” “The police put you in here.” “What police?” “The Bay City police naturally.” His
restless yellow fingers twisted his glass. “This is Bay City.” “Oh. Did this police have a name?” “A Sergeant Galbraith, I believe. Not a
regular patrol car officer. He and another officer found you wandering outside
the house in a dazed condition on Friday night. They brought you in because
this place was close. I thought you were an addict who had taken an overdose.
But perhaps I was wrong.” “It’s a good story. I couldn’t prove it
wrong. But why keep me here?” He spread his restless hands. “I have told
you again and again that you were a very sick man and still are. What would you
expect me to do?” “I must owe you some money then.” He shrugged. “Naturally. Two hundred
dollars.” I pushed my chair back a little. “Dirt
cheap. Try and get it.” “If you leave here,” he said sharply, “you
will be arrested at once.” I leaned back over the desk and breathed
in his face. “Not just for going out of here, Karloff. Open that wall safe.” He stood up in a smooth lunge, “This has
gone quite far enough.” “You won’t open it?” “I most certainly will not open it.” “This is a gun I’m holding.” He smiled, narrowly and bitterly. “It’s an awful big safe,” I said. “New
too. This is a fine gun. You won’t open it?” Nothing changed in his face. “Damn it,” I said. “When you have a gun in
your hand, people are supposed to do anything you tell them to. It doesn’t
work, does it?” He smiled. His smile held a sadistic
pleasure. I was slipping back. I was going to collapse. I staggered at the desk and he waited, his
lips parted softly. I stood leaning there for a long moment,
staring into his eyes. Then I grinned. The smile fell off his face like a
soiled rag. Sweat stood out on his forehead. “So long,” I said. “I leave you to dirtier
hands than mine.” I backed to the door and opened it and
went out. The front doors were unlocked. There was a
roofed porch. The garden hummed with flowers. There was a white picket fence
and a gate. The house was on a corner. It was a cool, moist night, no moon. The sign on the corner said Descanso
Street. Houses were lighted down the block. I listened for sirens. None came.
The other sign said Twenty-third Street. I plowed over to Twenty-fifth Street
and started towards the eight-hundred block. No. 819 was Anne Riordan’s number.
Sanctuary. I had walked a long time before I realized
that I was still holding the gun in my hand. And I had heard no sirens. I kept on walking. The air did me good,
but the whiskey was dying, and it writhed as it died. The block had fir trees
along it, and brick houses, and looked like Capitol Hill in Seattle more than
Southern California. There was a light still in No. 819. It had
a white porte-cochere, very tiny, pressed against a tall cypress hedge. There
were rose bushes in front of the house. I went up the walk. I listened before I
pushed the bell. Still no sirens wailing. The bell chimed and after a little
while a voice croaked through one of those electrical contraptions that let you
talk with your front door locked. “What is it, please?” “Marlowe.” Maybe her breath caught, maybe the
electrical thing just made that sound being shut off. The door opened wide and Miss Anne Riordan
stood there in a pale green slack suit looking at me. Her eyes went wide and
scared. Her face under the glare of the porch light was suddenly pale. “My God,” she wailed. “You look like
Hamlet’s father!” 28 The living room had a tan figured rug,
white and rose chairs, a black marble fireplace with very tall brass andirons,
high bookcases built back into the walls, and rough cream drapes against the
lowered venetian blinds. There was nothing womanish in the room
except a full-length mirror with a clear sweep of floor in front of it. I was half-sitting and half-lying in a
deep chair with my legs on a footstool. I had had two cups of black coffee,
then I had had a drink, then I had had two soft-boiled eggs and a slice of
toast broken into them, then some more black coffee with brandy laced in it. I
had had all this in the breakfast room, but I couldn’t remember what it looked
like any more. It was too long ago. I was in good shape again. I was almost
sober and my stomach was bunting towards third base instead of trying for the
centerfield flagpole. Anne Riordan sat opposite me, leaning
forward, her neat chin cupped in her neat hand, her eyes dark and shadowy under
the fluffed out reddish-brown hair. There was a pencil stuck through her hair.
She looked worried. I had told her some of it, but not all. Especially about
Moose Malloy I had not told her. “I thought you were drunk,” she said. “I
thought you had to be drunk before you came to see me. I thought you had been
out with that blonde. I thought—I don’t know what I thought.” “I bet you didn’t get all this writing,” I
said, looking around. “Not even if you got paid for what you thought you
thought.” “And my dad didn’t get it grafting on the
cops either,” she said. “Like that fat slob they have for chief of police
nowadays.” “It’s none of my business,” I said. She said: “We had some lots at Del Rey.
Just sand lots they suckered him for. And they turned out to be oil lots.” I nodded and drank out of the nice crystal
glass I was holding. What was in it had a nice warm taste. “A fellow could settle down here,” I said.
“Move right in. Everything set for him.” “If he was that kind of fellow. And
anybody wanted him to,” she said. “No butler,” I said. “That makes it
tough.” She flushed. “But you—you’d rather get
your head beaten to a pulp and your arm riddled with dope needles and your chin
used for a backboard in a basketball game. God knows there’s enough of it.” I didn’t say anything. I was too tired. “At least,” she said, “you had the brains
to look in those mouthpieces. The way you talked over on Aster Drive I thought
you had missed the whole thing.” “Those cards don’t mean anything.” Her eyes snapped at me. “You sit there and
tell me that after the man had you beaten up by a couple of crooked policemen
and thrown in a two-day liquor cure to teach you to mind your own business? Why
the thing stands out so far you could break off a yard of it and still have
enough left for a baseball bat.” “I ought to have said that one,” I said.
“Just my style. Crude. What sticks out?” “That this elegant psychic person is
nothing but a high-class mobster. He picks the prospects and milks the minds
and then tells the rough boys to go out and get the jewels.” “You really think that?” She stared at me. I finished my glass and
got my weak look on my face again. She ignored it. “Of course I think it,” she said. “And so
do you.” “I think it’s a little more complicated
than that.” Her smile was cozy and acid at the same
time. “I beg your pardon. I forgot for the moment you were a detective. It
would have to be complicated, wouldn’t it? I suppose there’s a sort of
indecency about a simple case.” “It’s more complicated than that,” I said.
“All right. I’m listening.” “I don’t know. I just think so. Can I have
one more drink?” She stood up. “You know, you’ll have to
taste water sometime, just for the hell of it.” She came over and took my
glass. “This is going to be the last.” She went out of the room and somewhere
ice cubes tinkled and I closed my eyes and listened to the small unimportant
sounds. I had no business coming here. If they knew as much about me as I
suspected, they might come here looking. That would be a mess. She came back with the glass and her
fingers cold from holding the cold glass touched mine and I held them for a moment
and then let them go slowly as you let go of a dream when you wake with the sun
in your face and have been in an enchanted valley. She flushed and went back to her chair and
sat down and made a lot of business of arranging herself in it. She lit a cigarette, watching me drink. “Amthor’s a pretty ruthless sort of lad,”
I said. “But I don’t somehow see him as the brain guy of a jewel mob. Perhaps
I’m wrong. If he was and he thought I had something on him, I don’t think I’d
have got out of that dope hospital alive. But he’s a man who has things to
fear. He didn’t get really tough until I began to babble about invisible
writing.” She looked at me evenly. “Was there some?”
I grinned. “If there was, I didn’t read
it.” “That’s a funny way to hide nasty remarks
about a person, don’t you think? In the mouthpieces of cigarettes. Suppose they
were never found.” “I think the point is that Marriott feared
something and that if anything happened to him, the cards would be found. The
police would go over anything in his pockets with a fine-tooth comb. That’s
what bothers me. If Amthor’s a crook, nothing would have been left to find.” “You mean if Amthor murdered him—or had
him murdered? But what Marriott knew about Amthor may not have had any direct
connection with the murder.” I leaned back and pressed my back into the
chair and finished my drink and made believe I was thinking that over. I
nodded. “But the jewel robbery had a connection
with the murder. And we’re assuming Amthor had a connection with the jewel
robbery.” Her eyes were a little sly, “I bet you
feel awful,” she said. “Wouldn’t you like to go to bed?” “Here?” She flushed to the roots of her hair. Her
chin stuck out. “That was the idea. I’m not a child. Who the devil cares what I
do or when or how?” I put my glass aside and stood up. “One of
my rare moments of delicacy is coming over me,” I said. “Will you drive me to a
taxi stand, if you’re not too tired?” “You damned sap,” she said angrily.
“You’ve been beaten to a pulp and shot full of God knows how many kinds of
narcotics and I suppose all you need is a night’s sleep to get up bright and
early and start out being a detective again.” “I thought I’d sleep a little late.” “You ought to be in a hospital, you damn
fool!” I shuddered. “Listen,” I said. “I’m not
very clear-headed tonight and I don’t think I ought to linger around here too
long. I haven’t a thing on any of these people that I could prove, but they
seem to dislike me. Whatever I might say would be my word against the law, and
the law in this town seems to be pretty rotten.” “It’s a nice town,” she said sharply, a
little breathlessly. “You can’t judge—” “Okay, it’s a nice town. So is Chicago.
You could live there a long time and not see a Tommy gun. Sure, it’s a nice
town. It’s probably no crookeder than Los Angeles. But you can only buy a piece
of a big city. You can buy a town this size all complete, with the original box
and tissue paper. That’s the difference. And that makes me want out.” She stood up and pushed her chin at me. “You’ll
go bed now and right here. I have a spare bedroom and you can turn right in
and—” “Promise to lock your door?” She flushed and bit her lip “Sometimes I
think you’re a world-beater,” she said, “and sometimes I think you’re worst
heel I ever met.” “On either count would you run me over to
where I can get a taxi?” “You’ll stay here,” she snapped. “You’re
not fit. You’re a sick man.” “I’m not too sick to have my brain
picked,” I said nastily. She ran out of the room so fast she almost
tripped over the two steps from the living room up to the hall. She came back
in nothing flat with a long flannel coat on over her slack suit and no hat and
her reddish hair looking as mad as her face. She opened a side door and threw
it away from her, bounced through it and her steps clattered on the driveway. A
garage door made a faint sound lifting. A car door opened and slammed shut
again. The starter ground and the motor caught and the lights flared past the
open french door of the living room. I picked my hat out of a chair and
switched off a couple of lamps and saw that the french door had a Yale lock. I
looked back a moment before I closed the door. It was a nice room. It would be
a nice room to wear slippers in. I shut the door and the little car slid up
beside me and I went around behind it to get in. She drove me all the way home,
tight-lipped, angry. She drove like a fury. When I got out in front of my
apartment house she said goodnight in a frosty voice and swirled the little car
in the middle of the street and was gone before I could get my keys out of my
pocket. They locked the lobby door at eleven. I
unlocked it and passed into the always musty lobby and along to the stairs and
the elevator. I rode up to my floor. Bleak light shone along it. Milk bottles
stood in front of service doors. The red fire door loomed at the back. It had
an open screen that let in a lazy trickle of air that never quite swept the
cooking smell out. I was home in a sleeping world, a world as harmless as a
sleeping cat. I unlocked the door of my apartment and
went in and sniffed the smell of it, just standing there, against the door for
a little while before I put the light on. A homely smell, a smell of dust and
tobacco smoke, the smell of a world where men live, and keep on living. I undressed and went to bed. I had
nightmares and woke out of them sweating. But in the morning I was a well man
again. 29 I was sitting on the side of my bed in my
pajamas, thinking about getting up, but not yet committed. I didn’t feel very
well, but I didn’t feel as sick as I ought to, not as sick as I would feel if I
had a salaried job. My head hurt and felt large and hot and my tongue was dry
and had gravel on it and my throat was stiff and my jaw was not untender. But I
had had worse mornings. It was a gray morning with high fog, not
yet warm but likely to be. I heaved up off the bed and rubbed the pit of my
stomach where it was sore from vomiting. My left foot felt fine. It didn’t have
an ache in it. So I had to kick the corner of the bed with it. I was still swearing when there was a
sharp tap at the door, the kind of bossy knock that makes you want to open the
door two inches, emit the succulent raspberry and slam it again. I opened it a little wider than two
inches. Detective-Lieutenant Randall stood there, in a brown gabardine suit,
with a pork pie lightweight felt on his head, very neat and clean and solemn
and with a nasty look in his eye. He pushed the door slightly and I stepped
away from it. He came in and closed it and looked around. “I’ve been looking
for you for two days,” he said. He didn’t look at me. His eyes measured the
room. “I’ve been sick.” He walked around with a light springy
step, his creamy gray hair shining, his hat under his arm now, his hands in his
pockets. He wasn’t a very big man for a cop. He took one hand out of his pocket
and placed the hat carefully on top of some magazines. “Not here,” he said. “In a hospital.” “Which hospital?” “A pet hospital.” He jerked as if I had slapped his face.
Dull color showed behind his skin. “A little early in the day, isn’t it—for
that sort of thing?” I didn’t say anything. I lit a cigarette.
I took one draw on it and sat down on the bed again, quickly. “No cure for lads like you, is there?” he
said. “Except to throw you in the sneezer.” “I’ve been a sick man and I haven’t had my
morning coffee. You can’t expect a very high grade of wit.” “I told you not to work on this case.” “You’re not God. You’re not even Jesus
Christ.” I took another drag on the cigarette. Somewhere down inside me felt
raw, but I liked it a little better. “You’d be amazed how much trouble I could
make you.” “Probably.” “Do you know why I haven’t done it so
far?” “Yeah.” “Why?” He was leaning over a little, sharp
as a terrier, with that stony look in his eyes they all get sooner or later. “You couldn’t find me.” He leaned back and rocked on his heels.
His face shone a little. “I thought you were going to say something else,” he
said. “And if you said it, I was going to smack you on the button.” “Twenty million dollars wouldn’t scare
you. But you might get orders.” He breathed hard, with his mouth a little
open. Very slowly he got a package of cigarettes out of his pocket and tore the
wrapper. His fingers were trembling a little. He put a cigarette between his
lips and went over to my magazine table for a match folder. He lit the
cigarette carefully, put the match in the ashtray and not on the floor, and
inhaled. “I gave you some advice over the telephone
the other day,” he said. “Thursday.” “Friday.” “Yes—Friday. It didn’t take. I can
understand why. But I didn’t know at that time you had been holding out
evidence. I was just recommending a line of action that seemed like a good idea
in this case.” “What evidence?” He stared at me silently. “Will you have some coffee?” I asked. “It
might make you human.” “No.” “I will.” I stood up and started for the
kitchenette. “Sit down,” Randall snapped. “I’m far from
through.” I kept on going out to the kitchenette,
ran some water into the kettle and put it on the stove. I took a drink of cold
water from the faucet, then another. I came back with a third glass in my hand
to stand in the doorway and look at him. He hadn’t moved. The veil of his smoke
was almost a solid thing to one side of him. He was looking at the floor. “Why was it wrong to go to Mrs. Grayle
when she sent for me?” I asked. “I wasn’t talking about that.” “Yeah, but you were just before.” “She didn’t send for you.” His eyes lifted
and had the stony look still. And the flush still dyed his sharp cheekbones.
“You forced yourself on her and talked about scandal and practically
blackmailed yourself into a job.” “Funny. As I remember it, we didn’t even
talk job. I didn’t think there was anything in her story. I mean, anything to
get my teeth into. Nowhere to start. And of course I suppose she had already
told it to you.” “She had. That beer joint on Santa Monica
is a crook hideout. But that doesn’t mean anything. I couldn’t get a thing
there. The hotel across the street smells too. Nobody we want. Cheap punks.” “She tell you I forced myself on her?” He dropped his eyes a little. “No.” I grinned. “Have some coffee?” “No.” I went back into the kitchenette and made
the coffee and waited for it to drip. Randall followed me out this time and
stood in the doorway himself. “This jewel gang has been working in
Hollywood and around for a good ten years to my knowledge,” he said. “They went
too far this time. They killed a man. I think I know why.” “Well, if it’s a gang job and you break
it, that will be the first gang murder solved since I lived in the town. And I
could name and describe at least a dozen.” “It’s nice of you to say that, Marlowe.” “Correct me if I’m wrong.” “Damn it,” he said irritably. “You’re not
wrong. There were a couple solved for the record, but they were just rappers.
Some punk took it for the high pillow.” “Yeah. Coffee?” “If I drink some, will you talk to me
decently, man to man, without wise-cracking?” “I’ll try. I don’t promise to spill all my
ideas.” “I can do without those,” he said acidly. “That’s a nice suit you’re wearing.” The flush dyed his face again. “This suit
cost twenty seven-fifty,” he snapped. “Oh Christ, a sensitive cop,” I said, and
went back to the stove. “That smells good. How do you make it?” I poured. “French drip. Coarse ground
coffee. No filter papers.” I got the sugar from the closet and the cream from
the refrigerator. We sat down on opposite sides of the nook. “Was that a gag, about your being sick, in
a hospital?” “No gag. I ran into a little trouble—down
in Bay City. They took me in. Not the cooler, a private dope and liquor cure.” His eyes got distant. “Bay City, eh? You
like it the hard way, don’t you, Marlowe?” “It’s not that I like it the hard way.
It’s that I get it that way. But nothing like this before. I’ve been sapped
twice, the second time by a police officer or a man who looked like one and
claimed to be one. I’ve been beaten with my own gun and choked by a tough
Indian. I’ve been thrown unconscious into this dope hospital and kept there
locked up and part of the time probably strapped down. And I couldn’t prove any
of it, except that I actually do have quite a nice collection of bruises and my
left arm has been needled plenty.” He stared hard at the corner of the table.
“In Bay City,” he said slowly. “The name’s like a song. A song in a dirty
bathtub.” “What were you doing down there?” “I didn’t go down there. These cops took
me over the line. I went to see a guy in Stillwood Heights. That’s in LA.” “A man named Jules Amthor,” he said
quietly. “Why did you swipe those cigarettes?” I looked into my cup. The damned little
fool. “It looked funny, him—Marriott—having that extra case. With reefers in
it. It seems they make them up like Russian cigarettes down in Bay City with
hollow mouthpieces and the Romanoff arms and everything.” He pushed his empty cup at me and I
refilled it. His eyes were going over my face line by line, corpuscle by
corpuscle, like Sherlock Holmes with his magnifying glass or Thorndyke with his
pocket lens. “You ought to have told me,” he said
bitterly. He sipped and wiped his lips with one of those fringed things they
give you in apartment houses for napkins. “But you didn’t swipe them. The girl
told me.” “Aw well, hell,” I said. “A guy never gets
to do anything in this country any more. Always women.” “She likes you,” Randall said, like a
polite FBI man in a movie, a little sad, but very manly. “Her old man was as
straight a cop as ever lost a job. She had no business taking those things. She
likes you.” “She’s a nice girl. Not my type.” “You don’t like them nice?” He had another
cigarette going. The smoke was being fanned away from his face by his hand. “I like smooth shiny girls, hardboiled and
loaded with sin.” “They take you to the cleaners,” Randall
said indifferently. “Sure. Where else have I ever been? What
do you call this session?” He smiled his first smile of the day. He
probably allowed himself four. “I’m not getting much out of you,” he
said. “I’ll give you a theory, but you are
probably way ahead of me on it. This Marriott was a blackmailer of women,
because Mrs. Grayle just about told me so. But he was something else. He was
the finger man for the jewel mob. The society finger, the boy who would
cultivate the victim and set the stage. He would cultivate women he could take
out, get to know them pretty well. Take this holdup a week from Thursday. It
smells. If Marriott hadn’t been driving the car, or hadn’t taken Mrs. Grayle to
the Troc or hadn’t gone home the way he did, past that beer parlor, the holdup
couldn’t have been brought off.” “The chauffeur could have been driving,”
Randall said reasonably. “But that wouldn’t have changed things much.
Chauffeurs are not getting themselves pushed in the face with lead bullets by
holdup men—for ninety a month. But there couldn’t be many stick-ups with
Marriott alone with women or things would get talked about.” “The whole point of this kind of racket is
that things are not talked about,” I said. “In consideration for that the stuff
is sold back cheap.” Randall leaned back and shook his head.
“You’ll have to do better than that to interest me. Women talk about anything.
It would get around that this Marriott was a kind of tricky guy to go out
with.” “It probably did. That’s why they knocked
him off.” Randall stared at me woodenly. His spoon
was stirring air in an empty cup. I reached over and he waved the pot aside.
“Go on with that one,” he said. “They used him up. His usefulness was
exhausted. It was about time for him to get talked about a little, as you
suggest. But you don’t quit in those rackets and you don’t get your time. So
this last holdup was just that for him—the last. Look, they really asked very
little for the jade considering its value. And Marriott handled the contact.
But all the same Marriott was scared. At the last moment he thought he had
better not go alone. And he figured a little trick that if anything did happen
to him, something on him would point to a man, a man quite ruthless and clever
enough to be the brains of that sort of mob, and a man in an unusual position
to get information about rich women. It was a childish sort of trick but it did
actually work.” Randall shook his head. “A gang would have
stripped him, perhaps even have taken the body out to sea and dumped it.” “No. They wanted the job to look
amateurish. They wanted to stay in business. They probably have another finger
lined up,” I said. Randall still shook his head. “The man
these cigarettes pointed to is not the type. He has a good racket of his own.
I’ve inquired. What did you think of him?” His eyes were too blank, much too blank. I
said: “He looked pretty damned deadly to me. And there’s no such thing as too
much money, is there? And after all his psychic racket is a temporary racket
for any one place. He has a vogue and everybody goes to him and after a while
the vogue dies down and the business is licking its shoes. That is, if he’s a
psychic and nothing else. Just like movie stars. Give him five years. He could
work it that long. But give him a couple of ways to use the information he must
get out of these women and he’s going to make a killing.” “I’ll look him up more thoroughly,”
Randall said with the blank look. “But right now I’m more interested in
Marriott. Let’s go back farther—much farther. To how you got to know him.” “He just called me up. Picked my name out
of the phone book. He said so, at any rate.” “He had your card.” I looked surprised. “Sure. I’d forgotten
that.” “Did you ever wonder why he picked your
name—ignoring that matter of your short memory?” I stared at him across the top of my
coffee cup. I was beginning to like him. He had a lot behind his vest besides
his shirt. “So that’s what you really came up for?” I
said. He nodded. “The rest, you know, is just talk.”
He smiled politely at me and waited. I poured some more coffee. Randall leaned over sideways and looked
along the cream-colored surface of the table. “A little dust,” he said
absently, then straightened up and looked me in the eye. “Perhaps I ought to go at this in a little
different way,” he said. “For instance, I think your hunch about Marriott is
probably right. There’s twenty-three grand in currency in his safe-deposit
box—which we had a hell of a time to locate, by the way. There are also some
pretty fair bonds and a trust deed to a property on West Fifty-fourth Place.” He picked a spoon up and rapped it lightly
on the edge of his saucer and smiled. “That interest you?” he asked mildly.
“The number was 1644 West Fifty-fourth Place.” “Yeah,” I said thickly. “Oh, there was quite a bit of jewelry in
Marriott’s box too—pretty good stuff. But I don’t think he stole it. I think it
was very likely given to him. That’s one up for you. He was afraid to sell
it—on account of the association of thought in his own mind.” I nodded. “He’d feel as if it was stolen.”
“Yes. Now that trust deed didn’t interest
me at all at first, but here’s how it works. It’s what you fellows are up
against in police work. We get all the homicide and doubtful death reports from
outlying districts. We’re supposed to read them the same day. That’s a rule,
like you shouldn’t search without a warrant or frisk a guy for a gun without
reasonable grounds. But we break rules. We have to. I didn’t get around to some
of the reports until this morning. Then I read one about a killing of a Negro
on Central, last Thursday. By a tough ex-con called Moose Malloy. And there was
an identifying witness. And sink my putt, if you weren’t the witness.” He smiled, softly, his third smile. “Like
it?” “I’m listening.” “This was only this morning, understand.
So I looked at the name of the man making the report and I knew him, Nulty. So
I knew the case was a flop. Nulty is the kind of guy—well, were you ever up at
Crestline?” “Yeah.” “Well, up near Crestline there’s a place
where a bunch of old box cars have been made into cabins. I have a cabin up
there myself, but not a box car. These box cars were brought up on trucks,
believe it or not, and there they stand without any wheels. Now Nulty is the kind
of guy who would make a swell brakeman on one of those box cars.” “That’s not nice,” I said. “A fellow
officer.” “So I called Nulty up and he hemmed and
hawed around and spit a few times and then he said you had an idea about some
girl called Velma something or other that Malloy was sweet on a long time ago
and you went to see the widow of the guy that used to own the dive where the
killing happened when it was a white joint, and where Malloy and the girl both
worked at that time. And her address was 1644 West Fifty-fourth Place, the
place Marriott had the trust deed on.” “Yes?” “So I just thought that was enough
coincidence for one morning,” Randall said. “And here I am. And so far I’ve
been pretty nice about it.” “The trouble is,” I said, “it looks like
more than it is. This Velma girl is dead, according to Mrs. Florian. I have her
photo.” I went into the living room and reached
into my suit coat and my hand was in midair when it began to feel funny and
empty. But they hadn’t even taken the photos. I got them out and took them to
the kitchen and tossed the Pierrot girl down in front of Randall. He studied it
carefully. “Nobody I ever saw,” he said. “That
another one?” “No, this is a newspaper still of Mrs.
Grayle. Anne Riordan got it.” He looked at it and nodded. “For twenty
million, I’d marry her myself.” “There’s something I ought to tell you,” I
said. “Last night I was so damn mad I had crazy ideas about going down there
and trying to bust it alone. This hospital is at Twenty-third and Descanso in
Bay City. It’s run by a man named Sonderborg who says he’s a doctor. He’s
running a crook hideout on the side. I saw Moose Malloy there last night. In a
room.” Randall sat very still, looking at me.
“Sure?” “You couldn’t mistake him. He’s a big guy,
enormous. He doesn’t look like anybody you ever saw.” He sat looking at me, without moving. Then
very slowly he moved out from under the table and stood up. “Let’s go see this Florian woman.” “How about Malloy?” He sat down again. “Tell me the whole
thing, carefully.” I told him. He listened without taking his eyes off my face.
I don’t think he even winked. He breathed with his mouth slightly open. His
body didn’t move. His fingers tapped gently on the edge of the table. When I
had finished he said: “This Dr. Sonderborg—what did he look
like?” “Like a doper, and probably a dope
peddler.” I described him to Randall as well as I could. He went quietly into the other room and
sat down at the telephone. He dialed his number and spoke quietly for a time.
Then he came back. I had just finished making more coffee and boiling a couple
of eggs and making two slices of toast and buttering them. I sat down to eat. Randall sat down opposite me and leaned
his chin in his hand. “I’m having a state narcotics man go down there with a
fake complaint and ask to look around. He may get some ideas. He won’t get
Malloy. Malloy was out of there ten minutes after you left last night. That’s
one thing you can bet on.” “Why not the Bay City cops?” I put salt on
my eggs. Randall said nothing. When I looked up at
him his face was red and uncomfortable. “For a cop,” I said, “you’re the most
sensitive guy I ever met.” “Hurry up with that eating. We have to
go.” “I have to shower and shave and dress
after this.” “Couldn’t you just go in your pajamas?” he
asked acidly. “So the town is as crooked as all that?” I
said. “It’s Laird Brunette’s town. They say he
put up thirty grand to elect a mayor.” “The fellow that owns the Belvedere Club?”
“And the two gambling boats.” “But it’s in our county,” I said. He looked down at his clean, shiny
fingernails. “We’ll stop by your office and get those other two reefers,” he
said. “If they’re still there.” He snapped his fingers. “If you’ll lend me your
keys, I’ll do it while you get shaved and dressed.” “We’ll go together,” I said. “I might have
some mail.” He nodded and after a moment sat down and
lit another cigarette. I shaved and dressed and we left in Randall’s car. I had some mail, but it wasn’t worth
reading. The two cut up cigarettes in the desk drawer had not been touched. The
office had no look of having been searched. Randall took the two Russian cigarettes
and sniffed at the tobacco and put them away in his pocket. “He got one card from you,” he mused.
“There couldn’t have been anything on the back of that, so he didn’t bother
about the others. I guess Amthor is not very much afraid—just thought you were
trying to pull something. Let’s go.” 30 Old Nosey poked her nose an inch outside
the front door, sniffed carefully as if there might be an early violet
blooming, looked up and down the street with a raking glance, and nodded her
white head. Randall and I took our hats off. In that neighborhood that probably
ranked you with Valentino. She seemed to remember me. “Good morning, Mrs. Morrison,” I said.
“Can we step inside a minute? This is Lieutenant Randall from Headquarters.” “Land’s sakes, I’m all flustered. I got a
big ironing to do,” she said. “We won’t keep you a minute.” She stood back from the door and we slipped
past her into her hallway with the side piece from Mason City or wherever it
was and from that into the neat living room with the lace curtains at the
windows. A smell of ironing came from the back of the house. She shut the door
between as carefully as if it was made of short piecrust. She had a blue and white apron on this
morning. Her eyes were just as sharp and her chin hadn’t grown any. She parked herself about a foot from me
and pushed her face forward and looked into my eyes. “She didn’t get it.” I looked wise. I nodded my head and looked
at Randall and Randall nodded his head. He went to a window and looked at the
side of Mrs. Florian’s house. He came back softly, holding his pork pie under
his arm, debonair as a French count in a college play. “She didn’t get it,” I said. “Nope, she didn’t. Saturday was the first.
April Fool’s Day. He! He!” She stopped and was about to wipe her eyes with her
apron when she remembered it was a rubber apron. That soured her a little. Her
mouth got the pruny look. “When the mailman come by and he didn’t go
up her walk she ran out and called to him. He shook his head and went on. She
went back in. She slammed the door so hard I figured a window’d break. Like she
was mad.” “I swan,” I said. Old Nosey said to Randall sharply: “Let me
see your badge, young man. This young man had a whiskey breath on him t’other
day. I ain’t never rightly trusted him.” Randall took a gold and blue enamel badge
out of his pocket and showed it to her. “Looks like real police all right,” she
admitted. “Well, ain’t nothing happened over Sunday. She went out for liquor.
Come back with two square bottles.” “Gin,” I said. “That just gives you an
idea. Nice folks don’t drink gin.” “Nice folks don’t drink no liquor at all,”
Old Nosey said pointedly. “Yeah,” I said. “Come Monday, that being
today, and the mailman went by again. This time she was really sore.” “Kind of smart guesser, ain’t you, young
man? Can’t wait for folks to get their mouth open hardly.” “I’m sorry, Mrs. Morrison. This is an
important matter to us—” “This here young man don’t seem to have no
trouble keepin’ his mouth in place.” “He’s married,” I said. “He’s had
practice.” Her face turned a shade of violet that
reminded me, unpleasantly, of cyanosis. “Get out of my house afore I call the
police!” she shouted. “There is a police officer standing before
you, madam,” Randall said shortly. “You are in no danger.” “That’s right there is,” she admitted. The
violet tint began to fade from her face. “I don’t take to this man.” “You have company, madam. Mrs. Florian
didn’t get her registered letter today either—is that it?” “No.” Her voice was sharp and short. Her
eyes were furtive. She began to talk rapidly, too rapidly. “People was there
last night. I didn’t even see them. Folks took me to the picture show. Just as
we got back—no, just after they driven off—a car went away from next door. Fast
without any lights. I didn’t see the number.” She gave me a sharp sidelong look from her
furtive eyes. I wondered why they were furtive. I wandered to the window and
lifted the lace curtain. An official blue-gray uniform was nearing the house.
The man wearing it wore a heavy leather bag over his shoulder and had a visored
cap. I turned away from the window, grinning. “You’re slipping,” I told her rudely.
“You’ll be playing shortstop in a Class C league next year.” “That’s not smart,” Randall said coldly. “Take a look out of the window.” He did and his face hardened. He stood
quite still looking at Mrs. Morrison. He was waiting for something, a sound
like nothing else on earth. It came in a moment. It was the sound of something being pushed
into the front door mail slot. It might have been a handbill, but it wasn’t.
There were steps going back down the walk, then along the street, and Randall
went to the window again. The mailman didn’t stop at Mrs. Florian’s house. He
went on, his blue-gray back even and calm under the heavy leather pouch. Randall turned his head and asked with
deadly politeness: “How many mail deliveries a morning are there in this
district, Mrs. Morrison?” She tried to face it out. “Just the one,”
she said sharply—”one mornings and one afternoons.” Her eyes darted this way and that. The
rabbit chin was trembling on the edge of something. Her hands clutched at the
rubber frill that bordered the blue and white apron. “The morning delivery just went by,”
Randall said dreamily. “Registered mail comes by the regular mailman?” “She always got it Special Delivery,” the
old voice cracked. “Oh. But on Saturday she ran out and spoke
to the mailman when he didn’t stop at her house. And you said nothing about
Special Delivery.” It was nice to watch him working—on
somebody else. Her mouth opened wide and her teeth had
the nice shiny look that comes from standing all night in a glass of solution.
Then suddenly she made a squawking noise and threw the apron over her head and
ran out of the room. He watched the door through which she had
gone. It was beyond the arch. He smiled. It was a rather tired smile. “Neat, and not a bit gaudy,” I said. “Next
time you play the tough part. I don’t like being rough with old ladies—even if
they are lying gossips.” He went on smiling. “Same old story.” He
shrugged. “Police work. Phooey. She started with facts, as she knew facts. But
they didn’t come fast enough or seem exciting enough. So she tried a little
lily-gilding.” He turned and we went out into the hall. A
faint noise of sobbing came from the back of the house. For some patient man,
long dead, that had been the weapon of final defeat, probably. To me it was
just an old woman sobbing, but nothing to be pleased about. We went quietly out of the house, shut the
front door quietly and made sure that the screen door didn’t bang. Randall put
his hat on and sighed. Then he shrugged, spreading his cool well-kept hands out
far from his body. There was a thin sound of sobbing still audible, back in the
house. The mailman’s back was two houses down the
street. “Police work,” Randall said quietly, under
his breath, and twisted his mouth. We walked across the space to the next
house. Mrs. Florian hadn’t even taken the wash in. It still jittered, stiff and
yellowish on the wire line in the side yard. We went up on the steps and rang
the bell. No answer. We knocked. No answer. “It was unlocked last time,” I said. He tried the door, carefully screening the
movement with his body. It was locked this time. We went down off the porch and
walked around the house on the side away from Old Nosey. The back porch had a
hooked screen. Randall knocked on that. Nothing happened. He came back off the
two almost paintless wooden steps and went along the disused and overgrown
driveway and opened up a wooden garage. The doors creaked. The garage was full
of nothing. There were a few battered old-fashioned trunks not worth breaking
up for firewood. Rusted gardening tools, old cans, plenty of those, in cartons.
On each side of the doors, in the angle of the wall a nice fat black widow
spider sat in its casual untidy web. Randall picked up a piece of wood and killed
them absently. He shut the garage up again, walked back along the weedy drive
to the front and up the steps of the house on the other side from Old Nosey.
Nobody answered his ring or knock. He came back slowly, looking across the
street over his shoulder. “Back door’s easiest,” he said. “The old hen next
door won’t do anything about it now. She’s done too much lying.” He went up the two back steps and slide a
knife blade neatly into the crack of the door and lifted the hook. That put us
in the screen porch. It was full of cans and some of the cans were full of
flies. “Jesus, what a way to live!” he said. The back door was easy. A five-cent
skeleton key turned the lock. But there was a bolt. “This jars me,” I said. “I guess she’s
beat it. She wouldn’t lock up like this. She’s too sloppy.” “Your hat’s older than mine,” Randall
said. He looked at the glass panel in the back door. “Lend it to me to push the
glass in. Or shall we do a neat job?” “Kick it in. Who cares around here?” “Here goes.” He stepped back and lunged at the lock
with his leg parallel to the floor. Something cracked idly and the door gave a
few inches. We heaved it open and picked a piece of jagged cast metal off the
linoleum and laid it politely on the woodstone drain board, beside about nine
empty gin bottles. Flies buzzed against the closed windows of
the kitchen. The place reeked. Randall stood in the middle of the floor, giving
it the careful eye. Then he walked softly through the swing
door without touching it except low down with his toe and using that to push it
far enough back so that it stayed open. The living room was much as I had
remembered it. The radio was off. “That’s a nice radio,” Randall said. “Cost
money. If it’s paid for. Here’s something.” He went down on one knee and looked along
the carpet. Then he went to the side of the radio and moved a loose cord with
his foot. The plug came into view. He bent and studied the knobs on the radio
front. “Yeah,” he said. “Smooth and rather large.
Pretty smart, that. You don’t get prints on a light cord, do you?” “Shove it in and see if it’s turned on.” He reached around and shoved it into the
plug in the baseboard. The light went on at once. We waited. The thing hummed
for a while and then suddenly a heavy volume of sound began to pour out of the
speaker. Randall jumped at the cord and yanked it loose again. The sound was
snapped off sharp. When he straightened his eyes were full of
light. We went swiftly into the bedroom. Mrs.
Jessie Pierce Florian lay diagonally across the bed, in a rumpled cotton
housedress, with her head close to one end of the footboard. The corner post of
the bed was smeared darkly with something the flies liked. She had been dead long enough. Randall didn’t touch her. He stared down
at her for a long time and then looked at me with a wolfish baring of his
teeth. “Brains on her face,” he said. “That seems
to be the theme song of this case. Only this was done with just a pair of
hands. But Jesus what a pair of hands. Look at the neck bruises, the spacing of
the finger marks.” “You look at them,” I said. I turned away.
“Poor old Nulty. It’s not just a shine killing any more.” 31 A shiny black bug with a pink head and
pink spots on it crawled slowly along the polished top of Randall’s desk and waved
a couple of feelers around, as if testing the breeze for a takeoff. It wobbled
a little as it crawled, like an old woman carrying too many parcels. A nameless
dick sat at another desk and kept talking into an old-fashioned hushaphone
telephone mouthpiece, so that his voice sounded like someone whispering in a
tunnel. He talked with his eyes half closed, a big scarred hand on the desk in
front of him holding a burning cigarette between the knuckles of the first and
second fingers. The bug reached the end of Randall’s desk
and marched straight off into the air. It fell on its back on the floor, waved
a few thin worn legs in the air feebly and then played dead. Nobody cared, so
it began waving the legs again and finally struggled over on its face. It trundled
slowly off into a corner towards nothing, going nowhere. The police loudspeaker box on the wall put
out a bulletin about a holdup on San Pedro south of Forty-fourth. The holdup
was a middle-aged man wearing a dark gray suit and gray felt hat. He was last
seen running east on Forty-fourth and then dodging between two houses.
“Approach carefully,” the announcer said. “This suspect is armed with a .32
caliber revolver and has just held up the proprietor of a Greek restaurant at
Number 3966 South San Pedro.” A flat click and the announcer went off
the air and another one came on and started to read a hot car list, in a slow
monotonous voice that repeated everything twice. The door opened and Randall came in with a
sheaf of letter size typewritten sheets. He walked briskly across the room and
sat down across the desk from me and pushed some papers at me. “Sign four copies,” he said. I signed four copies. The pink bug reached a corner of the room
and put feelers out for a good spot to take off from. It seemed a little
discouraged. It went along the baseboard towards another corner. I lit a
cigarette and the dick at the hushaphone abruptly got up and went out of the
office. Randall leaned back in his chair, looking
just the same as ever, just as cool, just as smooth, just as ready to be nasty
or nice as the occasion required. “I’m telling you a few things,” he said,
“just so you won’t go having any more brainstorms. Just so you won’t go
masterminding all over the landscape any more. Just so maybe for Christ’s sake
you will let this one lay.” I waited. “No prints in the dump,” he said. “You
know which dump I mean. The cord was jerked to turn the radio off, but she
turned it up herself probably. That’s pretty obvious. Drunks like loud radios.
If you have gloves on to do a killing and you turn up the radio to drown shots
or something, you can turn it off the same way. But that wasn’t the way it was
done. And that woman’s neck is broken. She was dead before the guy started to
smack her head around. Now why did he start to smack her head around?” “I’m just listening.” Randall frowned. “He probably didn’t know
he’d broken her neck. He was sore at her,” he said. “Deduction.” He smiled
sourly. I blew some smoke and waved it away from
my face. “Well, why was he sore at her? There was a
grand reward paid the time he was picked up at Florian’s for the bank job in
Oregon. It was paid to a shyster who is dead since, but the Florians likely got
some of it. Malloy may have suspected that. Maybe he actually knew it. And
maybe he was just trying to shake it out of her.” I nodded. It sounded worth a nod. Randall
went on: “He took hold of her neck just once and
his fingers didn’t slip. If we get him, we might be able to prove by the
spacing of the marks that his hands did it. Maybe not. The doc figures it
happened last night, fairly early. Motion picture time, anyway. So far we don’t
tie Malloy to the house last night, not by any neighbors. But it certainly
looks like Malloy.” “Yeah,” I said. “Malloy all right. He
probably didn’t mean to kill her, though. He’s just too strong.” “That won’t help him any,” Randall said
grimly. “I suppose not. I just make the point that
Malloy does not appear to me to be a killer type. Kill if cornered—but not for
pleasure or money—and not women.” “Is that an important point?” he asked
dryly. “Maybe you know enough to know what’s
important. And what isn’t. I don’t.” He stared at me long enough for a police
announcer to have time to put out another bulletin about the holdup of the
Greek restaurant on South San Pedro. The suspect was now in custody. It turned
out later that he was a fourteen-year-old Mexican armed with a water-pistol. So
much for eyewitnesses. Randall waited until the announcer stopped
and went on: “We got friendly this morning. Let’s stay
that way. Go home and lie down and have a good rest. You look pretty peaked.
Just let me and the police department handle the Marriott killing and find
Moose Malloy and so on.” “I got paid on the Marriott business,” I
said. “I fell down on the job. Mrs. Grayle has hired me. What do you want me to
do—retire and live on my fat?” He stared at me again. “I know. I’m human.
They give you guys licenses, which must mean they expect you to do something
with them besides hang them on the wall in your office. On the other hand any
acting-captain with a grouch can break you.” “Not with the Grayles behind me.” He studied it. He hated to admit I could
be even half right. So he frowned and tapped his desk. “Just so we understand each other,” he
said after a pause. “If you crab this case, you’ll be in a jam. It may be a jam
you can wriggle out of this time. I don’t know. But little by little you will
build up a body of hostility in this department that will make it damn hard for
you to do any work.” “Every private dick faces that every day
of his life—unless he’s just a divorce man.” “You can’t work on murders.” “You’ve said your piece. I heard you say
it. I don’t expect to go out and accomplish things a big police department
can’t accomplish. If I have any small private notions, they are just that—small
and private.” He leaned slowly across the desk. His thin
restless fingers tap-tapped, like the poinsettia shoots tapping against Mrs.
Jessie Florian’s front wail. His creamy gray hair shone. His cool steady eyes
were on mine. “Let’s go on,” he said. “With what there
is to tell. Amthor’s away on a trip. His wife—and secretary—doesn’t know or
won’t say where. The Indian has also disappeared. Will you sign a complaint
against these people?” “No. I couldn’t make it stick.” He looked relieved. “The wife says she
never heard of you. As to these two Bay City cops, if that’s what they
were—that’s out of my hands. I’d rather not have the thing any more complicated
than it is. One thing I feel pretty sure of—Amthor had nothing to do with
Marriott’s death. The cigarettes with his card in them were just a plant.” “Doc Sonderborg?” He spread his hands. “The whole shebang
skipped. Men from the D.A.’s office went down there on the quiet. No contact
with Bay City at all. The house is locked up and empty. They got in, of course.
Some hasty attempt had been made to clean up, but there are prints—plenty of
them. It will take a week to work out what we have. There’s a wall safe they’re
working on now. Probably had dope in it—and other things. My guess is that
Sonderborg will have a record, not local, somewhere else, for abortion, or
treating gunshot wounds or altering finger tips or for illegal use of dope. If
it comes under Federal statutes, we’ll get a lot of help.” “He said he was a medical doctor,” I said.
Randall shrugged. “May have been once. May
never have been convicted. There’s a guy practicing medicine near Palm Springs
right now who was indicted as a dope peddler in Hollywood five years ago. He
was as guilty as hell—but the protection worked. He got off. Anything else
worrying you?” “What do you know about Brunette—for
telling?” “Brunette’s a gambler. He’s making plenty.
He’s making it an easy way.” “All right,” I said, and started to get
up. “That sounds reasonable. But it doesn’t bring us any nearer to this jewel
heist gang that killed Marriott.” “I can’t tell you everything, Marlowe.” “I don’t expect it,” I said. “By the way,
Jessie Florian told me—the second time I saw her—that she had been a servant in
Marriott’s family once. That was why he was sending her money. Anything to
support that?” “Yes. Letters in his safety-deposit box
from her thanking him and saying the same thing.” He looked as if he was going
to lose his temper. “Now will you for God’s sake go home and mind your own
business?” “Nice of him to take such care of the
letters, wasn’t it?” He lifted his eyes until their glance
rested on the top of my head. Then he lowered the lids until half the iris was
covered. He looked at me like that for a long ten seconds. Then he smiled. He
was doing an awful lot of smiling that day. Using up a whole week’s supply. “I have a theory about that,” he said.
“It’s crazy, but it’s human nature. Marriott was by the circumstances of his
life a threatened man. All crooks are gamblers, more or less, and all gamblers
are superstitious—more or less. I think Jessie Florian was Marriott’s lucky
piece. As long as he took care of her, nothing would happen to him.” I turned my head and looked for the
pink-headed bug. He had tried two corners of the room now and was moving off
disconsolately towards a third. I went over and picked him up in my
handkerchief and carried him back to the desk. “Look,” I said. “This room is eighteen
floors above ground. And this little bug climbs all the way up here just to
make a friend. Me. My luck piece.” I folded the bug carefully into the soft
part of the handkerchief and tucked the handkerchief into my pocket. Randall
was pie-eyed. His mouth moved, but nothing came out of it. “I wonder whose lucky piece Marriott was,”
I said. “Not yours, pal.” His voice was acid—cold
acid. “Perhaps not yours either.” My voice was
just a voice. I went out of the room and shut the door. I rode the express elevator down to the
Spring Street entrance and walked out on the front porch of City Hall and down
some steps and over to the flower beds. I put the pink bug down carefully
behind a bush. I wondered, in the taxi going home, how
long it would take him to make the Homicide Bureau again. I got my car out of the garage at the back
of the apartment house and ate some lunch in Hollywood before I started down to
Bay City. It was a beautiful cool sunny afternoon down at the beach. I left
Arguello Boulevard at Third Street and drove over to the City Hall. 32 It was a cheap looking building for so
prosperous a town. It looked more like something out of the Bible belt. Bums
sat unmolested in a long row on the retaining wall that kept the front lawn—now
mostly Bermuda grass—from falling into the street. The building was of three
stories and had an old belfry at the top, and the bell still hanging in the
belfry. They had probably rung it for the volunteer fire brigade back in the
good old chaw-and-spit days. The cracked walk and the front steps let
to open double doors in which a knot of obvious city hall fixers hung around
waiting for something to happen so they could make something else out of it.
They all had the well-fed stomachs, the careful eyes, the nice clothes and the
reach-me-down manners. They gave me about four inches to get in. Inside was a long dark hallway that had
been mopped the day McKinley was inaugurated. A wooden sign pointed out the
police department Information Desk. A uniformed man dozed behind a pint-sized
PBX set into the end of a scarred wooden counter. A plainclothesman with his
coat off and his hog’s leg looking like a fire plug against his ribs took one
eye off his evening paper, bonged a spittoon ten feet away from him, yawned,
and said the Chief’s office was upstairs at the back. The second floor was lighter and cleaner,
but that didn’t mean that it was clean and light. A door on the ocean side,
almost at the end of the hall, was lettered: John Wax, Chief of Police. Enter. Inside there was a low wooden railing and
a uniformed man behind it working a typewriter with two fingers and one thumb.
He took my card, yawned, said he would see, and managed to drag himself through
a mahogany door marked John Wax, Chief of Police. Private. He came back and
held the door in the railing for me. I went on in and shut the door of the
inner office. It was cool and large and had windows on three sides. A stained
wood desk was set far back like Mussolini’s, so that you had to walk across an
expanse of blue carpet to get to it, and while you were doing that you would be
getting the beady eye. I walked to the desk. A tilted embossed
sign on it read: John Wax, Chief of Police. I figured I might be able to
remember the name. I looked at the man behind the desk. No straw was sticking
to his hair. He was a hammered-down heavyweight, with
short pink hair and a pink scalp glistening through it. He had small, hungry,
heavy-lidded eyes, as restless as fleas. He wore a suit of fawn-colored
flannel, a coffee-colored shirt and tie, a diamond ring, a diamond-studded
lodge pin in his lapel, and the required three stiff points of handkerchief
coming up a little more than the required three inches from his outside breast
pocket. One of his plump hands was holding my
card. He read it, turned it over and read the back, which was blank, read the
front again, put it down on his desk and laid on it a paperweight in the shape
of a bronze monkey, as if he was making sure he wouldn’t lose it. He pushed a pink paw at me. When I gave it
back to him, he motioned to a chair. “Sit down, Mr. Marlowe. I see you are in
our business more or less. What can I do for you?” “A little trouble, Chief. You can
straighten it out for me in a minute, if you care to.” “Trouble,” he said softly. “A little
trouble.” He turned in his chair and crossed his
thick legs and gazed thoughtfully towards one of his pairs of windows. That let
me see handspun lisle socks and English brogues that looked as if they had been
pickled in port wine. Counting what I couldn’t see and not counting his wallet
he had half a grand on him. I figured his wife had money. “Trouble,” he said, still softly, “is
something our little city don’t know much about, Mr. Marlowe. Our city is small
but very, very clean. I look out of my western windows and I see the Pacific
Ocean. Nothing cleaner than that, is there?” He didn’t mention the two gambling
ships that were hull down on the brass waves just beyond the three-mile limit. Neither did I. “That’s right, Chief,” I
said. He threw his chest a couple of inches
farther. “I look out of my northern windows and I see the busy bustle of
Arguello Boulevard and the lovely California foothills, and in the near
foreground one of the nicest little business sections a man could want to know.
I look out of my southern windows, which I am looking out of right now, and I
see the finest little yacht harbor in the world, for a small yacht harbor. I
don’t have no eastern windows, but if I did have, I would see a residential
section that would make your mouth water. No, sir, trouble is a thing we don’t
have a lot of on hand in our little town.” “I guess I brought mine with me, Chief.
Some of it at least. Do you have a man working for you named Galbraith, a
plainclothes sergeant?” “Why yes, I believe I do,” he said,
bringing his eyes around. “What about him?” “Do you have a man working for you that
goes like this?” I described the other man, the one who said very little, was
short, had a mustache and hit me with a blackjack. “He goes around with
Galbraith, very likely. Somebody called him Mister Blane, but that sounded like
a phony.” “Quite on the contrary,” the fat Chief
said as stiffly as a fat man can say anything. “He is my Chief of Detectives.
Captain Blane.” “Could I see these two guys in your
office?” He picked my card up and read it again. He
laid it down. He waved a soft glistening hand. “Not without a better reason than you have
given me so far,” he said suavely. “I didn’t think I could, Chief. Do you
happen to know a man named Jules Amthor? He calls himself a psychic adviser. He
lives at the top of a hill in Stillwood Heights.” “No. And Stillwood Heights is not in my
territory,” the Chief said. His eyes now were the eyes of a man who has other
thoughts. “That’s what makes it funny,” I said. “You
see, I went to call on Mr. Amthor in connection with a client of mine. Mr.
Amthor got the idea I was blackmailing him. Probably guys in his line of
business get that idea rather easily. He had a tough Indian bodyguard I
couldn’t handle. So the Indian held me and Amthor beat me up with my own gun.
Then he sent for a couple of cops. They happened to be Galbraith and Mister
Blane. Could this interest you at all?” Chief Wax flapped his hands on his desk
top very gently. He folded his eyes almost shut, but not quite. The cool gleam
of his eyes shone between the thick lids and it shone straight at me. He sat
very still, as if listening. Then he opened his eyes and smiled. “And what happened then?” he inquired,
polite as a bouncer at the Stork Club. “They went through me, took me away in
their car, dumped me out on the side of a mountain and socked me with a sap as
I got out.” He nodded, as if what I had said was the
most natural thing in the world. “And this was in Stillwood Heights,” he said
softly. “Yeah.” “You know what I think you are?” He leaned
a little over the desk, but not far, on account of his stomach being in the
way. “A liar,” I said. “The door is there,” he said, pointing to
it with the little finger of his left hand. I didn’t move. I kept on looking at him.
When he started to get mad enough to push his buzzer I said: “Let’s not both
make the same mistake. You think I’m a small time private dick trying to push
ten times his own weight, trying to make a charge against a police officer
that, even if it was true, the officer would take damn good care couldn’t be
proved. Not at all. I’m not making any complaints. I think the mistake was
natural. I want to square myself with Amthor and I want your man Galbraith to
help me do it. Mister Blane needn’t bother. Galbraith will be enough. And I’m
not here without backing. I have important people behind me.” “How far behind?” the Chief asked and
chuckled wittily. “How far is 862 Aster Drive, where Mr.
Merwin Lockridge Grayle lives?” His face changed so completely that it was
as if another man sat in his chair. “Mrs. Grayle happens to be my client,” I
said. “Lock the doors,” he said. “You’re a
younger man than I am. Turn the bolt knobs. Well make a friendly start on this
thing. You have an honest face, Marlowe.” I got up and locked the doors. When I got
back to the desk along the blue carpet, the Chief had a nice looking bottle out
and two glasses. He tossed a handful of cardamom seeds on his blotter and
filled both glasses. We drank. He cracked a few cardamom seeds
and we chewed them silently, looking into each other’s eyes. “That tasted right,” he said. He refilled
the glasses. It was my turn to crack the cardamom seeds. He swept the shells
off his blotter to the floor and smiled and leaned back. “Now let’s have it,” he said. “Has this job
you are doing for Mrs. Grayle anything to do with Amthor?” “There’s a connection. Better check that
I’m telling you the truth, though.” “There’s that,” he said and reached for
his phone. Then he took a small book out of his vest and looked up a number.
“Campaign contributors,” he said and winked. “The Mayor is very insistent that
all courtesies be extended. Yes, here it is.” He put the book away and dialed. He had the same trouble with the butler
that I had. It made his ears get red. Finally he got her. His ears stayed red.
She must have been pretty sharp with him. “She wants to talk to you,” he said
and pushed the phone across his broad desk. “This is Phil,” I said, winking naughtily
at the Chief. There was a cool provocative laugh. “What
are you doing with that fat slob?” “There’s a little drinking being done.” “Do you have to do it with him?” “At the moment, yes. Business. I said, is
there anything new? I guess you know what I mean.” “No. Are you aware, my good fellow, that
you stood me up for an hour the other night? Did I strike you as the kind of
girl that lets that sort of thing happen to her?” “I ran into trouble. How about tonight?” “Let me see—tonight is—what day of the
week is it for heaven’s sake?” “I’d better call you,” I said. “I may not
be able to make it. This is Friday.” “Liar.” The soft husky laugh came again.
“It’s Monday. Same time, same place—and no fooling this time?” “I’d better call you.” “You’d better be there.” “I can’t be sure. Let me call you.” “Hard to get? I see. Perhaps I’m a fool to
bother.” “As a matter of fact you are.” “Why?” “I’m a poor man, but I pay my own way. And
it’s not quite as soft a way as you would like.” “Damn you, if you’re not there—” “I said I’d call you.” She sighed. “All men are the same.” “So are all women—after the first nine.” She damned me and hung up. The Chief’s
eyes popped so far out of his head they looked as if they were on stilts. He filled both glasses with a shaking hand
and pushed one at me. “So it’s like that,” he said very
thoughtfully. “Her husband doesn’t care,” I said, “so
don’t make a note of it.” He looked hurt as he drank his drink. He
cracked the cardamom seeds very slowly, very thoughtfully. We drank to each
other’s baby blue eyes. Regretfully the Chief put the bottle and glasses out of
sight and snapped a switch on his call box. “Have Galbraith come up, if he’s in the
building. If not, try and get in touch with him for me.” I got up and unlocked the doors and sat
down again. We didn’t wait long. The side door was tapped on, the Chief called
out, and Hemingway stepped into the room. He walked solidly over to the desk and
stopped at the end of it and looked at Chief Wax with the proper expression of
tough humility. “Meet Mr. Philip Marlowe,” the Chief said genially.
“A private dick from L.A.” Hemingway turned enough to look at me. If
he had ever seen me before, nothing in his face showed it. He put a hand out
and I put a hand out and he looked at the Chief again. “Mr. Marlowe has a rather curious story,”
the Chief said, cunning, like Richelieu behind the arras. “About a man named
Amthor who has a place in Stillwood Heights. He’s some sore of crystal-gazer.
It seems Marlowe went to see him and you and Blane happened in about the same
time and there was an argument of some kind. I forget the details.” He looked
out of his windows with the expression of a man forgetting details. “Some mistake,” Hemingway said. “I never
saw this man before.” “There was a mistake, as a matter of
fact,” the Chief said dreamily. “Rather trifling, but still a mistake. Mr.
Marlowe thinks it of slight importance.” Hemingway looked at me again. His face
still looked like a stone face. “In fact he’s not even interested in the
mistake,” the Chief dreamed on. “But he is interested in going to call on this
man Amthor who lives in Stillwood Heights. He would like someone with him. I
thought of you. He would like someone who would see that he got a square deal.
It seems that Mr. Amthor has a very tough Indian bodyguard and Mr. Marlowe is a
little inclined to doubt his ability to handle the situation without help. Do
you think you could find out where this Amthor lives?” “Yeah,” Hemingway said. “But Stillwood
Heights is over the line, Chief. This just a personal favor to a friend of
yours?” “You might put it that way,” the Chief
said, looking at his left thumb. “We wouldn’t want to do anything not strictly
legal, of course.” “Yeah,” Hemingway said. “No.” He coughed.
“When do we go?” The Chief looked at me benevolently. “Now
would be Okay,” I said. “If it suits Mr. Galbraith.” “I do what I’m told,” Hemingway said. The Chief looked him over, feature by
feature. He combed him and brushed him with his eyes. “How is Captain Blane
today?” he inquired, munching on a cardamom seed. “Bad shape. Bust appendix,” Hemingway
said. “Pretty critical.” The Chief shook his head sadly. Then he
got hold of the arms of his chair and dragged himself to his feet. He pushed a
pink paw across his desk. “Galbraith will take good care of you,
Marlowe. You can rely on that.” “Well, you’ve certainly been obliging,
Chief,” I said. “I certainly don’t know how to thank you.” “Pshaw! No thanks necessary. Always glad
to oblige a friend of a friend, so to speak.” He winked at me. Hemingway
studied the wink but he didn’t say what he added it up to. We went out, with the Chief’s polite
murmurs almost carrying us down the office. The door closed. Hemingway looked
up and down the hall and then he looked at me. “You played that one smart, baby,” he
said. “You must got something we wasn’t told about.” 33 The car drifted quietly along a quiet
street of homes. Arching pepper trees almost met above it to form a green
tunnel. The sun twinkled through their upper branches and their narrow light
leaves. A sign at the corner said it was Eighteenth Street. Hemingway was driving and I sat beside
him. He drove very slowly, his face heavy with thought. “How much you tell him?” he asked, making
up his mind. “I told him you and Blane went over there
and took me away and tossed me out of the car and socked me on the back of the
head. I didn’t tell him the rest.” “Not about Twenty-third and Descanso,
huh?” “No.” “Why not?” “I thought maybe I could get more
co-operation from you if I didn’t.” “That’s a thought. You really want to go
over to Stillwood Heights, or was that just a stall?” “Just a stall. What I really want is for
you to tell me why you put me in that funny-house and why I was kept there?” Hemingway thought. He thought so hard his
cheek muscles made little knots under his grayish skin. “That Blane,” he said. “That sawed-off
hunk of shin meat. I didn’t mean for him to sap you. I didn’t mean for you to
walk home neither, not really. It was just an act, on account of we are friends
with this swami guy and we kind of keep people from bothering him. You’d be
surprised what a lot of people would try to bother him.” “Amazed,” I said. He turned his head. His gray eyes were
lumps of ice. Then he looked again through the dusty windshield and did some
more thinking. “Them old cops get sap-hungry once in a
while,” he said. “They just got to crack a head. Jesus, was I scared. You
dropped like a sack of cement. I told Blane plenty. Then we run you over to
Sonderborg’s place on account of it was a little closer and he was a nice guy
and would take care of you.” “Does Amthor know you took me there?” “Hell, no. It was our idea.” “On account of Sonderborg is such a nice
guy and he would take care of me. And no kickback. No chance for a doctor to
back up a complaint if I made one. Not that a complaint would have much chance
in this sweet little town, if I did make it.” “You going to get tough?” Hemingway asked
thoughtfully. “Not me,” I said. “And for once in your
life neither are you. Because your job is hanging by a thread. You looked in
the Chief’s eyes and you saw that. I didn’t go in there without credentials,
not this trip.” “Okay,” Hemingway said and spat out of the
window. “I didn’t have any idea of getting tough in the first place except just
the routine big mouth. What next?” “Is Blane really sick?” Hemingway nodded, but somehow failed to
look sad. “Sure is. Pain in the gut day before yesterday and it bust on him
before they could get his appendix out. He’s got a chance—but not too good.” “We’d certainly hate to lose him,” I said.
“A fellow like that is an asset to any police force.” Hemingway chewed that one over and spat it
out of the car window. “Okay, next question,” he sighed. “You told me why you took me to
Sonderborg’s place. You didn’t tell me why he kept me there over forty-eight
hours, locked up and shot full of dope.” Hemingway braked the car softly over
beside the curb. He put his large hands on the lower part of the wheel side by
side and gently rubbed the thumbs together. “I wouldn’t have an idea,” he said in a
far-off voice. “I had papers on me showing I had a
private license,” I said. “Keys, some money, a couple of photographs. If he
didn’t know you boys pretty well, he might think the crack on the head was just
a gag to get into his place and look around. But I figure he knows you boys too
well for that. So I’m puzzled.” “Stay puzzled, pally. It’s a lot safer.” “So it is,” I said. “But there’s no
satisfaction in it.” “You got the L.A. law behind you on this?”
“On this what?” “On this thinking bout Sonderborg.” “Not exactly.” “That don’t mean yes or no.” “I’m not that important,” I said. “The
L.A. law can come in here any time they feel like it—two thirds of them anyway.
The Sheriff’s boys and the D.A.’s boys. I have a friend in the D.A.’s office. I
worked there once. His name is Bernie Ohls. He’s Chief Investigator.” “You give it to him?” “No. I haven’t spoken to him in a month.” “Thinking about giving it to him?” “Not if it interferes with a job I’m
doing.” “Private job?” “Yes.” “Okay, what is it you want?” “What’s Sonderborg’s real racket?” Hemingway took his hands off the wheel and
spat out of the window. “We’re on a nice street here, ain’t we? Nice homes,
nice gardens, nice climate. You hear a lot about crooked cops, or do you?” “Once in a while,” I said. “Okay, how many cops do you find living on
a street even as good as this, with nice lawns and flowers? I’d know four or
five, all vice squad boys. They get all the gravy. Cops like me live in
itty-bitty frame houses on the wrong side of town. Want to see where I live?” “What would it prove?” “Listen, pally,” the big man said
seriously. “You got me on a string, but it could break. Cops don’t go crooked
for money. Not always, not even often. They get caught in the system. They get
you where they have you do what is told them or else. And the guy that sits
back there in the nice big corner office, with the nice suit and the nice
liquor breath he thinks chewing on them seeds makes smell like violets, only it
don’t—he ain’t giving the orders either. You get me?” “What kind of a man is the mayor?” “What kind of guy is a mayor anywhere? A
politician. You think he gives the orders? Nuts. You know what’s the matter
with this country, baby?” “Too much frozen capital, I heard.” “A guy can’t stay honest if he wants to,”
Hemingway said. “That’s what’s the matter with this country. He gets chiseled
out of his pants if he does. You gotta play the game dirty or you don’t eat. A
lot of bastards think all we need is ninety thousand FBI men in clean collars
and brief cases. Nuts. The percentage would get them just the way it does the
rest of us. You know what I think? I think we gotta make this little world all
over again. Now take Moral Rearmament. There you’ve got something. M.R.A. There
you’ve got something, baby.” “If Bay City is a sample of how it works,
I’ll take aspirin,” I said. “You could get too smart,” Hemingway said
softly. “You might not think it, but it could be. You could get so smart you
couldn’t think about anything but bein’ smart. Me, I’m just a dumb cop. I take
orders. I got a wife and two kids and I do what the big shots say. Blane could
tell you things. Me, I’m ignorant.” “Sure Blane has appendicitis? Sure he
didn’t just shoot himself in the stomach for meanness?” “Don’t be that way,” Hemingway complained
and slapped his hands up and down on the wheel. “Try and think nice about
people.” “About Blane?” “He’s human—just like the rest of us,”
Hemingway said. “He’s a sinner—but he’s human.” “What’s Sonderborg’s racket?” “Okay, I was just telling you. Maybe I’m
wrong. I had you figured for a guy that could be sold a nice idea.” “You don’t know what his racket is,” I
said. Hemingway took his handkerchief out and
wiped his with it. “Buddy, I hate to admit it,” he said. “But you ought to know
damn well that if I knew or Blane knew Sonderborg had a racket, either we
wouldn’t of dumped you in there or you wouldn’t ever have come out, not
walking. I’m talking about a real bad racket, naturally. Not fluff stuff like
telling old women’s fortunes out of a crystal ball.” “I don’t think I was meant to come out
walking,” I said. “There’s a drug called scopolamine, truth serum, that
sometimes makes people talk without their knowing it. It’s not sure fire, any
more than hypnotism is. But it sometimes works. I think I was being milked in
there to find out what I knew. But there are only three ways Sonderborg could
have known that there was anything for me to know that might hurt him. Amthor
might have told him, or Moose Malloy might have mentioned to him that I went to
see Jessie Florian, or he might have thought putting me in there was a police
gag.” Hemingway stared at me sadly. “I can’t
even see your dust,” he said. “Who the hell is Moose Malloy?” “A big hunk that killed a man over on
Central Avenue a few days ago. He’s on your teletype, if you ever read it. And
you probably have a reader of him by now.” “So what?” “So Sonderborg was hiding him. I saw him
there, on a bed reading newspapers, the night I snuck out.” “How’d you get out? Wasn’t you locked in?”
“I crocked the orderly with a bed spring.
I was lucky.” “This big guy see you?” “No.” Hemingway kicked the car away from the
curb and a solid grin settled on his face. “Let’s go collect,” he said. “It
figures. It figures swell. Sonderborg was hiding hot boys. If they had dough,
that is. His set-up was perfect for it. Good money, too.” He kicked the car into motion and whirled
around a corner. “Hell, I thought he sold reefers,” he said
disgustedly. “With the right protection behind him. But hell, that’s a small
time racket. A peanut grift.” “Ever hear of the numbers racket? That’s a
small time racket too—if you’re just looking at one piece of it.” Hemingway turned another corner sharply
and shook his heavy head. “Right. And pin ball games and bingo houses and horse
parlors. But add them all up and give one guy control and it makes sense.” “What guy?” He went wooden on me again. His mouth shut
hard and I could see his teeth were biting at each other inside it. We were on
Descanso Street and going east. It was a quiet street even in late afternoon.
As we got towards Twenty-third, it became in some vague manner less quiet. Two
men were studying a palm tree as if figuring out how to move it. A car was
parked near Dr. Sondeborg’s place, but nothing showed in it. Halfway down the
block a man was reading water meters. The house was a cheerful spot by daylight.
Tea rose begonias made a solid pale mass under the front windows and pansies a
blur of color around the base of a white acacia in bloom. A scarlet climbing
rose was just opening its buds on a fan-shaped trellis. There was a bed of
winter sweet peas and a bronze-green humming bird prodding in them delicately.
The house looked like the home of a well-to-do elderly couple who like to garden.
The late afternoon sun on it had a hushed and menacing stillness. Hemingway slid slowly past the house and a
tight little smile tugged at the corners of his mouth. His nose sniffed. He
turned the next corner, and looked in his rear view mirror and stepped up the
speed of the car. After three blocks he braked at the side
of the street again and turned to give me a hard level stare. “L.A. law,” he said. “One of the guys by
the palm tree is called Donnelly. I know him. They got the house covered. So
you didn’t tell your pal downtown, huh?” “I said I didn’t.” “The Chief’ll love this,” Hemingway
snarled. “They come down here and raid a joint and
don’t even stop to say hello.” I said nothing. “They catch this Moose Malloy?” I shook my head. “Not so far as I know.” “How the hell far do you know, buddy?” he
asked very softly. “Not far enough. Is there any connection
between Amthor and Sonderborg?” “Not that I know of.” “Who runs this town?” Silence. “I heard a
gambler named Laird Brunette put up thirty grand to elect the mayor. I heard he
owns the Belvedere Club and both the gambling ships out on the water.” “Might be,” Hemingway said politely. “Where can Brunette be found?” “Why ask me, baby?” “Where would you make for if you lost your
hideout in this town?” “Mexico.” I laughed. “Okay, will you do me
a big favor?” “Glad to.” “Drive me back downtown.” He started the car away from the curb and
tooled it neatly along a shadowed street towards the ocean. The car reached the
City Hall and slid around into the police parking zone and I got out. “Come
round and see me some time,” Hemingway said. “I’ll likely be cleaning
spittoons.” He put his big hand out. “No hard feelings?” “M.R.A.” I said and shook the hand. He grinned all over. He called me back when
I started to walk away. He looked carefully in all directions and leaned his
mouth close to my ear. “Them gambling ships are supposed to be out beyond city
and state jurisdiction,” he said. “Panama registry. If it was me that was—” he
stopped dead, and his bleak eyes began to worry. “I get it,” I said. “I had the same sort
of idea. I don’t know why I bothered so much to get you to have it with me. But
it wouldn’t work—not for just one man.” He nodded, and then he smiled. “M.R.A.” he
said. 34 I lay on my back on a bed in a waterfront
hotel and waited for it to get dark. It was a small front room with a hard bed
and a mattress slightly thicker than the cotton blanket that covered it. A
spring underneath me was broken and stuck into the left side of my back. I lay
there and let it prod me. The reflection of a red neon light glared on the
ceiling. When it made the whole room red it would be dark enough to go out.
Outside cars honked along the alley they called the Speedway. Feet slithered on
the sidewalks below my window. There was a murmur and mutter of coming and
going in the air. The air that seeped in through the rusted screens smelled of
stale frying fat. Far off a voice of the kind that could be heard far off was
shouting: “Get hungry, foks. Get hungry. Nice hot doggies here. Get hungry.” It
got darker. I thought; and thought in my mind moved with a kind of sluggish
stealthiness, as if it was being watched by bitter and sadistic eyes. I thought
of dead eyes looking at a moonless sky, with black blood at the corners of the
mouths beneath them. I thought of nasty old women beaten to death against the
posts of their dirty beds. I thought of a man with bright blond hair who was
afraid and didn’t quite know what he was afraid of, who was sensitive enough to
know that something was wrong, and too vain or too dull to guess what it was
that was wrong. I thought of beautiful rich women who could be had. I thought
of nice slim curious girls who lived alone and could be had too, in a different
way. I thought of cops, tough cops that could be greased and yet were not by
any means all bad, like Hemingway. Fat prosperous cops with Chamber of Commerce
voices, like Chief Wax. Slim, smart and deadly cops like Randall, who for all
their smartness and deadliness were not free to do a clean job in a clean way.
I thought of sour old goats like Nulty who had given up trying. I though of
Indians and psychics and dope doctors. I thought of lots of things. It got
darker. The glare of the red neon sign spread farther and farther across the
ceiling. I sat up on the bed and put my feet on the floor and rubbed the back
of my neck. I got up on my feet and went over to the bowl in the corner and
threw cold water on my face. After a little while I felt a little better, but
very little. I needed a drink, I needed a lot of life insurance, I needed a
vacation, I needed a home in the country. What I had was a coat, a hat and a
gun. I put them on and went out of the room. There was no elevator. The hallways
smelled and the stairs had grimed rails. I went down them, threw the key on the
desk and said I was through. A clerk with a wart on his left eyelid nodded and
a Mexican bellhop in a frayed uniform coat came forward from behind the
dustiest rubber plant in California to take my bags. I didn’t have any bags, so
being a Mexican, he opened the door for me and smiled politely just the same. Outside the narrow street fumed, the
sidewalks swarmed with fat stomachs. Across the street a bingo parlor was going
full blast and beside it a couple of sailors with girls were coming out of a
photographer’s shop where they had probably been having their photos taken
riding on camels. The voice of the hot dog merchant split the dusk like an axe.
A big blue bus blared down the street to the little circle where the streetcar
used to turn on a turntable. I walked that way. After a while there was a faint smell of
ocean. Not very much, but as if they had kept this much just to remind people
this had once been a clean open beach where the waves came in and creamed and
the wind blew and you could smell something besides hot fat and cold sweat. The little sidewalk car came trundling
along the wide concrete walk. I got on it and rode to the end of the line and
got off and sat on a bench where it was quiet and cold and there was a big
brown heap of kelp almost at my feet. Out to sea they had turned the lights on
in the gambling boats. I got back on the sidewalk car the next time it came and
rode back almost to where I had left the hotel. If anybody was tailing me, he was
doing it without moving. I didn’t think there was. In that clean little city
there wouldn’t be enough crime for the dicks to be very good shadows. The black piers glittered their length and
then disappeared into the dark background of night and water. You could still
smell hot fat, but you could smell the ocean too. The hot dog man droned on: “Get hungry, folks, get hungry. Nice hot
doggies. Get hungry.” I spotted him in a white barbecue stand
tickling wienies with a long fork. He was doing a good business even that early
in the year. I had to wait some time to get him alone. “What’s the name of the one farthest out?”
I asked, pointing with my nose. “Montecito.” He
gave me the level steady look. “Could a guy with reasonable dough have
himself a time there?” “What kind of a time?” I laughed, sneeringly, very tough. “Hot doggies,” he chanted. “Nice hot
doggies, folks.” He dropped his voice. “Women?” “Nix. I was figuring on a room with a nice
sea breeze and good food and nobody to bother me. Kind of vacation.” He moved away. “I can’t hear a word you
say,” he said, and then went into his chant. He did some more business. I didn’t know
why I bothered with him. He just had that kind of face. A young couple in
shorts came up and bought hot dogs and strolled away with the boy’s arm around
the girl’s brassiere and each eating the other’s hot dog. The man slid a yard towards me and eyed me
over. “Right now I should be whistling Roses of Picardy,” he said, and paused.
“That would cost you,” he said. “How much?” “Fifty. Not less. Unless they want you for
something.” “This used to be a good town,” I said. “A
cool-off town.” “Thought it still was,” he drawled. “But
why ask me?” “I haven’t an idea,” I said. I threw a
dollar bill on his counter. “Put it in the baby’s bank,” I said. “Or whistle
Roses of Picardy.” He snapped the bill, folded it longways,
folded it across and folded it again. He laid it on the counter and tucked his
middle finger behind his thumb and snapped. The folded-bill hit me lightly in the
chest and fell noiselessly to the ground. I bent and picked it up and turned
quickly. But nobody was behind me that looked like a dick. I leaned against the counter and laid the
dollar bill on it again. “People don’t throw money at me,” I said. “They hand
it to me. Do you mind?” He took the bill, unfolded it, spread it
out and wiped it off with his apron. He punched his cash register and dropped
the bill into the drawer. “They say money don’t stink,” he said. “I
sometimes wonder.” I didn’t say anything. Some more customers
did business with him and went away. The night was cooling fast. “I wouldn’t try the Royal Crown,”
the man said. “That’s for good little squirrels, that stick to their nuts. You
look like dick to me, but that’s your angle. I hope you swim good.” I left him, wondering why I had gone to
him in the first place. Play the hunch. Play the hunch and get stung. In a
little while you wake up with your mouth full of hunches. You can’t order a cup
of coffee without shutting your eyes and stabbing the menu. Play the hunch. I walked around and tried to see if
anybody walked behind me in any particular way. Then I sought out a restaurant
that didn’t smell of frying grease and found one with a purple neon sign and a
cocktail bar behind a reed curtain. A male cutie with hennaed hair drooped at a
bungalow grand piano and tickled the keys lasciviously and sang Stairway to the
Stars in a voice with half the steps missing. I gobbled a dry martini and hurried back
through the reed curtain to the dining room. The eighty-five cent dinner tasted like a
discarded mail bag and was served to me by a waiter who looked as if he would
slug me for a quarter, cut my throat for six bits, and bury me at sea in a
barrel of concrete for a dollar and a half, plus sales tax. 35 It was a long ride for a quarter. The
water taxi, an old launch painted up and glassed in for three-quarters of its
length, slid through the anchored yachts and around the wide pile of stone
which was the end of the breakwater. The swell hit us without warning and
bounced the boat like a cork. But there was plenty of room to be sick that
early in the evening. All the company I had was three couples and the man who
drove the boat, a tough-looking citizen who sat a little on his left hip on account
of having a black leather hip-holster inside his right hip pocket. The three
couples began to chew each other’s faces as soon as we left the shore. I stared back at the lights of Bay City
and tried not to bear down too hard on my dinner. Scattered points of light
drew together and became a jeweled bracelet laid out in the show window of the
night. Then the brightness faded and they were a soft orange glow appearing and
disappearing over the edge of the swell. It was a long smooth even swell with
no whitecaps, and just the right amount of heave to make me glad I hadn’t
pickled my dinner in bar whisky. The taxi slid up and down the swell now with a
sinister smoothness, like a cobra dancing. There was cold in the air, the wet
cold that sailors never get out of their joints. The red neon pencils that
outlined the Royal Crown faded off to the left and dimmed in the gliding
gray ghosts of the sea, then shone out again, as bright as new marbles. We gave this one a wide berth. It looked
nice from a long way off. A faint music came over the water and music over the
water can never be anything but lovely. The Royal Crown seemed to ride
as steady as a pier on its four hawsers. Its landing stage was lit up like a
theater marquee. Then all this faded into remoteness and another, older,
smaller boat began to sneak out of the night towards us. It was not much to
look at. A converted seagoing freighter with scummed and rusted plates, the
superstructure cut down to the boat deck level, and above that two stumpy masts
just high enough for a radio antenna. There was light on the Montecito
also and music floated across the wet dark sea. The spooning couples took their
teeth out of each other’s necks and stared at the ship and giggled. The taxi swept around in a wide curve, careened
just enough to give the passengers a thrill, and eased up to the hemp fenders
along the stage. The taxi’s motor idled and backfired in the fog. A lazy
searchlight beam swept a circle about fifty yards out from the ship. The taxi man hooked to the stage and a
sloe-eyed lad in a blue mess jacket with bright buttons, a bright smile and a
gangster mouth, handed the girls up from the taxi. I was last. The casual neat
way he looked me over told me something about him. The casual neat way he
bumped my shoulder clip told me more. “Nix,” he said softly. “Nix.” He had a smoothly
husky voice, a hard Harry straining himself through a silk handkerchief. He
jerked his chin at the taxi man. The taxi man dropped a short loop over a bit,
turned his wheel a little, and climbed out on the stage. He stepped behind me. “No gats on the boat, laddy. Sorry and all
that rot,” Mess jacket purred. “I could check it. It’s just part of my
clothes. I’m a fellow who wants to see Brunette, on business.” He seemed mildly amused. “Never heard of
him,” he smiled. “On your way, bo.” The taxi man hooked a wrist through my
right arm. “I want to see Brunette,” I said. My voice
sounded weak and frail, like an old lady’s voice. “Let’s not argue,” the sloe-eyed lad said.
“We’re not in Bay City now, not even in California, and by some good opinions
not even in the U.S.A. Beat it.” “Back in the boat,” the taxi man growled
behind me. “I owe you a quarter. Let’s go.” I got back into the boat. Mess jacket
looked at me with his silent sleek smile. I watched it until it was no longer a
smile, no longer a face, no longer anything but a dark figure against the
landing lights. I watched it and hungered. The way back seemed longer. I didn’t
speak to the taxi man and he didn’t speak to me. As I got off at the wharf he
handed me a quarter. “Some other night,” he said wearily, “when
we got more room to bounce you.” Half a dozen customers waiting to get in
stared at me, hearing him. I went past them, past the door of the little
waiting room on the float, towards the shallow steps at the landward end. A big redheaded roughneck in dirty
sneakers and tarry pants and what was left of a torn blue sailor’s jersey and a
streak of black down the side of his face straightened from the railing and
bumped into me casually. I stopped. He looked too big. He had three
inches on me and thirty pounds. But it was getting to be time for me to put my
fist into somebody’s teeth even if all I got for it was a wooden arm. The light was dim and mostly behind him.
“What’s the matter, pardner?” he drawled. “No soap on the hell ship?” “Go darn your shirt,” I told him. “Your
belly is sticking out.” “Could be worse,” he said. “The gat’s kind
of bulgy under the light suit at that.” “What pulls your nose into it?” “Jesus, nothing at all. Just curiosity. No
offense, pal.” “Well, get the hell out of my way then.” “Sure. I’m just resting here.” He smiled a slow tired smile. His voice
was soft, dreamy, so delicate for a big man that it was startling. It made me
think of another soft-voiced big man I had strangely liked. “You got the wrong approach,” he said
sadly. “Just call me Red.” “Step aside, Red. The best people make
mistakes. I feel one crawling up my back.” He looked thoughtfully this way and that.
He had me into a corner of the shelter on the float. We seemed more or less
alone. “You want on the Monty? Can be
done. If you got a reason.” People in gay clothes and gay faces went
past us and got into the taxi. I waited for them to pass. “How much is the reason?” “Fifty bucks. Ten more if you bleed in my
boat.” I started around him. “Twenty-five,” he said softly. “Fifteen if
you come back with friends.” “I don’t have any friends,” I said, and
walked away. He didn’t try to stop me. I turned right along the cement walk down
which the little electric cars come and go, trundling like baby carriages and
blowing little horns that wouldn’t startle an expectant mother. At the foot of
the first pier there was a flaring bingo parlor, jammed full of people already.
I went into it and stood against the wall behind the players, where a lot of
other people stood and waited for a place to sit down. I watched a few numbers go up on the
electric indicator, listened to the table men call them off, tried to spot the
house players and couldn’t, and turned to leave. A large blueness that smelled of tar took
shape beside me. “No got the dough—or just tight with it?” the gentle voice
asked in my ear. I looked at him again. He had the eyes you
never see, that you only read about. Violet eyes. Almost purple. Eyes like a
girl, a lovely girl. His skin was as soft as silk. Lightly reddened, but it
would never tan. It was too delicate. He was bigger than Hemingway and younger,
by many years. He was not as big as Moose Malloy, but he looked very fast on
his feet. His hair was that shade of red that glints with gold. But except for
the eyes he had a plain farmer face, with no stagy kind of handsomeness. “What’s your racket?” he asked. “Private
eye?” “Why do I have to tell you?” I snarled. “I kind of thought that was it,” he said.
“Twenty-five too high? No expense account?” “No.” He sighed. “It was a bum idea I had
anyway,” he said. “They’ll tear you to pieces out there.” “I wouldn’t be surprised. What’s your
racket?” “A dollar here, a dollar there. I was on
the cops once. They broke me.” “Why tell me?” He looked surprised. “It’s true.” “You must have been leveling.” He smiled faintly. “Know a man named Brunette?” The faint smile stayed on his face. Three
bingos were made in a row. They worked fast in there. A tall beak-faced man
with sallow sunken cheeks and a wrinkled suit stepped close to us and leaned
against the wall and didn’t look at us. Red leaned gently towards him and
asked: “Is there something we could tell you, pardner?” The tall beak-faced man grinned and moved
away. Red grinned and shook the building leaning against the wall again. “I’ve met a man who could take you,” I
said. “I wish there was more,” he said gravely.
“A big guy costs money. Things ain’t scaled for him. He costs to feed, to put
clothes on, and he can’t sleep with his feet in the bed. Here’s how it works.
You might not think this is a good place to talk, but it is. Any finks drift
along I’ll know them and the rest of the crowd is watching those numbers and nothing
else. I got a boat with an under-water by-pass. That is, I can borrow one.
There’s a pier down the line without lights. I know a loading port on the Monty
I can open. I take a load out there once in a while. There ain’t many guys
below decks.” “They have a searchlight and lookouts,” I
said. “We can make it.” I got my wallet out and slipped a twenty
and a five against my stomach and folded them small. The purple eyes watched me
without seeming to. “One way?” “Fifteen was the word.” “The market took a spurt.” A tarry hand swallowed the bills. He moved
silently away. He faded into the hot darkness outside the doors. The beak-nosed
man materialized at my left side and said quietly: “I think I know that fellow in sailor
clothes. Friend of yours? I think I seen him before.” I straightened away from the wall and
walked away from him without speaking, out of the doors, then left, watching a
high head that moved along from electrolier to electrolier a hundred feet ahead
of me. After a couple of minutes I turned into a space between two concession
shacks. The beak-nosed man appeared, strolling with his eyes on the ground. I
stepped out to his side. “Good evening,” I said. “May I guess your
weight for a quarter?” I leaned against him. There was a gun under the wrinkled
coat. His eyes looked at me without emotion. “Am
I goin’ to have to pinch you, son? I’m posted along this stretch to maintain
law and order.” “Who’s dismaintaining it right now?” “Your friend had a familiar look to me.” “He ought to. He’s a cop.” “Aw hell,” the beak-nosed man said
patiently. “That’s where I seen him. Good night to you.” He turned and strolled back the way he had
come. The tall head was out of sight now. It didn’t worry me. Nothing about
that lad would ever worry me. I walked on slowly. 36 Beyond the electroliers, beyond the beat
and toot of the small sidewalk cars, beyond the smell of hot fat and popcorn
and the shrill children and the barkers in the peep shows, beyond everything
but the smell of the ocean and the suddenly clear line of the shore and the
creaming fall of the waves into the pebbled spume. I walked almost alone now.
The noises died behind me, the hot dishonest light became a fumbling glare.
Then the lightless finger of a black pier jutted seaward into the dark. This
would be the one. I turned to go out on it. Red stood up from a box against the
beginning of the piles and spoke upwards to me. “Right,” he said. “You go on
out to the sea steps. I gotta go and get her and warm her up.” “Waterfront cop followed me. That guy in
the bingo parlor. I had to stop and speak to him.” “Olson. Pickpocket detail. He’s good too.
Except once in a while he will lift a leather and plant it, to keep up his
arrest record. That’s being a shade too good, or isn’t it?” “For Bay City I’d say just about right.
Let’s get going. I’m getting the wind up. I don’t want to blow this fog away.
It doesn’t look much but it would help a lot.” “It’ll last enough to fool a searchlight,”
Red said. “They got Tommy-guns on that boat deck. You go on out the pier. I’ll
be along.” He melted into the dark and I went out the
dark boards, slipping on fish-slimed planking. There was a low dirty railing at
the far end. A couple leaned in a corner. They went away, the man swearing. For ten minutes I listened to the water
slapping the piles. A night bird whirred in the dark, the faint grayness of a
wing cut across my vision and disappeared. A plane droned high in the ceiling.
Then far off a motor barked and roared and kept on roaring like half a dozen truck
engines. After a while the sound eased and dropped, then suddenly there was no
sound at all. More minutes passed. I went back to the
sea steps and moved down them as cautiously as a cat on a wet floor. A dark
shape slid out of the night and something thudded. A voice said: “All set. Get
in.” I got into the boat and sat beside him
under the screen. The boat slid out over the water. There was no sound from its
exhaust now but an angry bubbling along both sides of the shell. Once more the
lights of Bay City became something distantly luminous beyond the rise and fall
of alien waves. Once more the garish lights of the Royal Crown slid off
to one side, the ship seeming to preen itself like a fashion model on a
revolving platform. And once again the ports of the good ship Montecito
grew out of the black Pacific and the slow steady sweep of the searchlight
turned around it like the beam of a lighthouse. “I’m scared,” I said suddenly. “I’m scared
stiff.” Red throttled down the boat and let it
slide up and down the swell as though the water moved underneath and the boat
stayed in the same place. He turned his face and stared at me. “I’m afraid of death and despair,” I said.
“Of dark water and drowned men’s faces and skulls with empty eye sockets. I’m
afraid of dying, of being nothing, of not finding a man named Brunette.” He chuckled. “You had me going for a
minute. You sure give yourself a pep talk. Brunette might be any place. On
either of the boats, at the club he owns, back east, Reno, in his slippers at
home. That all you want?” “I want a man named Malloy, a huge brute
who got out of the Oregon State pen a while back after an eight-year stretch
for bank robbery. He was hiding out in Bay City.” I told him about it. I told
him a great deal more than I intended to. It must have been his eyes. At the end he thought and then spoke
slowly and what he said had wisps of fog clinging to it, like the beads on a
mustache. Maybe that made it seem wiser than it was, maybe not. “Some of it makes sense,” he said. “Some
not. Some I wouldn’t know about, some I would. If this Sonderborg was running a
hideout and peddling reefers and sending boys out to heist jewels off rich
ladies with a wild look in their eyes, it stands to reason that he had an in
with the city government, but that don’t mean they knew everything he did or
that every cop on the force knew he had an in. Could be Blane did and
Hemingway, as you call him, didn’t. Blane’s bad, the other guy is just tough
cop, neither bad nor good, neither crooked nor honest, full of guts and just
dumb enough, like me, to think being on the cops is a sensible way to make a
living. This psychic fellow doesn’t figure either way. He bought himself a line
of protection in the best market, Bay City, and he used it when he had to. You
never know what a guy like that is up to and so you never know what he has on
his conscience or is afraid of. Could be he’s human and fell for a customer
once in a while. Them rich dames are easier to make than paper dolls. So my
hunch about your stay in Sonderborg’s place is simply that Blane knew
Sonderborg would be scared when he found out who you were—and the story they
told Sonderborg is probably what he told you, that they found you wandering
with your head dizzy—and Sonderborg wouldn’t know what to do with you and he
would be afraid either to let you go or to knock you off, and after long enough
Blane would drop around and raise the ante on him. That’s all there was to
that. It just happened they could use you and they did it. Blane might know about
Malloy too. I wouldn’t put it past him.” I listened and watched the slow sweep of
the searchlight and the coming and going of the water taxi far over to the
right. “I know how these boys figure,” Red said.
“The trouble with cops is not that they’re dumb or crooked or tough, but that
they think just being a cop gives them a little something they didn’t have
before. Maybe it did once, but not any more. They’re topped by too many smart
minds. That brings us to Brunette. He don’t run the town. He couldn’t be
bothered. He put up big money to elect a mayor so his water taxis wouldn’t be
bothered. If there was anything in particular he wanted, they would give it to
him. Like a while ago one of his friends, a lawyer, was pinched for a drunk
driving felony and Brunette got the charge reduced to reckless driving. They
changed the blotter to do it, and that’s a felony too. Which gives you an idea.
His racket is gambling and all rackets tie together these days. So he might
handle reefers, or touch a percentage from some one of his workers he gave the
business to. He might know Sonderborg and he might not. But the jewel heist is
out. Figure the work these boys done for eight grand. It’s a laugh to think
Brunette would have anything to do with that.” “Yeah,” I said. “There was a man murdered
too—remember?” “He didn’t do that either, nor have it
done. If Brunette had that done, you wouldn’t have found any body. You never
know what might be stitched into a guy’s clothes. Why chance it? Look what I’m
doing for you for twenty-five bucks. What would Brunette get done with the
money he has to spend?” “Would he have a man killed?” Red thought for a moment. “He might. He
probably has. But he’s not a tough guy. These racketeers are a new type. We
think about them the way we think about old time yeggs or needle-up punks.
Big-mouthed police commissioners on the radio yell that they’re all yellow
rats, that they’ll kill women and babies and howl for mercy if they see a
police uniform. They ought to know better than to try to sell the public that
stuff. There’s yellow cops and there’s yellow torpedoes—but damn few of either.
And as for the top men, like Brunette—they didn’t get there by murdering
people. They got there by guts and brains—and they don’t have the group courage
the cops have either. But above all they’re business men. What they do is for
money. Just like other business men. Sometimes a guy gets badly in the way.
Okay. Out. But they think plenty before they do it. What the hell am I giving a
lecture for?” “A man like Brunette wouldn’t hide
Malloy,” I said. “After he had killed two people.” “No. Not unless there was some other
reason than money. Want to go back?” “No.” Red moved his hands on the wheel. The boat
picked up speed. “Don’t think I like these bastards,” he said. “I hate
their guts.” 37 The revolving searchlight was a pale
mist-ridden finger that barely skimmed the waves a hundred feet or so beyond
the ship. It was probably more for show than anything else. Especially at this
time in the evening. Anyone who had plans for hijacking the take on one of
these gambling boats would need plenty of help and would pull the job about
four in the morning, when the crowd was thinned down to a few bitter gamblers,
and the crew were all dull with fatigue. Even then it would be a poor way to
make money. It had been tried once. A taxi curved to the landing stage,
unloaded, went back shorewards. Red held his speedboat idling just beyond the
weep of the searchlight. If they lifted it a few feet, just for fun—but they
didn’t. It passed languidly and the dull water glowed with it and the speedboat
slid across the line and closed in fast under the overhang, past the two huge
scummy stern hawsers. We sidled up to the greasy plates of the hull as coyly as
a hotel dick getting set to ease a hustler out of his lobby. Double iron doors loomed high above us,
and they looked too high to reach and too heavy to open even if we could reach
them. The speedboat scuffed the Montecito’s ancient sides and the swell
slapped loosely at the shell under our feet. A big shadow rose in the gloom at
my side and a coiled rope slipped upwards through the air, slapped, caught, and
the end ran down and splashed in water. Red fished it out with a boathook,
pulled it tight and fastened the end to something on the engine cowling. There
was just enough fog to make everything seem unreal. The wet air was as cold as
the ashes of love. Red leaned close to me and his breath
tickled my ear. “She rides too high. Come a good blow and she’d wave her screws
in the air. We got to climb those plates just the same.” “I can hardly wait,” I said, shivering. He put my hands on the wheel, turned it
just as he wanted it, set the throttle, and told me to hold the boat just as
she was. There was an iron ladder bolted close to the plates, curving with the
hull, its rungs probably as slippery as a greased pole. Going up it looked as tempting as climbing
over the cornice of an office building. Red reached for it, after wiping his
hands hard on his pants to get some tar on them. He hauled himself up
noiselessly, without even a grunt, and his sneakers caught the metal rungs, and
he braced his body out almost at right angles to get more traction. The searchlight beam swept far outside us
now. Light bounced off the water and seemed to make my face as obvious as a
flare, but nothing happened. Then there was a dull creak of heavy hinges over
my head. A faint ghost of yellowish light trickled out into the fog and died.
The outline of one half of the loading port showed. It couldn’t have been
bolted from inside. I wondered why. The whisper was a mere sound, without
meaning. I left the wheel and started up. It was the hardest journey I ever
made. It landed me panting and wheezing in a sour hold littered with packing
boxes and barrels and coils of rope and clumps of rusted chain. Rats screamed
in dark corners. The yellow light came from a narrow door on the far side. Red put his lips against my ear. “From
here we take a straight walk to the boiler room catwalk. They’ll have steam in
one auxiliary, because they don’t have no Diesels on this piece of cheese.
There will be probably one guy below. The crew doubles in brass up on the play
decks, table men and spotters and waiters and so on. They all got to sign on as
something that sounds like ship. From the boiler room I’ll show you a
ventilator with no grating in it. It goes to the boat deck and the boat deck is
out of bounds. But it’s all yours—while you live.” “You must have relatives on board,” I
said. “Funnier things have happened. Will you
come back fast?” “I ought to make a good splash from the
boat deck,” I said, and got my wallet out. “I think this rates a little more
money. Here. Handle the body as if it was your own.” “You don’t owe me nothing more, pardner.” “I’m buying the trip back—even if I don’t
use it. Take the money before I bust out crying and wet your shirt.” “Need a little help up there?” “All I need is a silver tongue and the one
I have is like lizard’s back.” “Put your dough away,” Red said. “You paid
me for the trip back. I think you’re scared.” He took hold of my hand. His was
strong, hard, warm and slightly sticky. “I know you’re scared,” he
whispered. “I’ll get over it,” I said. “One way or
another.” He turned away from me with a curious look
I couldn’t read in that light. I followed him among the cases and barrels, over
the raised iron sill of the door, into a long dim passage with the ship smell.
We came out of this on to a grilled steel platform, slick with oil, and went
down a steel ladder that was hard to hold on to. The slow hiss of the oil
burners filled the air now and blanketed all other sound. We turned towards the
hiss through mountains of silent iron. Around a corner we looked at a short dirty
wop in a purple silk shirt who sat in a wired-together office chair, under a
naked hanging light, and read the evening paper with the aid of a black
forefinger and steel-rimmed spectacles that had probably belonged to his
grandfather. Red stepped behind him noiselessly. He
said gently: “Hi, Shorty. How’s all the bambinos?” The Italian opened his mouth with a click
and threw a hand at the opening of his purple shirt. Red hit him on the angle
of the jaw and caught him. He put him down on the floor gently and began to
tear the purple shirt into strips. “This is going to hurt him more than the
poke on the button,” Red said softly. “But the idea is a guy going up a
ventilator ladder makes a lot of racket down below. Up above they won’t hear a
thing.” He bound and gagged the Italian neatly and
folded his glasses and put them in a safe place and we went along to the
ventilator that had no grating in it. I looked up and saw nothing but
blackness. “Goodbye,” I said. “Maybe you need a little help.” I shook myself like a wet dog. “I need a
company of marines. But either I do it alone or I don’t do it. So long.” “How long will you be?” His voice still
sounded worried. “An hour or less.” He stared at me and chewed his lip. Then
he nodded. “Sometimes a guy has to,” he said. “Drop by that bingo parlor, if
you get time.” He walked away softly, took four steps,
and came back. “That open loading port,” he said. “That might buy you
something. Use it.” He went quickly. 38 Cold air rushed down the ventilator. It
seemed a long way to the top. After three minutes that felt like an hour I
poked my head out cautiously from the hornlike opening. Canvas-sheeted boats
were gray blurs near by. Low voices muttered in the dark. The beam of the
searchlight circled slowly. It came from a point still higher, probably a
railed platform at the top of one of the stumpy masts. There would be a lad up
there with a Tommy gun too, perhaps even a light Browning. Cold job, cold
comfort when somebody left the loading port unbolted so nicely. Distantly music throbbed like the phony
bass of a cheap radio. Overhead a masthead light and through the higher layers
of fog a few bitter stars stared down. I climbed out of the ventilator, slipped
my .38 from my shoulder clip and held it curled against my ribs, hiding it with
my sleeve. I walked three silent steps and listened. Nothing happened. The
muttering talk had stopped, but not on my account. I placed it now, between two
lifeboats. And out of the night and the fog, as it mysteriously does, enough
light gathered into one focus to shine on the dark hardness of a machine gun
mounted on a high tripod and swung down over the rail. Two men stood near it,
motionless, not smoking, and their voices began to mutter again, a quiet
whisper that never became words. I listened to the muttering too long.
Another voice spoke clearly behind me. “Sorry, guests are not allowed on the boat
deck.” I turned, not too quickly, and looked at
his hands. They were light blurs and empty. I stepped sideways nodding and the end of
a boat hid us. The man followed me gently, his shoes soundless on the damp
deck. “I guess I’m lost,” I said. “I guess you are.” He had a youngish
voice, not chewed out of marble. “But there’s a door at the bottom of the
companionway. It has a spring lock on it. It’s a good lock. There used to be an
open stairway with a chain and a brass sign. We found the livelier element
would step over that.” He was talking a long time, either to be
nice, or to be waiting. I didn’t know which. I said: “Somebody must have left
the door open.” The shadowed head nodded. It was lower
than mine. “You can see the spot that puts us in,
though. If somebody did leave it open, the boss won’t like it a nickel. If
somebody didn’t, we’d like to know how you got up here. I’m sure you get the
idea.” “It seems a simple idea. Let’s go down and
talk to him about it.” “You come with a party?” “A very nice party.” “You ought to have stayed with them.” “You know how it is—you turn your head and
some other guy is buying her a drink.” He chuckled. Then he moved his chin
slightly up and down. I dropped and did a frog leap sideways and
the swish of the blackjack was a long spent sigh in the quiet air. It was
getting to be that every blackjack in the neighborhood swung at me
automatically. The tall one swore. I said: “Go ahead and be heroes.” I clicked the safety catch loudly. Sometimes even a bad scene will rock the
house. The tall one stood rooted, and I could see the blackjack swinging at his
wrist. The one I had been talking to thought it over without any hurry. “This won’t buy you a thing,” he said
gravely. “You’ll never get off the boat.” “I thought of that. Then I thought how
little you’d care.” It was still a bum scene. “You want what?” he said quietly. “I have a loud gun,” I said. “But it
doesn’t have to go off. I want to talk to Brunette.” “He went to San Diego on business.” “I’ll talk to his stand-in.” “You’re quite a lad,” the nice one said.
“We’ll go down. You’ll put the heater up before we go through the door.” “I’ll put the heater up when I’m sure I’m
going through door.” He laughed lightly. “Go back to your post,
Slim. I’ll look into this.” He moved lazily in front of me and the
tall one appeared to fade into the dark. “Follow me, then.” We moved Indian file across the deck. We
went down brassbound slippery steps. At the bottom was a thick door. He opened
it and looked at the lock. He smiled, nodded, held the door for me and I
stepped through, pocketing the gun. The door closed and clicked behind us. He
said: “Quiet evening, so far.” There was a gilded arch in front of us and
beyond it a gaming room, not very crowded. It looked much like any other gaming
room. At the far end there was a short glass bar and some stools. In the middle
a stairway going down and up this the music swelled and faded. I heard roulette
wheels. A man was dealing faro to a single customer. There were not more than
sixty people in the room. At the faro table there was a pile of yellowbacks
that would start a bank. The player was an elderly white-haired man who looked
politely attentive to the dealer, but no more. Two quiet men in dinner jackets came
through the archway sauntering, looking at nothing. That had to be expected.
They strolled towards us and the short slender man with me waited for them.
They were well beyond the arch before they let their hands find their side
pockets, looking for cigarettes of course. “From now on we have to have a little
organization here,” the short man said. “I don’t think you’ll mind?” “You’re Brunette,” I said suddenly. He shrugged. “Of course.” “You don’t look so tough,” I said. “I hope not.” The two men in dinner jackets edged me
gently. “In here,” Brunette said. “We can talk at
ease.” He opened the door and they took me into
dock. The room was like a cabin and not like a
cabin. Two brass lamps swung in gimbals hung above a dark desk that was not
wood, possibly plastic. At the end were two bunks in grained wood. The lower of
them was made up and on the top one were half a dozen stacks of phonograph
record books. A big combination radio-phonograph stood in the corner. There was
a red leather chesterfield, a red carpet, smoking stands, a tabouret with
cigarettes and a decanter and glasses, a small bar sitting cattycorners at the
opposite end from the bunks. “Sit down,” Brunette said and went around
the desk. There were a lot of business-like papers on the desk, with columns of
figures, done on a bookkeeping machine. He sat in a tall backed director’s
chair and tilted it a little and looked me over. Then he stood up again and
stripped off his overcoat and scarf and tossed them to one side. He sat down
again. He picked a pen up and tickled the lobe of one ear with it. He had a cat
smile, but I like cats. He was neither young nor old, neither fat
nor thin. Spending a lot of time on or near the ocean had given him a good
healthy complexion. His hair was nut-brown and waved naturally and waved still
more at sea. His forehead was narrow and brainy and his eyes held a delicate
menace. They were yellowish in color. He had nice hands, not babied to the point
of insipidity, but well-kept. His dinner clothes were midnight blue, I judged,
because they looked so black. I thought his pearl was a little too large, but
that might have been jealousy. He looked at me for quite a long time
before he said: “He has a gun.” One of the velvety tough guys leaned
against the middle of my spine with something that was probably not a fishing
rod. Exploring hands removed the gun and looked for others. “Anything else?” a voice asked. Brunette shook his head. “Not now.” One of the gunners slid my automatic
across the desk. Brunette put the pen down and picked up a letter opener and
pushed the gun around gently on his blotter. “Well,” he said quietly, looking past my
shoulder. “Do I have to explain what I want now?” One of them went out quickly and shut the
door. The other was so still he wasn’t there. There was a long easy silence,
broken by the distant hum of voices and the deep-toned music and somewhere down
below a dull almost imperceptible throbbing. “Drink?” “Thanks.” The gorilla mixed a couple at the little
bar. He didn’t try to hide the glasses while he did it. He placed one on each
side of the desk, on black glass scooters. “Cigarette?” “Thanks.” “Egyptian all right?” “Sure.” We lit up. We drank. It tasted like good
Scotch. The gorilla didn’t drink. “What I want—” I began. “Excuse me, but that’s rather unimportant,
isn’t it?” The soft catlike smile and the lazy
half-closing of the yellow eyes. The door opened and the other one came
back and with him was Mess jacket, gangster mouth and all. He took one look at
me and his face went oyster-white. “He didn’t get past me,” he said swiftly,
curling one end of his lips. “He had a gun,” Brunette said, pushing it
with the letter opener. “This gun. He even pushed it into my back more or less,
on the boat deck.” “Not past me, boss,” Mess jacket said just
as swiftly. Brunette raised his yellow eyes slightly
and smiled at me. “Well?” “Sweep him out,” I said. “Squash him
somewhere else.” “I can prove it by the taxi man,” Mess
jacket snarled. “You’ve been off the stage since
five-thirty?” “Not a minute, boss.” “That’s no answer. An empire can fall in a
minute.” “Not a second, boss.” “But he can be had,” I said, and laughed. Mess jacket took the smooth gliding step
of a boxer and his fist lashed like a whip. It almost reached my temple. There
was a dull thud. His fist seemed to melt in midair. He slumped sideways and
clawed at a corner of the desk, then rolled on his back. It was nice to see
somebody else get sapped for a change. Brunette went on smiling at me. “I hope you’re not doing him an
injustice,” Brunette said. “There’s still the matter of the door to the
companionway.” “Accidentally open.” “Could you think of any other idea?” “Not in such a crowd.” “I’ll talk to you alone,” Brunette said,
not looking at anyone but me. The gorilla lifted Mess jacket by the
armpits and dragged him across the cabin and his partner opened an inner door.
They went through. The door closed. “All right,” Brunette said. “Who are you
and what do you want?” “I’m a private detective and I want to
talk to a man named Moose Malloy.” “Show me you’re a private dick.” I showed him. He tossed the wallet back
across the desk. His wind-tanned lips continued to smile and the smile was
getting stagy. “I’m investigating a murder,” I said. “The
murder of a man named Marriott on the bluff near your Belvedere Club last
Thursday night. This murder happens to be connected with another murder, of a
woman, done by Malloy, an ex-con and bank robber and all-round tough guy.” He nodded. “I’m not asking you yet what it
has to do me. I assume you’ll come to that. Suppose you tell me how you got on
my boat?” “I told you.” “It wasn’t true,” he said gently. “Marlowe
is the name? It wasn’t true, Marlowe. You know that. The kid down on the stage
isn’t lying. I pick my men carefully.” “You own a piece of Bay City,” I said. “I
don’t know how big a piece, but enough for what you want. A man named
Sonderborg has been running a hideout there. He been running reefers and
stickups and hiding hot boys. Naturally, he couldn’t do that without
connections. I don’t think he could do it without you. Malloy was staying with
him. Malloy has left. Malloy is about seven feet tall and hard to hide. I think
he could hide nicely on a gambling boat.” “You’re simple,” Brunette said softly.
“Supposing I wanted to hide him, why should I take the risk out here?” He
sipped his drink. “After all I’m in another business. It’s hard enough to keep
a good taxi service running with out a lot of trouble. The world is full of
places a crook can hide. If he has money. Could you think of a better idea?” “I could, but to hell with it.” “I can’t do anything for you. So how did
you get on the boat?” “I don’t care to say.” “I’m afraid I’ll have to have you made to
say, Marlowe.” His teeth glinted in the light from the brass ship’s lamps.
“After all, it can be done.” “If I tell you, will you get word to
Malloy?” “What word?” I reached for my wallet lying on the desk
and drew a card from it and turned it over. I put the wallet away and got a
pencil instead. I wrote five words on the back of the card and pushed it across
the desk. Brunette took it and read what I had written on it. “It means nothing
to me,” he said. “It will mean something to Malloy.” He leaned back and stared at me. “I don’t
make you out. You risk your hide to come out here and hand me a card to pass on
to some thug I don’t even know. There’s no sense to it.” “There isn’t if you don’t know him.” “Why didn’t you leave your gun ashore and
come aboard the usual way?” “I forgot the first time. Then I knew that
toughie in the mess jacket would never let me on. Then I bumped into a fellow
who knew another way.” His yellow eyes lighted as with a new
flame. He smiled and said nothing. “This other fellow is no crook but he’s
been on the beach with his ears open. You have a loading port that has been
unbarred on the inside and you have a ventilator shaft out of which the grating
has been removed. There’s one man to knock over to get to the boat deck. You’d
better check your crew list, Brunette.” He moved his lips softly, one over the
other. He looked down at the card again. “Nobody named Malloy is on board this
boat,” he said. “But if you’re telling the truth about that loading port, I’ll
buy.” “Go and look at it.” He still looked down. “If there’s any way
I can get word to Malloy, I will. I don’t know why I bother.” “Take a look at that loading port.” He sat very still for a moment, then
leaned forward and pushed the gun across the desk to me. “The things I do,” he mused, as if he was
alone. “I run towns, I elect mayors, I corrupt police, I peddle dope, I hide
out crooks, I heist old women strangled with pearls. What a lot of time I
have.” He laughed shortly. “What a lot of time.” I reached for my gun and tucked it back
under my arm. Brunette stood up. “I promise nothing,” he said, eyeing me
steadily. “But I believe you.” “Of course not.” “You took a long chance to hear so
little.” “Yes.” “Well—” he made a meaningless gesture and
then put his hand across the desk. “Shake hands with a chump,” he said
softly. I shook hands with him. His hand was small
and firm and a little hot. “You wouldn’t tell me how you found out
about this loading port?” “I can’t. But the man who told me is no
crook.” “I could make you tell,” he said, and
immediately shook his head. “No. I believed you once. I’ll believe you again.
Sit still and have another drink.” He pushed a buzzer. The door at the back
opened and one of the nice-tough guys came in. “Stay here. Give him a drink, if he wants
it. No rough stuff.” The torpedo sat down and smiled at me
calmly. Brunette went quickly out of the office. I smoked. I finished my drink.
The torpedo made me another. I finished that, and another cigarette. Brunette came back and washed his hands
over in the corner, then sat down at his desk again. He jerked his head at the
torpedo. The torpedo went out silently. The yellow eyes studied me. “You win,
Marlowe. And I have one hundred and sixty-four men on my crew list. Well—” he
shrugged. “You can go back by the taxi. Nobody will bother you. As to your
message, I have a few contacts. I’ll use them. Good night. I probably should
say thanks. For the demonstration.” “Good night,” I said, and stood up and
went out. There was a new man on the landing stage.
I rode to shore on a different taxi. I went along to the bingo parlor and
leaned against the wall in the crowd. Red came along in a few minutes and leaned
beside me against the wall. “Easy, huh?” Red said softly, against the
heavy clear voices of the table men calling the numbers. “Thanks to you. He bought. He’s worried.” Red looked this way and that and turned
his lips a little more close to my ear. “Get your man?” “No. But I’m hoping Brunette will find a
way to get him a message.” Red turned his head and looked at the
tables again. He yawned and straightened away from the wall. The beak-nosed man
was in again. Red stepped over to him and said: “Hiya, Olson,” and almost
knocked the man off his feet pushing past him. Olson looked after him sourly and
straightened his hat. Then he spat viciously on the floor. As soon as he had gone, I left the place
and went along to the parking lot back towards the tracks where I had left my
car. I drove back to Hollywood and put the car
away and went up to the apartment. I took my shoes off and walked around in
my socks feeling the floor with my toes. They would still get numb again once
in a while. Then I sat down on the side of the
pulled-down bed and tried to figure time. It couldn’t be done. It might take
hours or days to find Malloy. He might never be found until the police got him.
If they ever did—alive. 39 It was about ten o’clock when I called the
Grayle number in Bay City. I thought it would probably be too late to catch
her, but it wasn’t. I fought my way through a maid and the butler and finally
heard her voice on the line. She sounded breezy and well primed for the
evening. “I promised to call you,” I said. “It’s a
little late, but I’ve had a lot to do.” “Another stand-up?” Her voice got cool. “Perhaps not. Does your chauffeur work
this late?” “He works as late as I tell him to.” “How about dropping by to pick me up? I’ll
be getting squeezed into my commencement suit.” “Nice of you,” she drawled. “Should I
really bother?” Amthor had certainly done a wonderful job with her centers of
speech—if anything had ever been wrong with them. “I’d show you my etching.” “Just one etching?” “It’s just a single apartment.” “I heard they had such things,” she drawled
again, then changed her tone. “Don’t act so hard to get. You have a lovely
build, mister. And don’t ever let anyone tell you different. Give me the
address again.” I gave it to her and the apartment number.
“The lobby door is locked,” I said. “But I’ll go down and slip the catch.” “That’s fine,” she said. “I won’t have to
bring my jimmy.” She hung up, leaving me with a curious
feeling of having talked to somebody that didn’t exist. I went down to the lobby and slipped the
catch and then took a shower and put my pajamas on and lay down on the bed. I
could have slept for a week. I dragged myself up off the bed again and set the
catch on the door, which I had forgotten to do, and walked through a deep hard
snowdrift out to the kitchenette and laid out glasses and a bottle of liqueur
Scotch I had been saving for a really high-class seduction. I lay down on the bed again. “Pray,” I
said out loud. “There’s nothing left but prayer.” I closed my eyes. The four walls of the
room seemed to hold the throb of a boat, the still air seemed to drip with fog
and rustle with sea wind. I smelled the rank sour smell of a disused hold. I
smelled engine oil and saw a wop in a purple shirt reading under a naked light
bulb with his grandfather’s spectacles. I climbed and climbed up a ventilator
shaft. I climbed the Himalayas and stepped out on top and guys with machine
guns were all around me. I talked with a small and somehow very human
yellow-eyed man who was a racketeer and probably worse. I thought of the giant
with the red hair and the violet eyes, who was probably the nicest man I had
ever met. I stopped thinking. Lights moved behind my
closed lids. I was lost in space. I was a gilt-edged sap come back from a vain
adventure. I was a hundred dollar package of dynamite that went off with a
noise like a pawnbroker looking at a dollar watch. I was a pink-headed bug
crawling up the side of the City Hall. I was asleep. I woke slowly, unwillingly, and my eyes
stared at reflected light on the ceiling from the lamp. Something moved gently
in the room. The movement was furtive and quiet and
heavy. I listened to it. Then I turned my head slowly and looked at Moose
Malloy. There were shadows and he moved in the shadows, as noiselessly as I had
seen him once before. A gun in his hand had a dark oily business-like sheen.
His hat was pushed back on his black curly hair and his nose sniffed, like the
nose of a hunting dog. He saw me open my eyes. He came softly
over to the side of the bed and stood looking down at me. “I got your note,” he said. “I make the
joint clean. I don’t make no cops outside. If this is a plant, two guys goes
out in baskets.” I rolled a little on the bed and he felt
swiftly under the pillows. His face was still wide and pale and his deep-set
eyes were still somehow gentle. He was wearing an overcoat tonight. It fitted
him where it touched. It was burst out in one shoulder seam, probably just
getting it on. It would be the largest size they had, but not large enough for
Moose Malloy. “I hoped you’d drop by,” I said. “No
copper knows any thing about this. I just wanted to see you.” “Go on,” he said. He moved sideways to a table and put the
gun down and dragged his overcoat off and sat down in my best easy chair. It
creaked, but it held. He leaned back slowly and arranged the gun so that it was
close to his right hand. He dug a pack of cigarettes out of his pocket and
shook one loose and put it into his mouth without touching it with his fingers.
A match flared on a thumbnail. The sharp smell of the smoke drifted across the
room. “You ain’t sick or anything?” he said. “Just resting. I had a hard day.” “Door was open. Expecting someone?” “A dame.” He stared at me thoughtfully. “Maybe she won’t come,” I said. “If she
does, I’ll stall her.” “What dame?” “Oh, just a dame. If she comes, I’ll get
rid of her. I’d rather talk to you.” His very faint smile hardly moved his
mouth. He puffed his cigarette awkwardly, as if it was too small for his
fingers to hold with comfort. “What made you think I was on the Monty?”
he asked. “A Bay City cop. It’s a long story and too
full of guessing.” “Bay City cops after me?” “Would that bother you?” He smiled the faint smile again. He shook
his head slightly. “You killed a woman,” I said. “Jessie
Florian. That was a mistake.” He thought. Then he nodded. “I’d drop that
one,” he said quietly. “But that queered it,” I said. “I’m not
afraid of you. You’re no killer. You didn’t mean to kill her. The other
one—over on Central—you could have squeezed out of. But not out of beating a
woman’s head on a bedpost until her brains were on her face.” “You take some awful chances, brother,” he
said softly. “The way I’ve been handled,” I said, “I
don’t know the difference any more. You didn’t mean to kill her—did you?” His eyes were restless. His head was
cocked in a listening attitude. “It’s about time you learned your own
strength,” I said. “It’s too late,” he said. “You wanted her to tell you something,” I
said. “You took hold of her neck and shook her. She was already dead when you
were banging her head against the bedpost.” He stared at me. “I know what you wanted her to tell you,”
I said. “Go ahead.” “There was a cop with me when she was
found. I had to break clean.” “How clean?” “Fairly clean,” I said. “But not about tonight.”
He stared at me. “Okay, how did you know I
was on the Monty?” He had asked me that before. He seemed to have
forgotten. “I didn’t. But the easiest way to get away
would be by water. With the set-up they have in Bay City you could get out to
one of the gambling boats. From there you could get clean away. With the right
help.” “Laird Brunette is a nice guy,” he said
emptily. “So I’ve heard. I never even spoke to him.” “He got the message to you.” “Hell, there’s a dozen grapevines that
might help him to do that, pal. When do we do what you said on the card? I had
a hunch you were leveling. I wouldn’t take the chance to come here otherwise.
Where do we go?” He killed his cigarette and watched me.
His shadow loomed against the wall, the shadow of a giant. He was so big he
seemed unreal. “What made you think I bumped Jessie
Florian?” he asked suddenly. “The spacing of the finger marks on her
neck. The fact that you had something to get out of her, and that you are
strong enough to kill people without meaning to.” “The johns tied me to it?” “I don’t know.” “What did I want out of her?” “You thought she might know where Velma
was.” He nodded silently and went on staring at
me. “But she didn’t,” I said. “Velma was too
smart for her.” There was a light knocking at the door. Malloy leaned forward a little and smiled
and picked up his gun. Somebody tried the doorknob. Malloy stood up slowly and
leaned forward in a crouch and listened. Then he looked back at me from looking
at the door. I sat up on the bed and put my feet on the
floor and stood up. Malloy watched me silently, without a motion. I went over
to the door. “Who is it?” I asked with my lips to the
panel. It was her voice all right. “Open up,
silly. It’s the Duchess of Windsor.” “Just a second.” I looked back at Malloy. He was frowning.
I went over close to him and said in a very low voice: “There’s no other way
out. Go in the dressing room behind the bed and wait. I’ll get rid of her.” He listened and thought. His expression
was unreadable. He was a man who had now very little to lose. He was a man who
would never know fear. It was not built into even that giant frame. He nodded
at last and picked up his hat and coat and moved silently around the bed and
into the dressing room. The door closed, but did not shut tight. I looked around for signs of him. Nothing
but a cigarette butt that anybody might have smoked. I went to the room door
and opened it. Malloy had set the catch again when he came in. She stood there half smiling, in the high-necked
white fox evening cloak she had told me about. Emerald pendants hung from her
ears and almost buried themselves in the soft white fur. Her fingers were
curled and soft on the small evening bag she carried. The smile died off her face when she saw
me. She looked me up and down. Her eyes were cold now. “So it’s like that,” she said grimly.
“Pajamas and dressing gown. To show me his lovely little etching. What a fool I
am.” I stood aside and held the door. “It’s not
like that at all. I was getting dressed and a cop dropped in on me. He just
left.” “Randall?” I nodded. A lie with a nod is still a lie,
but it’s an easy lie. She hesitated a moment, then moved past me with a swirl
of scented fur. I shut the door. She walked slowly across
the room, stared blankly at the wall, then turned quickly. “Let’s understand each other,” she said.
“I’m not this much of a pushover. I don’t go for hall bedroom romance. There
was a time in my life when I had too much of it. I like things done with an
air.” “Will you have a drink before you go?” I
was still leaning against the door, across the room from her. “Am I going?” “You gave me the impression you didn’t
like it here.” “I wanted to make a point. I have to be a
little vulgar to make it. I’m not one of these promiscuous bitches. I can be
had—but not just by reaching. Yes, I’ll take a drink.” I went out into the kitchenette and mixed
a couple of drinks with hands that were not too steady. I carried them in and
handed her one. There was no sound from the dressing room,
not even a sound of breathing. She took the glass and tasted it and
looked across it at the far wall. “I don’t like men to receive me in their
pajamas,” she said. “It’s a funny thing. I liked you. I liked you a lot. But I
could get over it. I have often got over such things.” I nodded and drank. “Most men are just lousy animals,” she
said. “In fact it’s a pretty lousy world, if you ask me.” “Money must help.” “You think it’s going to when you haven’t
always had money. As a matter of fact it just makes new problems.” She smiled
curiously. “And you forget how hard the old problems were.” She got out a gold cigarette case from her
bag and I went over and held a match for her. She blew a vague plume of smoke
and watched it with half-shut eyes. “Sit close to me,” she said suddenly. “Let’s talk a little first.” “About what? Oh—my jade?” “About murder.” Nothing changed in her face. She blew
another plume of smoke, this time more carefully, more slowly. “It’s a nasty
subject. Do we have to?” I shrugged. “Lin Marriott was no saint,” she said.
“But I still don’t want to talk about it.” She stared at me coolly for a long moment
and then dipped her hand into her open bag for a handkerchief. “Personally I don’t think he was a finger
man for a jewel mob, either,” I said. “The police pretend that they think that,
but they do a lot of pretending. I don’t even think he was a blackmailer, in
any real sense. Funny, isn’t it?” “Is it?” The voice was very, very cold
now. “Well, not really,” I agreed and drank the
rest of my drink. “It was awfully nice of you to come here, Mrs. Grayle. But we
seem to have hit the wrong mood. I don’t even, for example, think Marriott was
killed by a gang. I don’t think he was going to that canyon to buy a jade
necklace. I don’t even think a jade necklace was ever stolen. I think he went
to that canyon to be murdered, although he thought he went there to help commit
a murder. But Marriott was a very bad murderer.” She leaned forward a little and her smile
became just a little glassy. Suddenly, without any real change in her, she
ceased to be beautiful. She looked merely like a woman who would have been
dangerous a hundred years ago, and twenty years ago daring, but who today was
just Grade B Hollywood. She said nothing, but her right hand was
tapping the clasp of her bag. “A very bad murderer,” I said. “Like
Shakespeare’s Second Murderer in that scene in King Richard III. The fellow
that had certain dregs of conscience, but still wanted the money, and in the
end didn’t do the job at all because he couldn’t make up his mind. Such
murderers are very dangerous. They have to be removed—sometimes with
blackjacks.” She smiled. “And who was he about to
murder, do you suppose?” “Me.” “That must be very difficult to
believe—that anyone would hate you that much. And you said my jade necklace was
never stolen at all. Have you any proof of all this?” “I didn’t say I had. I said I thought
these things.” “Then why be such a fool as to talk about
them?” “Proof,” I said, “is always a relative
thing. It’s an overwhelming balance of probabilities. And that’s a matter of
how they strike you. There was rather weak motive for murdering me—merely that
I was trying to trace a former Central Avenue dive singer at the same time that
a convict named Moose Malloy got out of jail and started to look for her too.
Perhaps I was helping him find her. Obviously, it was possible to find her, or
it wouldn’t have been worthwhile to pretend to Marriott that I had to be killed
and killed quickly. And obviously he wouldn’t have believed it, if it wasn’t
so. But there was a much stronger motive for murdering Marriott, which he, out
of vanity or love or greed or a mixture of all three, didn’t evaluate. He was
afraid, but not for himself. He was afraid of violence to which he was a part
and for which be could be convicted. But on the other hand he was fighting for
his meal ticket. So he took the chance.” I stopped. She nodded and said: “Very
interesting. If one knows what you are talking about.” “And one does,” I said. We stared at each other. She had her right
hand in her bag again now. I had a good idea what it held. But it hadn’t
started to come out yet. Every event takes time. “Let’s quit kidding,” I said. “We’re all
alone here. Nothing either of us says has the slightest standing against what
the other says. We cancel each other out. A girl who started in the gutter
became the wife of a multimillionaire. On the way up a shabby old woman
recognized her—probably heard her singing at the radio station and recognized
the voice and went to see—and this old woman had to be kept quiet. But she was
cheap, therefore she only knew a little. But the man who dealt with her and
made her monthly payments and owned a trust deed on her home and could throw
her into the gutter any time she got funny—that man knew it all. He was
expensive. But that didn’t matter either, as long as nobody else knew. But some
day a tough guy named Moose Malloy was going to get out of jail and start
finding things out about his former sweetie. Because the big sap loved her—and
still does. That’s what makes it funny, tragic-funny. And about that time a
private dick starts nosing in also. So the weak link in the chain, Marriott, is
no longer a luxury. He has become a menace. They’ll get to him and they’ll take
him apart. He’s that kind of lad. He melts under heat. So he was murdered
before he could melt. With a blackjack. By you.” All she did was take her hand out of her
bag, with a gun in it. All she did was point it at me and smile. All I did was
nothing. But that wasn’t all that was done. Moose
Malloy stepped out of the dressing room with the Colt .45 still looking like a
toy in his big hairy paw. He didn’t look at me at all. He looked at
Mrs. Lewin Lockridge Grayle. He leaned forward and his mouth smiled at her and
he spoke to her softly. “I thought I knew that voice,” he said. “I
listened to that voice for eight years—all I could remember of it. I kind of
liked your hair red, though. Hiya, babe. Long time no see.” She turned the gun. “Get away from me, you son of a bitch,”
she said. He stopped dead and dropped the gun to his
side. He was still a couple of feet from her. His breath labored. “I never thought,” he said quietly. “It
just came to me out of the blue. You turned me into the cops. You.
Little Velma.” I threw a pillow, but it was too slow. She
shot him five times in the stomach. The bullets made no more sound than fingers
going into a glove. Then she turned the gun and shot at me but
it was empty. She dived for Malloy’s gun on the floor. I didn’t miss with the
second pillow. I was around the bed and knocked her away before she got the
pillow off her face. I picked the Colt up and went away around the bed again
with it. He was still standing, but he was swaying.
His mouth was slack and his hands were fumbling at his body. He went slack at
the knees and fell sideways on the bed, with his face down. His gasping breath
filled the room. I had the phone in my hand before she
moved. Her eyes were a dead gray, like half-frozen water. She rushed for the
door and I didn’t try to stop her. She left the door wide, so when I had done
phoning I went over and shut it. I turned his head a little on the bed, so he
wouldn’t smother. He was still alive, but after five in the stomach even a
Moose Malloy doesn’t live very long. I went back to the phone and called
Randall at his home. “Malloy.” I said. “In my apartment. Shot five times in the
stomach by Mrs. Grayle. I called the Receiving Hospital. She got away.” “So you had to play clever,” was all he
said and hung up quickly. I went back to the bed. Malloy was on his
knees beside the bed now, trying to get up, a great wad of bedclothes in one
hand. His face poured sweat. His eyelids flickered slowly and the lobes of his
ears were dark. He was still on his knees and still trying
to get up when the fast wagon got there. It took four men to get him on the
stretcher. “He has a slight chance—if they’re .25’s,”
the fast wagon doctor said just before he went out. “All depends what they hit
inside. But he has a chance.” “He wouldn’t want it,” I said. He didn’t. He died in the night. 40 “You ought to have given a dinner party,”
Anne Riordan said, looking at me across her tan figured rug. “Gleaming silver
and crystal, bright crisp linen—if they’re still using linen in the places
where they give dinner parties—candlelight, the women in their best jewels and
the men in white ties, the servants hovering discreetly with the wrapped
bottles of wine, the cops looking a little uncomfortable in their hired evening
clothes, as who the hell wouldn’t, the suspects with their brittle smiles and
restless hands, and you at the head of the long table telling all about it,
little by little, with your charming light smile and a phony English accent
like Philo Vance.” “Yeah,” I said. “How about a little
something to be holding in my hand while you go on being clever?” She went out to her kitchen and rattled
ice and came back with a couple of tall ones and sat down again. “The liquor bills of your lady friends
must be something fierce,” she said and sipped. “And suddenly the butler fainted,” I said.
“Only it wasn’t the butler who did the murder. He just fainted to be cute.” I inhaled some of my drink. “It’s not that
kind of story,” I said. “It’s not lithe and clever. It’s just dark and full of
blood.” “So she got away?” I nodded. “So far. She never went home.
She must have had a little hideout where she could change her clothes and
appearance. After all she lived in peril, like the sailors. She was alone when
she came to see me. No chauffeur. She came in a small car and she left it a few
dozen blocks away.” “They’ll catch her—if they really try.” “Don’t be like that. Wilde, the D.A. is on
the level. I worked for him once. But if they catch her, what then? They’re up
against twenty million dollars and a lovely face and either Lee Farrell or
Rennenkamp. It’s going to be awfully hard to prove she killed Marriott. All
they have is what looks like a heavy motive and her past life, if they can
trace it. She probably has no record, or she wouldn’t have played it this way.”
“What about Malloy? If you had told me
about him before, I’d have known who she was right away. By the way, how did
you know? These two photos are not of the same woman.” “No. I doubt if even old lady Florian knew
they had been switched on her. She looked kind of surprised when I showed the
photo of Velma—the one that had Velma Valento written on it—in front of her
nose. But she may have known. She may have just hid it with the idea of selling
it to me later on. Knowing it was harmless, a photo of some other girl Marriott
substituted.” “That’s just guessing.” “It had to be that way. Just as when
Marriott called me up and gave me a song and dance about a jewel ransom payoff
it had to be because I had been to see Mrs. Florian about Velma. And when
Marriott was killed, it had to be because he was the weak link in the chain.
Mrs. Florian didn’t even know Vehna had become Mrs. Lewin Lockridge Grayle. She
couldn’t have. They bought her too cheap. Grayle says they went to Europe to be
married and she was married under her real name. He won’t tell where or when.
He won’t tell what her real name was. He won’t tell where she is. I don’t think
he knows, but the cops don’t believe that.” “Why won’t he tell?” Anne Riordan cupped
her chin on the backs of her laced fingers and stared at me with shadowed eyes.
“He’s so crazy about her he doesn’t care
whose lap she sat in.” “I hope she enjoyed sitting in yours,”
Anne Riordan said, acidly. “She was playing me. She was a little
afraid of me. She didn’t want to kill me because it’s bad business killing a
man who is a sort of cop. But she probably would have tried in the end, just as
she would have killed Jessie Florian, if Malloy hadn’t saved her the trouble.” “I bet it’s fun to be played by handsome
blondes,” Anna Riordan said. “Even if there is a little risk. As, I suppose,
there usually is.” I didn’t say anything. “I suppose they can’t do anything to her
for killing Malloy, because he had a gun.” “No. Not with her pull.” The gold flecked eyes studied me solemnly.
“Do think she meant to kill Malloy?” “She was afraid of him,” I said. “She had
turned him in eight years ago. He seemed to know that. But he wouldn’t have
hurt her. He was in love with her too. Yes, I think she meant to kill anybody
she had to kill. She had a lot to fight for. But you can’t keep that sort of
thing up indefinitely. She took a shot at me in my apartment—but the gun was
empty then. She ought to have killed me out on the bluff when she killed Marriott.”
“He was in love with her,” Anne said
softly. “I mean Malloy. It didn’t matter to him that she hadn’t written to him
in six years or ever gone to see him while he was in jail. It didn’t matter to
him that she had turned him in for a reward. He just bought some fine clothes
and started to look for her the first thing when he got out. So she pumped five
bullets into him, by way of saying hello. He had killed two people himself, but
he was in love with her. What a world.” I finished my drink and got the thirsty
look on my face again. She ignored it. She said: “And she had to tell Grayle where she came
from and he didn’t care. He went away to marry her under another name and sold
his radio station to break contact with anybody who might know her and he gave
her everything that money can buy and she gave him—what?” “That’s hard to say.” I shook the ice
cubes at the bottom of my glass. That didn’t get me anything either. “I suppose
she gave him a sort of pride that he, a rather old man, could have a young and
beautiful and dashing wife. He loved her. What the hell are we talking about it
for? These things happen all the time. It didn’t make any difference what she
did or who she played around with or what she had once been. He loved her.” “Like Moose Malloy,” Anne said quietly. “Let’s go riding along the water.” “You didn’t tell me about Brunette or the
cards that were in those reefers or Amthor or Dr. Sonderborg or that little
clue that set you on the path of the great solution.” “I gave Mrs. Florian one of my cards. She
put a wet glass on it. Such a card was in Marriott’s pockets, wet glass mark
and all. Marriott was not a messy man. That was a clue, of sorts. Once you
suspected anything it was easy to find out other connections, such as that
Marriott owned a trust deed on Mrs. Florian’s home, just to keep her in line.
As for Amthor, he’s a bad hat. They picked him up in a New York hotel and they
say he’s an international con man. Scotland Yard has his prints, also Paris.
How the hell they got all that since yesterday or the day before I don’t know.
These boys work fast when they feel like it. I think Randall has had this thing
taped for days and was afraid I’d step on the tapes. But Amthor had nothing to
do with killing anybody. Or with Sonderborg. They haven’t found Sonderborg yet.
They think he has a record too, but they’re not sure until they get him. As for
Brunette, you can’t get anything on a guy like Brunette. They’ll have him
before the Grand Jury and he’ll refuse to say anything, on his constitutional
rights. He doesn’t have to bother about his reputation. But there’s a nice
shakeup here in Bay City. Chief has been canned and half the detectives have
been reduced to acting patrolmen, and a very nice guy named Red Norgaard, who
helped me get on the Montecito, has got his job back. The mayor is doing
all this, changing his pants hourly while the crisis lasts.” “Do you have to say things like that?” “The Shakespearean touch. Let’s go riding.
After we’ve had another drink.” “You can have mine,” Anne Riordan said,
and got up and brought her untouched drink over to me. She stood in front of me
holding it, her eyes wide and a little frightened. “You’re so marvelous,” she said. “So
brave, so determined and you work for so little money. Everybody bats you over
the head and chokes you and smacks your jaw and fills you with morphine, but
you just keep right on hitting between tackle and end until they’re all worn
out. What makes you so wonderful?” “Go on,” I growled. “Spill it.” Anne Riordan said thoughtfully: “I’d like
to be kissed, damn you!” 41 It took over three months to find Velma.
They wouldn’t believe Grayle didn’t know where she was and hadn’t helped her
get away. So every cop and newshawk in the country looked in all the places
where money might be hiding her. And money wasn’t hiding her at all. Although
the way she hid was pretty obvious once it was found out. One night a Baltimore detective with a
camera eye as rare as a pink zebra wandered into a nightclub and listened to
the band and looked at a handsome black-haired, black browed torcher who could
sing as if she meant it. Something in her face struck a chord and the chord
went on vibrating. He went back to Headquarters and got out
the Wanted file and started through the pile of readers. When he came to the
one he wanted he looked at it a long time. Then he straightened his straw hat
on his head and went back to the nightclub and got hold of the manager. They
went back to the dressing rooms behind the shell and the manager knocked on one
of the doors. It wasn’t locked. The dick pushed the manager aside and went in
and locked it. He must have smelled marijuana because she
was smoking it, but he didn’t pay any attention then. She was sitting in front
of a triple mirror, studying the roots of her hair and eyebrows. They were her
own eyebrows. The dick stepped across the room smiling and handed her the
reader. She must have looked at the face on the
reader almost as long as the dick had down at Headquarters. There was a lot to
think about while she was looking at it. The dick sat down and crossed his legs
and lit a cigarette. He had a good eye, but he had over-specialized. He didn’t
know enough about women. Finally she laughed a little and said:
“You’re a smart lad, copper. I thought I had a voice that would be remembered.
A friend recognized me by it once, just hearing it on the radio. But I’ve been
singing with this band for a month—twice a week on a network—and nobody gave it
a thought.” “I never heard the voice,” the dick said
and went on smiling. She said: “I suppose we can’t make a deal
on this. You know, there’s a lot in it, if it’s handled right.” “Not with me,” the dick said. “Sorry.” “Let’s go then,” she said and stood up and
grabbed up her bag and got her coat from a hanger. She went over to him holding
the coat out so he could help her into it. He stood up and held it for her like
a gentleman. She turned and slipped a gun out of her
bag and shot him three times through the coat he was holding. She had two bullets left in the gun when
they crashed the door. They got halfway across the room before she used them.
She used them both, but the second shot must have been pure reflex. They caught
her before she hit the floor, but her head was already hanging by a rag. “The dick lived until the next day,”
Randall said, telling me about it. “He talked when he could. That’s how we have
the dope. I can’t understand him being so careless, unless he really was
thinking of letting her talk him into a deal of some kind. That would clutter
up his mind. But I don’t like to think that, of course.” I said I supposed that was so. “Shot herself clean through the
heart—twice,” Randall said. “And I’ve heard experts on the stand say that’s
impossible, knowing all the time myself that it was. And you know something
else?” “What?” “She was stupid to shoot that dick. We’d
never have convicted her, not with her looks and money and the persecution
story these high-priced guys would build up. Poor little girl from a dive
climbs to be wife of rich man and the vultures that used to know her won’t let
her alone. That sort of thing. Hell, Rennenkamp would have half a dozen crummy
old burlesque dames in court to sob that they’d gone blackmailed her for years,
and in a way that you pin anything on them but the jury would go for it. She
did a smart thing to run off on her own and leave Grayle out of it, but it
would have been smarter to have come home when she was caught.” “Oh you believe now that she left Grayle
out of it,” I said. He nodded. I said: “Do you think she had
any particular reason for that?” He stared at me. “I’ll go for it, whatever
it is.” “She was a killer,” I said. “But so was
Malloy. And he was a long way from being all rat. Maybe that Baltimore dick
wasn’t so pure as the record shows. Maybe she saw a chance—not to get away—she
was tired of dodging by that time—but to give a break to the only man who had
ever really given her one.” Randall stared at me with his mouth open
and his eyes unconvinced. “Hell, she didn’t have to shoot a cop to
do that,” he said. “I’m not saying she was a saint or even a
halfway nice girl. Not ever. She wouldn’t kill herself until she was cornered.
But what she did and the way she did it, kept her from coming back here for
trial. Think that over. And who would that trial hurt most? Who would be least
able to bear it? And win, lose or draw, who would pay the biggest price for the
show? An old man who had loved not wisely, but too well.” Randall said sharply: “That’s just
sentimental.” “Sure. It sounded like that when I said
it. Probably all a mistake anyway. So long. Did my pink bug ever get back up
here?” He didn’t know what I was talking about. I rode down to the street floor and went
out on the steps of the City Hall. It was a cool day and very clear. You could
see a long way—but not as far as Velma had gone. About the Author RAYMOND CHANDLER was born in Chicago, Illinois, on July 23, 1888,
but spent most of his boyhood and youth in England, where he attended Dulwich
College and later worked as a free-lance journalist for The Westminster Gazette
and The Spectator. During World War I, he served in France with the First
Division of the Canadian Expeditionary Force, transferring later to the Royal
Flying Corps (R.A.F.). In 1919 he returned to the United States, settling in
California, where he eventually became director of a number of independent oil
companies. The Depression put an end to his business career, and in 1933, at
the age of forty-five, he turned to writing, publishing his first stories in
Black Mask. His first novel, The Big Sleep, was published in 1939. Never a
prolific writer, he published only one collection of stories and seven novels
in his lifetime. In the last year of his life he was elected president of the
Mystery Writers of America. He died in La Jolla, California, on March 26, 1959. A Philip
Marlowe Novel Raymond
Chandler Copyright
1940 by Raymond Chandler. All
rights reserved. 1 IT WAS ONE OF THE MIXED BLOCKS over on Central
Avenue, the blocks that are not yet all Negro. I had just come out of a
three-chair barbershop where an agency thought a relief barber named Dimitrios
Aleidis might be working. It was a small matter. His wife said she was willing
to spend a little money to have him come home. I never found him, but Mrs. Aleidis never
paid me any money either. It was a warm day, almost the end of
March, and I stood outside the barber shop looking up at the jutting neon sign
of a second floor dine and dice emporium called Florian’s. A man was looking up
at the sign too. He was looking up at the dusty windows with a sort of ecstatic
fixity of expression, like a hunky immigrant catching his first sight of the
Statue of Liberty. He was a big man but not more than six feet five inches tall
and not wider than a beer truck. He was about ten feet away from me. His arms
hung loose at his aides and a forgotten cigar smoked behind his enormous
fingers. Slim quiet Negroes passed up and down the
street and stared at him with darting side-glances. He was worth looking at. He
wore a shaggy Borsalino hat, a rough gray sports coat with white golf balls on
it for buttons, a brown shirt, a yellow tie, pleated gray flannel slacks and
alligator shoes with white explosions on the toes. From his outer breast pocket
cascaded a show handkerchief of the same brilliant yellow as his tie. There
were a couple of colored feathers tucked into the band of his hat, but he
didn’t really need them. Even on Central Avenue, not the quietest dressed
street in the world, he looked about as inconspicuous as a tarantula on a slice
of angel food. His skin was pale and he needed a shave.
He would always need a shave. He had curly black hair and heavy eyebrows that
almost met over his thick nose. His ears were small and neat for a man of that
size and his eyes bad a shine close to tears that gray eyes often seem to have.
He stood like a statue, and after a long time he smiled. He moved slowly across the sidewalk to the
double swinging doors which shut off the stairs to the second floor. He pushed
them open, cast a cool expressionless glance up and down the street, and moved
inside. If he had been a smaller man and more quietly dressed, I might have
thought he was going to pull a stick-up. But not in those clothes, and not with
that hat, and that frame. The doors swung back outwards and almost
settled to a stop. Before they had entirely stopped moving they opened again,
violently, outwards. Something sailed across the sidewalk and landed in the
gutter between two parked cars. It landed on its hands and knees and made a
high keening noise like a cornered rat. It got up slowly, retrieved a hat and
stepped back onto the sidewalk. It was a thin, narrow-shouldered brown youth in
a lilac colored suit and a carnation. It had slick black hair. It kept its
mouth open and whined for a moment. People stared at it vaguely. Then it
settled its hat jauntily, sidled over to the wall and walked silently
splay-footed off along the block. Silence. Traffic resumed. I walked along
to the double doors and stood in front of them. They were motionless now. It
wasn’t any of my business. So I pushed them open and looked in. A hand I could have sat in came out of the
dimness and took hold of my shoulder and squashed it to a pulp. Then the hand
moved me through the doors and casually lifted me up a step. The large face
looked at me. A deep soft voice said to me, quietly: “Smokes in here, huh? Tie that for me,
pal.” It was dark in there. It was quiet. From
up above came vague sounds of humanity, but we were alone on the stairs. The
big man stared at me solemnly and went on wrecking my shoulder with his hand. “A dinge,” he said. “I just thrown him
out. You seen me throw him out?” He let go of my shoulder. The bone didn’t
seem to be broken, but the arm was numb. “It’s that kind of a place,” I said,
rubbing my shoulder. “What did you expect?” “Don’t say that, pal,” the big man purred
softly, like four tigers after dinner. “Velma used to work here. Little Velma.”
He reached for my shoulder again. I tried
to dodge him but he was as fast as a cat. He began to chew my muscles up some more
with his iron fingers. “Yeah,” he said. “Little Velma. I ain’t
seen her in eight years. You say this here is a dinge joint?” I croaked that it was. He lifted me up two more steps. I wrenched
myself loose and tried for a little elbowroom. I wasn’t wearing a gun. Looking
for Dimitrios Aleidis hadn’t seemed to require it. I doubted if it would do me
any good. The big man would probably take it away from me and eat it. “Go on up and see for yourself,” I said,
trying to keep the agony out of my voice. He let go of me again. He looked at me
with a sort of sadness in his gray eyes. “I’m feelin’ good,” he said. “I
wouldn’t want anybody to fuss with me. Let’s you and me go on up and maybe
nibble a couple.” “They won’t serve you. I told you it’s a
colored joint.” “I ain’t seen Velma in eight years,” he
said in his deep sad voice. “Eight long years since I said goodbye. She ain’t
wrote to me in six. But she’ll have a reason. She used to work here. Cute she
was. Let’s you and me go on up, huh?” “All right,” I yelled. “I’ll go up with
you. Just lay off carrying me. Let me walk. I’m fine. I’m all grown up. I go to
the bathroom alone and everything. Just don’t carry me.” “Little Velma used to work here,” he said
gently. He wasn’t listening to me. We went on up the stairs. He let me walk.
My shoulder ached. The back of my neck was wet. 2 Two more swing doors closed off the head
of the stairs from whatever was beyond. The big man pushed them open lightly
with his thumbs and we went into the room. It was a long narrow room, not very
clean, not very bright, not very cheerful. In the corner a group of Negroes
chanted and chattered in the cone of light over a crap table. There was a bar
against the right hand wall. The rest of the room was mostly small round tables.
There were a few customers, men and women, all Negroes. The chanting at the crap table stopped
dead and the light over it jerked out. There was a sudden silence as heavy as a
waterlogged boat. Eyes looked at us, chestnut colored eyes, set in faces that ranged
from gray to deep black. Heads turned slowly and the eyes in them glistened and
stared in the dead alien silence of another race. A large, thick-necked Negro was leaning
against the end of the bar with pink garters on his shirtsleeves and pink and white
suspenders crossing his broad back. He had bouncer written all over him. He put
his lifted foot down slowly and turned slowly and stared at us, spreading his
feet gently and moving a broad tongue along his lips. He had a battered face
that looked as if it had been hit by everything but the bucket of a dragline.
It was scarred, flattened, thickened, checkered, and welted. It was a face that
had nothing to fear. Everything had been done to it that anybody could think
of. The short crinkled hair had a touch of
gray. One ear had lost the lobe. The Negro was heavy and wide. He had big
heavy legs and they looked a little bowed, which is unusual in a Negro. He
moved his tongue some more and smiled and moved his body. He came towards us in
a loose fighter’s crouch. The big man waited for him silently. The Negro with the pink garters on his
arms put a massive brown hand against the big man’s chest. Large as it was, the
hand looked like a stud. The big man didn’t move. The bouncer smiled gently. “No white folks, brother. Jes’ fo’ the
colored people. I’se sorry.” The big man moved his small sad gray eyes
and looked around the room. His cheeks flushed a little. “Shine box,” be said
angrily, under his breath. He raised his voice. “Where’s Velma at?” he asked
the bouncer. The bouncer didn’t quite laugh. He studied
the big man’s clothes, his brown shirt and yellow tie, his rough gray coat and
the white golf balls on it. He moved his thick head around delicately and
studied all this from various angles. He looked down at the alligator shoes. He
chuckled lightly. He seemed amused. I felt a little sorry for him. He spoke
softly again. “Velma you says? No Velma heah, brother.
No hooch, no gals, no nothing. Jes’ the scram, white boy, jes’ the scram.” “Velma used to work here,” the big man
said. He spoke almost dreamily, as if he was all by himself, out in the woods,
picking johnny-jump-ups. I got my handkerchief out and wiped the back of my
neck again. The bouncer laughed suddenly. “Shuah,” he
said, throwing a quick look back over his shoulder at his public. “Velma used
to work heah. But Velma don’t work heah no mo’. She done reti’ed. Haw, Haw.” “Kind of take your goddamned mitt off my
shirt,” the big man said. The bouncer frowned. He was not used to
being talked to like that. He took his hand off the shirt and doubled it into a
fist about the size and color of a large eggplant. He had his job, his
reputation for toughness, his public esteem to consider. He considered them for
a second and made a mistake. He swung the fist very hard and short with a
sudden outward jerk of the elbow and hit the big man on the side of the jaw. A
soft sigh went around the room. It was a good punch. The shoulder dropped
and the body swung behind it. There was a lot of weight in that punch and the
man who landed it had had plenty of practice. The big man didn’t move his head
more than an inch. He didn’t try to block the punch. He took it, shook himself
lightly, made a quiet sound in his throat and took hold of the bouncer by the
throat. The bouncer tried to knee him in the
groin. The big man turned him in the air and slid his gaudy shoes apart on the
scaly linoleum that covered the floor. He bent the bouncer backwards and
shifted his right hand to the bouncer’s belt. The belt broke like a piece of
butcher’s string. The big man put his enormous hands flat against the bouncer’s
spine and heaved; He threw him clear across the room, spinning and staggering
and flailing with his arms. Three men jumped out of the way. The bouncer went
over with a table and smacked into the baseboard with a crash that must have
been heard in Denver. His legs twitched. Then he lay still. “Some guys,” the big man said, “has got
wrong ideas about when to get tough.” He turned to me. “Yeah,” he said. “Let’s
you and me nibble one.” We went over to the bar. The customers, by
ones and twos and threes, became quiet shadows that drifted soundless across
the floor, soundless through the doors at the head of the stairs. Soundless as
shadows on grass. They didn’t even let the doors swing. We leaned against the bar. “Whiskey sour,”
the big man said. “Call yours.” “Whiskey sour,” I said. We had whiskey sours. The big man licked his whiskey sour
impassively down the side of the thick squat glass. He stared solemnly at the
barman, a thin, worried-looking Negro in a white coat who moved as if his feet
hurt him. “You know where Velma is?” Velma you says?” the barman whined. “I
ain’t seen her ‘round heah lately. Not right lately, nossuh.” “How long you been here?” “Let’s see,” the barman put his towel down
and wrinkled his forehead and started to count on his fingers. “Bout ten
months, I reckon. ‘Bout a yeah. ‘Bout—” “Make your mind up,” the big man said. The barman goggled and his Adam’s apple
flopped around like a headless chicken. “How long’s this coop been a dinge joint?”
the big man demanded gruffly. “Says which?” The big man made a fist into which his
whiskey sour glass melted almost out of sight. “Five years anyway,” I said. “This fellow
wouldn’t know anything about a white girl named Velma. Nobody here would.” The big man looked at me as if I had just
hatched out. His whiskey sour hadn’t seemed to improve his temper. “Who the hell asked you to stick your face
in?” he asked me. I smiled. I made it a big warm friendly
smile. “I’m the fellow that came in with you. Remember?” He grinned back then, a flat white grin
without meaning. “Whiskey sour,” he told the barman. “Shake them fleas outa
your pants. Service.” The barman scuttled around, rolling the
whites of his eyes. I put my back against the bar and looked at the room. It
was now empty, save for the barman, the big man and myself, and the bouncer
crushed over against the wall. The bouncer was moving. He was moving slowly as
if with great pain and effort. He was crawling softly along the baseboard like
a fly with one wing. He was moving behind the tables, wearily, a man suddenly
old, suddenly disillusioned. I watched him move. The barman put down two more
whiskey sours. I turned to the bar. The big man glanced casually over at the
crawling bouncer and then paid no further attention to him. “There ain’t nothing left of the joint,”
he complained. “They was a little stage and band and cute little rooms where a
guy could have fun. Velma did some warbling. A redhead she was. Cute as lace
pants. We was to of been married when they hung the frame on me.” I took my second whiskey sour. I was
beginning to have enough of the adventure. “What frame?” I asked. “Where you figure I been them eight years
I said about?” “Catching butterflies.” He prodded his chest with a forefinger
like a banana. “In the caboose. Malloy is the name. They call me Moose Malloy,
on account of I’m large. The Great Bend bank job. Forty grand. Solo job. Ain’t
that something?” “You going to spend it now?” He gave me a sharp look. There was a noise
behind us. The bouncer was on his feet again, weaving a little. He had his hand
on the knob of a dark door over behind the crap table. He got the door open,
half fell through. The door clattered shut. A lock clicked. “Where’s that go?” Moose Malloy demanded. The barman’s eyes floated in his head,
focused with difficulty on the door through which the bouncer had stumbled. “Tha—tha’s Mistah Montgomery’s office,
suh. He’s the boss. He’s got his office back there.” “He might know,” the big man said. He
drank his drink at a gulp. “He better not crack wise neither. Two more of the
same.” He crossed the room slowly, light-footed,
without a care in the world. His enormous back hid the door. It was locked. He
shook it and a piece of the panel flew off to one side. He went through and
shut the door behind him. There was silence. I looked at the barman.
The barman looked at me. His eyes became thoughtful. He polished the counter
and sighed and leaned down with his right arm. I reached across the counter and took hold
of the arm. It was thin, brittle. I held it and smiled at him. “What you got down there, bo?” He licked his lips. He leaned on my arm,
and said nothing. Grayness invaded his shining face. “This guy is tough,” I said. “And he’s
liable to go mean. Drinks do that to him. He’s looking for a girl he used to
know. This place used to be a white establishment. Get the idea?” The barman licked his lips “He’s been away a long time,” I said.
“Eight years. He doesn’t seem to realize how long that is, although I’d expect
him to think it a lifetime. He thinks the people here should know where his
girl is. Get the idea?” The barman said slowly: “I thought you was
with him.” “I couldn’t help myself. He asked me a question
down below and then dragged me up. I never saw him before. But I didn’t feel
like being thrown over any houses. What you got down there?” “Got me a sawed-off,” the barman said. “Tsk. That’s illegal,” I whispered.
“Listen, you and I are together. Got anything else?” “Got me a gat,” the barman said. “In a
cigar box. Leggo my arm.” “That’s fine,” I said. “Now move along a
bit. Easy now. Sideways. This isn’t the time to pull the artillery.” “Says you,” the barman sneered, putting
his tired weight against my arm. “Says—” He stopped. His eyes rolled. His head
jerked. There was a dull flat sound at the back of
the place, behind the closed door beyond the crap table. It might have been a
slammed door. I didn’t think it was. The barman didn’t think so either. The barman froze. His mouth drooled. I
listened. No other sound. I started quickly for the end of the counter. I had
listened too long. The door at the back opened with a bang
and Moose Malloy came through it with a smooth heavy lunge and stopped dead,
his feet planted and a wide pale grin on his face. A Colt Army .45 looked like a toy pistol
in his hand. “Don’t nobody try to fancy pants,” he said
cozily. “Freeze the mitts on the bar.” The barman and I put our hands on the bar.
Moose Malloy looked the room over with a
raking glance. His grin was taut, nailed on. He shifted his feet and moved
silently across the room. He looked like a man who could take a bank
single-handed—even in those clothes. He came to the bar. “Rise up, nigger,” he
said softly. The barman put his hands high in the air. The big man stepped to
my back and prowled me over carefully with his left hand. His breath was hot on
my neck. It went away. “Mister Montgomery didn’t know where Velma
was neither,” he said. “He tried to tell me—with this.” His hard hand patted
the gun. I turned slowly and looked at him. “Yeah,” he said. “You’ll know me.
You ain’t forgetting me, pal. Just tell them johns not to get careless is all.”
He waggled the gun. “Well so long, punks. I gotta catch a street car.” He started towards the head of the stairs.
“You didn’t pay for the drinks,” I said. He stopped and looked at me carefully. “Maybe you got something there,” he said,
“but I wouldn’t squeeze it too hard.” He moved on, slipped through the double
doors, and his steps sounded remotely going down the stairs. The barman stooped. I jumped around behind
the counter and jostled him out of the way. A sawed-off shotgun lay under a
towel on a shelf under the bar. Beside it was a cigar box. In the cigar box was
a .38 automatic. I took both of them. The barman pressed back against the tier
of glasses behind the bar. I went back around the end of the bar and
across the room to the gaping door behind the crap table. There was a hallway
behind it, L-shaped, almost lightless. The bouncer lay sprawled on its floor
unconscious, with a knife in his hand. I leaned down and pulled the knife loose
and threw it down a back stairway. The bouncer breathed stertorously and his
hand was limp. I stepped over him and opened a door
marked “Office” in flaked black paint. There was a small scarred desk close to a
partly boarded-up window. The torso of a man was bolt upright in the chair. The
chair had a high back which just reached to the nape of the man’s neck. His
head was folded back over the high back of the chair so that his nose pointed
at the boarded-up window. Just folded, like a handkerchief or a hinge. A drawer of the desk was open at the man’s
right. Inside was a newspaper with a smear of oil in the middle. The gun would
have come from there. It had probably seemed like a good idea at the time, but
the position of Mr. Montgomery’s head proved that the idea had been wrong. There was a telephone on the desk. I laid
the sawed-off shotgun down and went over to lock the door before I called the
police. I felt safer that way and Mr. Montgomery didn’t seem to mind. When the prowl car boys stamped up the
stairs, the bouncer and the barman had disappeared and I had the place to
myself. 3 A man named Nulty got the case, a
lean-jawed sourpuss with long yellow hands which he kept folded over his
kneecaps most of the time he talked to me. He was a detective-lieutenant
attached to the 77th Street Division and we talked in a bare room
with two small desks against opposite walls and room to move between them, if
two people didn’t try it at once. Dirty brown linoleum covered the floor and
the smell of old cigar butts hung in the air. Nulty’s shirt was frayed and his
coat sleeves had been turned in at the cuffs. He looked poor enough to be
honest, but he didn’t look like a man who could deal with Moose Malloy. He lit half of a cigar and threw the match
on the floor, where a lot of company was waiting for it. His voice said
bitterly: “Shines. Another shine killing. That’s
what I rate after eighteen years in this man’s police department. No pix, no
space, not even four lines in the want-ad section.” I didn’t say anything. He picked my card
up and read it again and threw it down. “Philip Marlowe, Private Investigator. One
of those guys, huh? Jesus, you look tough enough. What was you doing all that
time?” “All what time?” “All the time this Malloy was twisting the
neck of this smoke.” “Oh, that happened in another room,” I
said. “Malloy hadn’t promised me he was going to break anybody’s neck.” “Ride me,” Nulty said bitterly. “Okay, go
ahead and ride me. Everybody else does. What’s another one matter? Poor old
Nulty. Let’s go on up and throw a couple of fifties at him. Always good for a
laugh, Nulty is.” “I’m not trying to ride anybody,” I said.
“That’s the way it happened—in another room.” “Oh, sure,” Nulty said through a fan of
rank cigar smoke. “I was down there and saw, didn’t I? Don’t you pack no rod?” “Not on that kind of a job.” “What kind of a job?” “I was looking for a barber who had run
away from his wife. She thought he could be persuaded to come home.” “You mean a dinge?” “No, a Greek.” “Okay,” Nulty said and spit into his
wastebasket. “Okay. You met the big guy how?” “I told you already. I just happened to be
there. He threw a Negro out of the doors of Florian’s and I unwisely poked my
head in to see what was happening. So he took me upstairs.” “You mean he stuck you up?” “No, he didn’t have the gun then. At
least, he didn’t show one. He took the gun away from Montgomery, probably. He
just picked me up. I’m kind of cute sometimes.” “I wouldn’t know,” Nulty said. “You seem
to pick up awful easy.” “All right,” I said. “Why argue? I’ve seen
the guy and you haven’t. He could wear you or me for a watch charm. I didn’t
know he had killed anybody until after he left. I heard a shot, but I got the
idea somebody had got scared and shot at Malloy and then Malloy took the gun
away from whoever did it.” “And why would you get an idea like that?”
Nulty asked almost suavely. “He used a gun to take that bank, didn’t he?” “Consider the kind of clothes he was
wearing. He didn’t go there to kill anybody; not dressed like that. He went
there to look for this girl named Velma that had been his girl before he was
pinched for the bank job. She worked there at Florian’s or whatever place was
there when it was still a white joint. He was pinched there. You’ll get him all
right.” “Sure,” Nulty said. “With that size and
them clothes. Easy.” “He might have another suit,” I said. “And
a car and a hideout and money and friends. But you’ll get him.” Nulty spit in the wastebasket again. “I’ll
get him,” he said, “about the time I get my third set of teeth. How many guys
is put on it? One. Listen, you know why? No space. One time there was five
smokes carved Harlem sunsets on each other down on East Eighty-four. One of
them was cold already. There was blood on the furniture, blood on the walls,
blood even on the ceiling. I go down and outside the house a guy that works on
the Chronicle, a news-hawk, is coming off the porch and getting into his car.
He makes a face at us and says, ‘Aw, hell, shines,’ and gets in his heap and
goes away. Don’t even go in the house.” “Maybe he’s a parole breaker,” I said.
“You’d get some co-operation on that. But pick him up nice or he’ll knock off a
brace of prowlies for you. Then you’ll get space.” “And I wouldn’t have the case no more
neither,” Nulty sneered. The phone rang on his desk. He listened to
it and smiled sorrowfully. He hung up and scribbled on a pad and there was a
faint gleam in his eyes, a light far back in a dusty corridor. “Hell, they got him. That was Records. Got
his prints, mug and everything. Jesus, that’s a little something anyway.” He
read from his pad. “Jesus, this is a man. Six five and one-half, two hundred
sixty-four pounds, without his necktie. Jesus, that’s a boy. Well, the hell
with him. They got him on the air now. Probably at the end of the hot car list.
Ain’t nothing to do but just wait.” He threw his cigar into a spittoon. “Try looking for the girl,” I said.
“Velma. Malloy will be looking for her. That’s what started it all. Try Velma.”
“You try her,” Nulty said. “I ain’t been
in a joy house in twenty years.” I stood up. “Okay,” I said, and started
for the door. “Hey, wait a minute,” Nulty said. “I was
only kidding. You ain’t awful busy, are you?” I rolled a cigarette around in my fingers
and looked at him and waited by the door. “I mean you got time to sort of take a
gander around for this dame. That’s a good idea you had there. You might pick
something up. You can work under glass.” “What’s in it for me?” He spread his yellow hands sadly. His
smile was cunning as a broken mousetrap. “You been in jams with us boys before.
Don’t tell me no. I heard different. Next time it ain’t doing you any harm to
have a pal.” “What good is it going to do me?” “Listen,” Nulty urged. “I’m just a quiet
guy. But any guy in the department can do you a lot of good.” “Is this for love—or are you paying
anything in money?” “No money,” Nulty said, and wrinkled his
sad yellow nose. “But I’m needing a little credit bad. Since the last shake-up,
things is really tough. I wouldn’t forget it, pal. Not ever.” I looked at my watch. “Okay, if I think of
anything, it’s yours. And when you get the mug, I’ll identify it for you. After
lunch.” We shook hands and I went down the mud-colored hall and stairway to the
front of the building and my car. It was two hours since Moose Malloy had
left Florian’s with the Army Colt in his hand. I ate lunch at a drugstore,
bought a pint of bourbon, and drove eastward to Central Avenue and north on
Central again. The hunch I had was as vague as the heat waves that danced above
the sidewalk. Nothing made it my business except
curiosity. But strictly speaking, I hadn’t had any business in a month. Even a
no-charge job was a change. 4 Florian’s was closed up, of course. An
obvious plainclothesman sat in front of it in a car, reading a paper with one
eye. I didn’t know why they bothered. Nobody there knew anything about Moose
Malloy. The bouncer and the barman had not been found. Nobody on the block knew
anything about them, for talking purposes. I drove past slowly and parked around the
corner and sat looking at a Negro hotel which was diagonally across the block
from Florian’s and beyond the nearest intersection. It was called the Hotel
Sans Souci. I got out and walked back across the intersection and went into it.
Two rows of hard empty chairs stared at each other across a strip of tan fiber
carpet. A desk was back in the dimness and behind the desk a baldheaded man had
his eyes shut and his soft brown hands clasped peacefully on the desk in front
of him. He dozed, or appeared to. He wore an Ascot tie that looked as if it had
been tied about the year 1880. The green stone in his stickpin was not quite as
large as an apple. His large loose chin was folded down gently on the tie, and
his folded hands were peaceful and clean, with manicured nails, and gray
half-moons in the purple of the nails. A metal embossed sign at his elbow said:
“This Hotel is Under the Protection of The International Consolidated Agencies,
Ltd. Inc.” When the peaceful brown man opened one eye
at me thoughtfully I pointed at the sign. “H.P.D. man checking up. Any trouble
here?” H.P.D. means Hotel Protective Department,
which is the department of a large agency that looks after check bouncers and
people who move out by the back stairs leaving unpaid bills and second-hand
suitcases full of bricks. “Trouble, brother,” the clerk said in a
high sonorous voice, “is something we is fresh out of.” He lowered his voice
four or five notches and added “What was the name again?” “Marlowe Philip Marlowe—” “A nice name, brother. Clean and cheerful.
You’re looking right well today.” He lowered his voice again. “But you ain’t no
H.P.D. man. Ain’t seen one in years.” He unrolled his hands and pointed
languidly at the sign. “I acquired that second-hand, brother, just for the
effect.” “Okay,” I said. I leaned on the counter
and started to spin a half dollar on the bare, scarred wood of the counter. “Heard what happened over at Florian’s
this morning?” “Brother, I forgit.” Both his eyes were
open now and he was watching the blur of light made by the spinning coin. “The boss got bumped off,” I said. “Man
named Montgomery. Somebody broke his neck.” “May the Lawd receive his soul, brother.”
Down went the voice again. “Cop?” “Private—on a confidential lay. And I know
a man who can keep things confidential when I see one.” He studied me, then closed his eyes and thought.
He reopened them cautiously and stared at the spinning coin. He couldn’t resist
looking at it. “Who done it?” he asked softly. “Who fixed
Sam?” “A tough guy out of the jailhouse got sore
because it wasn’t a white joint. It used to be, it seems. Maybe you remember?” He said nothing. The coin fell over with a
light ringing whirr and lay still. “Call your play,” I said. “I’ll read you a
chapter of the Bible or buy you a drink. Say which.” “Brother, I kind of like to read my Bible
in the seclusion of my family.” His eyes were bright, toad like, steady. “Maybe you’ve just had lunch,” I said. “Lunch,” he said, “is something a man of
my shape and disposition aims to do without.” Down went the voice. “Come ‘round
this here side of the desk.” I went around and drew the flat pint of
bonded bourbon out of my pocket and put it on the shelf. I went back to the
front of the desk. He bent over and examined it. He looked satisfied. “Brother, this don’t buy you nothing at
all,” he said. “But I is pleased to take a light snifter in your company.” He opened the bottle, put two small
glasses on the desk and quietly poured each full to the brim. He lifted one,
sniffed it carefully, and poured it down his throat with his little finger
lifted. He tasted it, thought about it, nodded and
said: “This come out of the correct bottle, brother. In what manner can I be of
service to you? There ain’t a crack in the sidewalk ‘round here I don’t know by
its first name. Yessuh, this liquor has been keepin’ the right company.” He
refilled his glass. I told him what had happened at Florian’s
and why. He started at me solemnly and shook his bald head. “A nice quiet place Sam run too,” he said.
“Ain’t nobody been knifed there in a month.” “When Florian’s was a white joint some six
or eight years ago or less, what was the name of it?” “Electric signs come kind of high,
brother.” I nodded. “I thought it might have had the
same name. Malloy would probably have said something if the name had been
changed. But who ran it?” “I’m a mite surprised at you, brother. The
name of that pore sinner was Florian. Mike Florian—” “And what happened to Mike Florian?” The Negro spread his gentle brown hands.
His voice was sonorous and sad. “Daid, brother. Gathered to the Lawd. Nineteen
hundred and thirty-four, maybe thirty-five. I ain’t precise on that. A wasted
life, brother, and a case of pickled kidneys, I heard say. The ungodly man
drops like a polled steer, brother, but mercy waits for him up yonder.” His
voice went down to the business level. “Damm if I know why.” “Who did he leave behind him? Pour another
drink.” He corked the bottle firmly and pushed it
across the counter. “Two is all, brother—before sundown. I thank you. Your
method of approach is soothin’ to a man’s dignity . . . Left a widow. Name of
Jessie.” “What happened to her?” “The pursuit of knowledge, brother, is the
askin’ of many questions. I ain’t heard. Try the phone book.” There was a booth in the dark corner of
the lobby. I went over and shut the door far enough to put the light on. I
looked up the name in the chained and battered book. No Florian in it at all. I
went back to the desk. “No soap,” I said. The Negro bent regretfully and heaved a
city directory up on top of the desk and pushed it towards me. He closed his
eyes. He was getting bored. There was a Jessie Florian, Widow, in the book. She
lived at 1644 West 54th Place. I wondered what I had been using for
brains all my life. I wrote the address down on a piece of
paper and pushed the directory back across the desk. The Negro put it back
where he had found it, shook hands with me, then folded his hands on the desk
exactly where they had been when I came in. His eyes drooped slowly and he
appeared to fall asleep. The incident for him was over. Halfway to
the door I shot a glance back at him. His eyes were closed and he breathed
softly and regularly, blowing a little with his lips at the end of each breath.
His bald head shone. I went out of the Hotel Sans Souci and
crossed the street to my car. It looked too easy. It looked much too easy. 5 1644 West 54th Place was a
dried-out brown house with a dried-out brown lawn in front of it. There was a
large bare patch around a tough-looking palm tree. On the porch stood one
lonely wooden rocker, and the afternoon breeze made the unpruned shoots of last
year’s poinsettias tap-tap against the cracked stucco wall. A line of stiff
yellowish half-washed clothes jittered on a rusty wire in the side yard. I drove on a quarter block, parked my car
across the street and walked back. The bell didn’t work so I rapped on the
wooden margin of the screen door. Slow steps shuffled and the door opened and I
was looking into dimness at a blowsy woman who was blowing her nose as she
opened the door. Her face was gray and puffy. She had weedy hair of that vague
color which is neither brown nor blond, that hasn’t enough life in it to be
ginger, and isn’t clean enough to be gray. Her body was thick in a shapeless
outing flannel bathrobe many moons past color and design. It was just something
around her body. Her toes were large and obvious in a pair of man’s slippers of
scuffed brown leather. I said: “Mrs. Florian? Mrs. Jessie
Florian?” “Uh-huh,” the voice dragged itself out of
her throat like a sick man getting out of bed. “You are the Mrs. Florian whose husband
once ran a place of entertainment on Central Avenue? Mike Florian?” She thumbed a wick of hair past her large
ear. Her eyes glittered with surprise. Her heavy clogged voice said: “Wha-what? My goodness sakes alive. Mike’s
been gone these five years. Who did you say you was?” The screen door was still shut and hooked.
“I’m a detective,” I said. “I’d like a
little information.” She stared at me a long dreary minute.
Then with effort she unhooked the door and turned away from it. “Come on in then. I ain’t had time to get
cleaned up yet,” she whined. “Cops, huh?” I stepped through the door and hooked the
screen again. A large handsome cabinet radio droned to the left of the door in
the corner of the room. It was the only decent piece of furniture the place
had. It looked brand new. Everything was junk—dirty overstuffed pieces, a
wooden rocker that matched the one on the porch, a square arch into a dining
room with a stained table, finger marks all over the swing door to the kitchen
beyond. A couple of frayed lamps with once gaudy shades that were now as gay as
superannuated streetwalkers. The woman sat down in the rocker and
flopped her slippers and looked at me. I looked at the radio and sat down at
the end of a davenport. She saw me looking at it. A bogus heartiness, as weak
as a Chinaman’s tea, moved into her face and voice. “All the comp’ny I got,”
she said. Then she tittered. “Mike ain’t done nothing new, has he? I don’t get
cops calling on me much.” Her titter contained a loose alcoholic
overtone. I leaned back against something hard, felt for it and brought up an
empty quart gin bottle. The woman tittered again. “A joke that was,” she said. “But I hope
to Christ they’s enough cheap blondes where he is. He never got enough of them
here.” “I was thinking more about a redhead,” I
said. “I guess he could use a few of them too.”
Her eyes, it seemed to me, were not so vague now. “I don’t call to mind. Any
special redhead?” “Yes. A girl named Velma. I don’t know
what last name she used except that it wouldn’t be her real one. I’m trying to
trace her for her folks. Your place on Central is a colored place now, although
they haven’t changed the name, and of course the people there never heard of
her. So I thought of you.” “Her folks taken their time getting around
to it—looking for her,” the woman said thoughtfully. “There’s a little money involved. Not
much. I guess they have to get her in order to touch it. Money sharpens the
memory.” “So does liquor,” the woman said. “Kind of
hot today, ain’t it? You said you was a copper though.” Cunning eyes, steady
attentive face. The feet in the man’s slippers didn’t move. I held up the dead soldier and shook it.
Then I threw it to one side and reached back on my hip for the pint of bond bourbon
the Negro hotel clerk and I had barely tapped. I held it out on my knee. The
woman’s eyes became fixed in an incredulous stare. Then suspicion climbed all
over her face, like a kitten, but not so playfully. “You ain’t no copper,” she said softly. “No
copper ever bought a drink of that stuff. What’s the gag, mister?” She blew her nose again, on one of the
dirtiest handkerchiefs I ever saw. Her eyes stayed on the bottle. Suspicion
fought with thirst, and thirst was winning. It always does. “This Velma was an entertainer, a singer.
You wouldn’t know her? I don’t suppose you went there much.” Seaweed colored eyes stayed on the bottle.
A coated tongue coiled on her lips. “Man, that’s liquor,” she sighed. “I don’t
give a damn who you are. Just hold it careful, mister. This ain’t no time to
drop anything.” She got up and waddled out of the room and
come back with two thick smeared glasses. “No fixin’s. Just what you brought is
all,” she said. I poured her a slug that would have made
me float over a wall. She reached for it hungrily and put it down her throat
like an aspirin tablet and looked at the bottle. I poured her another and a
smaller one for me. She took it over to her rocker. Her eyes had turned two
shades browner already. “Man, this stuff dies painless with me,”
she said and sat down. “It never knows what hit it. What was we talkin’ about?”
“A red-haired girl named Velma who used to
work in your place on Central Avenue.” “Yeah.” She used her second drink. I went
over and stood the bottle on an end beside her. She reached for it. “Yeah. Who
you say you was?” I took out a card and gave it to her. She
read it with her tongue and lips, dropped it on a table beside her and set her
empty glass on it. “Oh, a private guy. You ain’t said that,
mister.” She waggled a finger at me with gay reproach. “But your liquor says
you’re an all right guy at that. Here’s to crime.” She poured a third drink for
herself and drank it down. I sat down and rolled a cigarette around
in my fingers and waited. She either knew something or she didn’t. If the knew
something, she either would tell me or she wouldn’t. It was that simple. “Cute little redhead,” she said slowly and
thickly. “Yeah, I remember her. Song and dance. Nice legs and generous with
‘em. She went off somewheres. How would I know what them tramps do?” “Well, I didn’t really think you would
know,” I said. “But it was natural to come and ask you, Mrs. Florian. Help
yourself to the whiskey—I could run out for more when we need it.” “You ain’t drinkin’,” she said suddenly. I put my hand around my glass and
swallowed what was in it slowly enough to make it seem more than it was. “Where’s her folks at?” she asked
suddenly. “What does that matter?” “Okay,” she sneered. “All cops is the
same. Okay, handsome. A guy that buys me a drink is a pal.” She reached for the
bottle and set up Number 4. “I shouldn’t ought to bother with you. But when I
like a guy, the ceiling’s the limit.” She simpered. She was as cute as a
washtub. “Hold onto your hair and don’t step on no snakes,” she said. “I got me
an idea.” She got up out of the rocker, sneezed,
almost lost the bathrobe, slapped it back against her stomach and stared at me
coldly. “No peekin’,” she said, and went out of
the room again, hitting the doorframe with her shoulder. I heard her fumbling steps going into the
back part of the house. The poinsettia shoots tap-tapped dully
against the front wall. The clothesline creaked vaguely at the side of the
house. The ice cream peddler went by ringing his bell. The big new handsome
radio in the corner whispered of dancing and love with a deep soft throbbing
note like the catch in a torch singer’s voice. Then from the back of the house there were
various types of crashing sounds. A chair seemed to fall over backwards, a
bureau drawer was pulled out too far and crashed to the floor, there was
fumbling and thudding and muttered thick language. Then the slow click of a
lock and the squeak of a trunk top going up. More fumbling and banging. A tray
landed on the floor. I got up from the davenport and sneaked into the dining
room and from that into a short hail. I looked around the edge of an open door.
She was in there swaying in front of the
trunk, making grabs at what was in it, and then throwing her hair back over her
forehead with anger. She was drunker than she thought. She leaned down and
steadied herself on the trunk and coughed and sighed. Then she went down on her
thick knees and plunged both hands into the trunk and groped. They came up holding something unsteadily.
A thick package tied with faded pink tape. Slowly, clumsily, she undid the
tape. She slipped an envelope out of the package and leaned down again to
thrust the envelope out of sight into the right-hand side of the trunk. She
retied the tape with fumbling fingers. I sneaked back the way I had come and sat
down on the davenport. Breathing stertorous noises, the woman came back into
the living room and stood swaying in the doorway with the tape-tied package. She grinned at me triumphantly, tossed the
package and it fell somewhere near my feet. She waddled back to the rocker and
sat down and reached for the whiskey. I picked the package off the floor and
untied the faded pink tape. “Look ‘em over,” the woman grunted.
“Photos. Newspaper stills. Not that them tramps ever got in no newspapers
except by way of the police blotter. People from the joint they are. They’re
all the bastard left me—them and his old clothes.” I leafed through the bunch of shiny
photographs of men and women in professional poses. The men had sharp foxy
faces and racetrack clothes or eccentric clown-like makeup. Hoofers and comics
from the filling station circuit. Not many of them would ever get west of Main
Street. You would find them in tanktown vaudeville acts, cleaned up, or down in
the cheap burlesque houses, as dirty as the law allowed and once in a while
just enough dirtier for a raid and a noisy police court trial, and then back in
their shows again, grinning, sadistically filthy and as rank as the smell of
stale sweat. The women had good legs and displayed their inside curves more
than Will Hays would have liked. But their faces were as threadbare as a
bookkeeper’s office coat. Blondes, brunettes, large cow-like eyes with a
peasant dullness in them. Small sharp eyes with urchin greed in them. One or
two of the faces obviously vicious. One or two of them might have had red hair.
You couldn’t tell from the photographs. I looked them over casually, without
interest and tied the tape again. “I wouldn’t know any of these,” I said. “Why
am I looking at them?” She leered over the bottle her right hand
was grappling with unsteadily. “Ain’t you looking for Velma?” “Is she one of these?” Thick cunning played on her face, had no
fun there and went somewhere else. “Ain’t you got a photo of her—from her
folks?” That troubled her. Every girl has a photo
somewhere, if it’s only in short dresses with a bow in her hair. I should have
had it. “I ain’t beginnin’ to like you again,” the
woman said almost quietly. I stood up with my glass and went over and
put it down beside hers on the end table. “Pour me a drink before you kill the
bottle.” She reached for the glass and I turned and
walked swiftly through the square arch into the dining room, into the hall,
into the cluttered bedroom with the open trunk and the spilled tray. A voice
shouted behind me. I plunged ahead down into the right side of the trunk, felt
an envelope and brought it up swiftly. She was out of her chair when I got back
to the living room, but she had only taken two or three steps. Her eyes had a
peculiar glassiness. A murderous glassiness. “Sit down,” I snarled at her deliberately.
“You’re not dealing with a simple-minded lug like Moose Malloy this time.” It was a shot more or less in the dark,
and it didn’t hit anything. She blinked twice and tried to lift her nose with
her upper lip. Some dirty teeth showed in a rabbit leer. “Moose? The Moose? What about him?” she
gulped. “He’s loose,” I said. “Out of jail. He’s
wandering, with a forty-five gun in his hand. He killed a nigger over on
Central this morning because he wouldn’t tell him where Velma was. Now he’s
looking for the fink that turned him up eight years ago.” A white look smeared the woman’s face. She
pushed the bottle against her lips and gurgled at it. Some of the whiskey ran
down her chin. “And the cops are looking for him,” she
said and laughed. “Cops. Yah!” A lovely old woman. I liked being with
her. I liked getting her drunk for my own sordid purposes. I was a swell guy. I
enjoyed being me. You find almost anything under your hand in my business, but
I was beginning to be a little sick at my stomach. I opened the envelope my hand was
clutching and drew out a glazed still. It was like the others but it was
different, much nicer. The girl wore a Pierrot costume from the waist up. Under
the white conical hat with a black pompon on the top, her fluffed out hair had
a dark tinge that might have been red. The face was in profile but the visible
eye seemed to have gaiety in it. I wouldn’t say the face was lovely and
unspoiled. I’m not that good at faces. But it was pretty. People had been nice
to that face, or nice enough for their circle. Yet it was a very ordinary face
and its prettiness was strictly assembly line. You would see a dozen faces like
it on a city block in the noon hour. Below the waist the photo was mostly legs
and very nice legs at that. It was signed across the lower right hand corner:
“Always yours—Velma Valento.” I held it up in front of the Florian
woman, out of her reach. She lunged but came short. “Why hide it?” I asked. She made no sound except thick breathing.
I slipped the photo back into the envelope and the envelope into my pocket. “Why hide it?” I asked again. “What makes
it different from the others? Where is she?” “She’s dead,” the woman said. “She was a
good kid, but she’s dead, copper. Beat it.” The tawny mangled brows worked up and
down. Her hand opened and the whiskey bottle slid to the carpet and began to
gurgle. I bent to pick it up. She tried to kick me in the face. I stepped away
from her. “And that still doesn’t say why you hid
it,” I told her. “When did she die? How?” “I am a poor sick old woman,” she grunted.
“Get away from me, you son of a bitch.” I stood there looking at her, not saying
anything, not thinking of anything particular to say. I stepped over to her
side after a moment and put the flat bottle, now almost empty, on the table at
her side. She was staring down at the carpet. The
radio droned pleasantly in the corner. A car went by outside. A fly buzzed in a
window. After a long time she moved one lip over the other and spoke to the
floor, a meaningless jumble of words from which nothing emerged. Then she
laughed and threw her head back and drooled. Then her right hand reached for
the bottle and it rattled against her teeth as she drained it. When it was
empty she held it up and shook it and threw it at me. It went off in the corner
somewhere, skidding along the carpet and bringing up with a thud against the
baseboard. She leered at me once more, then her eyes
closed and she began to snore. It might have been an act, but I didn’t
care. Suddenly I had enough of the scene, too much of it, far too much of it. I picked my hat off the davenport and went
over to the door and opened it and went out past the screen. The radio still
droned in the corner and the woman still snored gently in her chair. I threw a
quick look back at her before I closed the door, then shut it, opened it again
silently and looked again. Her eyes were still shut but something
gleamed below the lids. I went down the steps, along the cracked walk to the
street. In the next house a window curtain was
drawn aside and a narrow intent face was close to the glass, peering, an old
woman’s face with white hair and a sharp nose. Old Nosey checking up on the neighbors.
There’s always at least one like her to the block. I waved a hand at her. The
curtain fell. I went back to my car and got into it and
drove back to the 77th Street Division, and climbed upstairs to
Nulty’s smelly little cubbyhole of an office on the second floor. 6 Nulty didn’t seem to have moved. He sat in
his chair in the same attitude of sour patience. But there were two more cigar
stubs in his ashtray and the floor was a little thicker in burnt matches. I sat down at the vacant desk and Nulty
turned over a photo that was lying face down on his desk and handed it to me.
It was a police mug, front and profile, with a fingerprint classification
underneath. It was Malloy all right, taken in a strong light, and looking as if
he had no more eyebrows than a french roll. “That’s the boy.” I passed it back. “We got a wire from Oregon State pen on
him,” Nulty said. “All time served except his copper. Things look better. We
got him cornered. A prowl car was talking to a conductor the end of the Seventh
Street line. The conductor mentioned a guy that size, looking like that. He got
off Third and Alexandria. What he’ll do is break into some big house where the
folks are away. Lots of ‘em there, old-fashioned places too far downtown now
and hard to rent. He’ll break in one and we got him bottled. What you been
doing?” “Was he wearing a fancy hat and white golf
balls on his jacket?” Nulty frowned and twisted his hands on his
kneecaps. “No, a blue suit. Maybe brown.” “Sure it wasn’t a sarong?” “Huh? Oh yeah, funny. Remind me to laugh
on my day off.” I said: “That wasn’t the Moose. He
wouldn’t ride a streetcar. He had money. Look at the clothes he was wearing. He
couldn’t wear stock sizes. They must have been made to order.” “Okay, ride me,” Nulty scowled. “What you
been doing?” “What you ought to have done. This place
called Florian’s was under the same name when it was a white night trap. I
talked to a Negro hotelman who knows the neighborhood. The sign was expensive
so the shines just went on using it when they took over. The man’s name was
Mike Florian. He’s dead some years, but his widow is still around. She lives at
1644 West 54th Place. Her name is Jessie Florian. She’s not in the
phone book, but she is in the city directory.” “Well, what do I do—date her up?” Nulty
asked. “I did it for you. I took in a pint of
bourbon with me. She’s a charming middle-aged lady with a face like a bucket of
mud and if she has washed her hair since Coolidge’s second term, I’ll eat my
spare tire, rim and all.” “Skip the wisecracks,” Nulty said. “I asked Mrs. Florian about Velma. You
remember, Mr. Nulty, the redhead named Velma that Moose Malloy was looking for?
I’m not tiring you, am I, Mr. Nulty?” “What you sore about?” “You wouldn’t understand. Mrs. Florian
said she didn’t remember Velma. Her home is very shabby except for a new radio,
worth seventy or eighty dollars.” “You ain’t told me why that’s something I
should start screaming about.” “Mrs. Florian—Jessie to me—said her
husband left her nothing but his old clothes and a bunch of stills of the gang
who worked at his joint from time to time. I plied her with liquor and she is a
girl who will take a drink if she has to knock you down to get the bottle.
After the third or fourth she went into her modest bedroom and threw things
around and dug the bunch of stills out of the bottom of an old trunk. But I was
watching her without her knowing it and she slipped one out of the packet and
hid it. So after a while I snuck in there and grabbed it.” I reached into my pocket and laid the
Pierrot girl on his desk. He lifted it and stared at it and his lips quirked at
the corners. “Cute,” he said. “Cute enough, I could
have used a piece of that once. Haw, haw. Velma Valento, huh? What happened to
this doll?” “Mrs. Florian says she died—but that
hardly explains why she hid the photo.” “It don’t do at that. Why did she hide
it?” “She wouldn’t tell me. In the end, after I
told her about the Moose being out, she seemed to take a dislike to me. That
seems impossible, doesn’t it?” “Go on,” Nulty said. “That’s all. I’ve told you the facts and
given you the exhibit. If you can’t get somewhere on this set-up, nothing I
could say would help.” “Where would I get? It’s still a shine
killing. Wait’ll we get the Moose. Hell, it’s eight years since he saw the girl
unless she visited him in the pen.” “All right,” I said. “But don’t forget
he’s looking for her and he’s a man who would bear down. By the way, he was in
for a bank job. That means a reward. Who got it?” “I don’t know,” Nulty said. “Maybe I could
find out. Why?” “Somebody turned him up. Maybe he knows
who. That would be another job he would give time to.” I stood up. “Well,
goodbye and good luck.” “You walking out on me?” I went over to the door. “I have to go
home and take a bath and gargle my throat and get my nails manicured.” “You ain’t sick, are you?” “Just dirty,” I said. “Very, very dirty.” “Well, what’s your hurry? Sit down a
minute.” He leaned back and hooked his thumbs in his vest, which made him look
a little more like a cop, but didn’t make him look any more magnetic. “No hurry,” I said. “No hurry at all.
There’s nothing more I can do. Apparently this Velma is dead, if Mrs. Florian
is telling the truth—and I don’t at the moment know of any reason why she
should lie about it. That was all I was interested in.” “Yeah,” Nulty said suspiciously—from force
of habit. “And you have Moose Malloy all sewed up
anyway, and that’s that. So I’ll just run on home now and go about the business
of trying to earn a living.” “We might miss out on the Moose,” Nulty
said. “Guys get away once in a while. Even big guys.” His eyes were suspicious
also, insofar as they contained any expression at all. “How much she slip you?”
“What?” “How much this old lady slip you to lay
off?” “Lay off what?” “Whatever it is you’re layin’ off from now
on.” He moved his thumbs from his armholes and placed them together in front of
his vest and pushed them against each other. He smiled. “Oh, for Christ’s sake,” I said, and went out
of the office, leaving his mouth open. When I was about a yard from the door, I
went back and opened it again quietly and looked in. He was sitting in the same
position pushing his thumbs at each other. But he wasn’t smiling any more. He
looked worried. His mouth was still open. He didn’t move or look up. I didn’t know
whether he heard me or not. I shut the door again and went away. 7 They had Rembrandt on the calendar that
year, a rather smeary self-portrait due to imperfectly registered color plate.
It showed him holding a smeared palette with a dirty thumb and wearing a
tam-o’-shanter which wasn’t any too clean either. His other hand held a brush
poised in the air, as if he might be going to do a little work after a while,
if somebody made a down payment. His face was aging, saggy, full of the disgust
of life and the thickening effects of liquor. But it had a hard cheerfulness
that I liked, and the eyes were as bright as drops of dew. I was looking at him across my office desk
at about four-thirty when the phone rang and I heard a cool, supercilious voice
that sounded as if it thought it was pretty good. It said drawlingly, after I
had answered: “You are Philip Marlowe, a private
detective?” “Check.” “Oh—you mean, yes. You have been
recommended to me as a man who can be trusted to keep his mouth shut. I should
like you to come to my house at seven o’clock this evening. We can discuss a
matter. My name is Lindsay Marriott and I live at 4212 Cabrillo Street,
Montemar Vista. Do you know where that is?” “I know where Montemar Vista is, Mr.
Marriott.” “Yes. Well, Cabrillo Street is rather hard
to find. The streets down here are all laid out in a pattern of interesting but
intricate curves. I should suggest that you walk up the steps from the sidewalk
cafe. If you do that, Cabrillo is the third street you come to and my house is
the only one on the block. At seven then?” “What is the nature of the employment, Mr.
Marriott?” “I should prefer not to discuss that over
the phone.” “Can’t you give me some idea? Montemar
Vista is quite a distance.” “I shall be glad to pay your expenses, if
we don’t agree. Are you particular about the nature of the employment?” “Not as long as it’s legitimate.” The voice grew icicles. “I should not have
called you, if it were not.” A Harvard boy. Nice use of the subjunctive
mood. The end of my foot itched, but my bank account was still trying to crawl
under a duck. I put honey into my voice and said: “Many thanks for calling me,
Mr. Marriott. I’ll be there.” He hung up and that was that. I thought
Mr. Rembrandt had a faint sneer on his face. I got the office bottle out of the
deep drawer of the desk and took a short drink. That took the sneer out of Mr.
Rembrandt in a hurry. A wedge of sunlight slipped over the edge
of the desk and fell noiselessly to the carpet. Traffic lights bong-bonged
outside on the boulevard, interurban cars pounded by, a typewriter clacked
monotonously in the lawyer’s office beyond the party wall. I had filled and lit
a pipe when the telephone rang again. It was Nulty this time. His voice sounded
full of baked potato. “Well, I guess I ain’t quite bright at that,” he said,
when he knew who he was talking to. “I miss one. Malloy went to see that
Florian dame.” I held the phone tight enough to crack it.
My upper lip suddenly felt a little cold. “Go on. I thought you had him
cornered.” “Was some other guy. Malloy ain’t around
there at all. We get a call from some old window-peeker on West Fifty-four. Two
guys was to see the Florian dame. Number one parked the other side of the
street and acted kind of cagey. Looked the dump over good before he went in.
Was in about an hour. Six feet, dark hair, medium heavy built. Come out quiet.”
“He had liquor on his breath too,” I said.
“Oh, sure. That was you, wasn’t it? Well,
Number Two was the Moose. Guy in loud clothes as big as a house. He come in a
car too but the old lady don’t get the license, can’t read the number that far
off. This was about a hour after you was there, she says. He goes in fast and
is in about five minutes only. Just before he gets back in his car he takes a
big gat out and spins the chamber. I guess that’s what the old lady saw he
done. That’s why she calls up. She don’t hear no shots though, inside the
house.” “That must have been a big
disappointment,” I said. “Yeah. A nifty. Remind me to laugh on my
day off. The old lady misses one too. The prowl boys go down there and don’t
get no answer on the door, so they walk in, the front door not being locked.
Nobody’s dead on the floor. Nobody’s home. The Florian dame has skipped out. So
they stop by next door and tell the old lady and she’s sore as a boil on
account of she didn’t see the Florian dame go out. So they report back and go
on about the job. So about an hour, maybe hour and a half after that, the old
lady phones in again and says Mrs. Florian is home again. So they give the call
to me and I ask her what makes that important and she hangs up in my face.” Nulty paused to collect a little breath
and wait for my comments. I didn’t have any. After a moment he went on
grumbling. “What you make of it?” “Nothing much. The Moose would be likely
to go by there, of course. He must have known Mrs. Florian pretty well.
Naturally he wouldn’t stick around very long. He would be afraid the law might
be wise to Mrs. Florian.” “What I figure,” Nulty said calmly, “Maybe
I should go over and see her—kind of find out where she went to.” “That’s a good idea,” I said. “If you can
get somebody to lift you out of your chair.” “Huh? Oh, another nifty. It don’t make a
lot of difference any more now though. I guess I won’t bother.” “All right,” I said. “Let’s have it
whatever it is.” He chuckled. “We got Malloy all lined up.
We really got him this time. We make him at Girard, headed north in a rented
hack. He gassed up there and the service station kid recognized him from the
description we broadcast a while back. He said everything jibed except Malloy
had changed to a dark suit. We got county and state law on it. If he goes on
north we get him at the Ventura line, and if he slides over to the Ridge Route,
he has to stop at Castaic for his check ticket. If he don’t stop, they phone
ahead and block the road. We don’t want no cops shot up, if we can help it.
That sound good?” “It sounds all right,” I said. “If it
really is Malloy, and if he does exactly what you expect him to do.” Nulty cleared his throat carefully. “Yeah.
What you doing on it—just in case?” “Nothing. Why should I be doing anything
on it?” “You got along pretty good with that
Florian dame. Maybe she would have some more ideas.” “All you need to find out is a full
bottle,” I said. “You handled her real nice. Maybe you
ought to kind of spend a little more time on her.” “I thought this was a police job.” “Oh sure. Was your idea about the girl
though.” “That seems to be out—unless the Florian
woman is lying about it.” “Dames lie about anything—just for
practice,” Nulty said grimly. “You ain’t real busy, huh?” “I’ve got a job to do. It came in since I
saw you. A job where I get paid. I’m sorry.” “Walking out, huh?” “I wouldn’t put it that way. I just have
to work to earn a living.” “Okay, pal. If that’s the way you feel
about it, Okay.” “I don’t feel any way about it,” I almost
yelled. “I just don’t have time to stooge for you or any other cop.” “Okay, get sore,” Nulty said, and hung up.
I held the dead phone and snarled into it:
“Seventeen hundred and fifty cops in this town and they want me to do their leg
work for them.” I dropped the phone into its cradle and
took another drink from the office bottle. After a while I went down to the lobby of
the building to buy an evening paper. Nulty was right in one thing at least.
The Montgomery killing hadn’t even made the want-ad section so far. I left the office again in time for an
early dinner. 8 I got down to Montemar Vista as the light
began to fade, but there was still a fine sparkle on the water and the surf was
breaking far out in long smooth curves. A group of pelicans was flying bomber
formation just under the creaming lip of the waves. A lonely yacht was tacking
in toward the yacht harbor at Bay City. Beyond it the huge emptiness of the
Pacific was purple-gray. Montemar Vista was a few dozen houses of
various sizes and shapes hanging by their teeth and eyebrows to a spur of mountain
and looking as if a good sneeze would drop them down among the box lunches on
the beach. Above the beach the highway ran under a
wide concrete arch which was in fact a pedestrian bridge. From the inner end of
this a flight of concrete steps with a thick galvanized handrail on one side
ran straight as a ruler up the side of the mountain. Beyond the arch the
sidewalk cafe my client had spoken of, was bright and cheerful inside, but the
iron-legged tile-topped tables outside under the striped awning were empty save
for a single dark woman in slacks who smoked and stared moodily out to sea,
with a bottle of beer in front of her. A fox terrier was using one of the iron
chairs for a lamppost. She chided the dog absently as I drove past and gave the
sidewalk cafe my business to the extent of using its parking space. I walked back through the arch and started
up the steps. It was a nice walk if you liked grunting. There were two hundred
and eighty steps up to Cabrillo Street. They were drifted over with windblown
sand and the handrail was as cold and wet as a toad’s belly. When I reached the top the sparkle had
gone from the water and a seagull with a broken trailing leg was twisting
against the off-sea breeze. I sat down on the damp cold top step and shook the
sand out of my shoes and waited for my pulse to come down into the low
hundreds. When I was breathing more or less normally again I shook my shirt
loose from my back and went along to the lighted house which was the only one
within yelling distance of the steps. It was a nice little house with a
salt-tarnished spiral of staircase going up to the front door and an imitation
coach lamp for a porch light. The garage was underneath and to one side. Its
door was lifted up and rolled back and the light of the porch lamp shone
obliquely on a huge black battleship of a car with chromium trimmings, a coyote
tail tied to the Winged Victory on the radiator cap and engraved initials where
the emblem should be. The car had a right-hand drive and looked as if had cost
more than the house. I went up the spiral steps, looked for a
bell, and used a knocker in the shape of a tiger’s head. Its clatter was
swallowed in the early evening fog. I heard no steps in the house. My damp
shirt felt like an icepack on my back. The door opened silently, and I was
looking at a tall blond man in a white flannel suit with a violet satin scarf
around his neck. There was a cornflower in the lapel of his
white coat and his pale blue eyes looked faded out by comparison. The violet
scarf was loose enough to show that he wore no tie and that he had a thick,
soft brown neck, like the neck of a strong woman. His features were a little on
the heavy side, but handsome, he had an inch more of height than I had, which
made him six feet one. His blond hair was arranged, by art or nature, in three
precise blond ledges which reminded me of steps, so that I didn’t like them. I
wouldn’t have liked them anyway. Apart from all this he had the general
appearance of a lad who would wear a white flannel suit with a violet scarf
around his neck and a cornflower in his lapel. He cleared his throat lightly and looked
past my shoulder at the darkening sea. His cool supercilious voice said: “Yes?”
“Seven o’clock,” I said. “On the dot.” “Oh yes. Let me see, your name is—” he
paused, and frowned in the effort of memory. The effect was as phony as the
pedigree of a used car. I let him work at it for a minute, then I said: “Philip Marlowe. The same as it was this
afternoon.” He gave me a quick darting frown, as if perhaps
something ought to be done about it. Then he stepped back and said coldly: “Ah yes. Quite so. Come in, Marlowe. My
house boy is away this evening.” He opened the door wide with a fingertip,
as though opening the door himself dirtied him a little. I went in past him and smelled perfume. He
closed the door. The entrance put us on a low balcony with a metal railing that
ran around three sides of a big studio living room. The fourth side contained a
big fireplace and two doors. A fire was crackling in the fireplace. The balcony
was lined with bookshelves and there were pieces of glazed metallic looking
bits of sculpture on pedestals. We went down three steps to the main part
of the living room. The carpet almost tickled my ankles. There was a concert
grand piano, closed down. On one corner of it stood a tall silver vase on a
strip of peach-colored velvet, and a single yellow rose in the vase. There was
plenty of nice soft furniture, a great many floor cushions, some with golden
tassels and some just naked. It was a nice room, if you didn’t get rough. There
was a wide damask covered divan in a shadowy corner, like a casting couch. It
was the kind of room where people sit with their feet in their laps and sip
absinthe through lumps of sugar and talk with high affected voices and
sometimes just squeak. It was a room where anything could happen except work. Mr. Lindsay Marriott arranged himself in
the curve of the grand piano, leaned over to sniff at the yellow rose, then
opened a french enamel cigarette case and lit a long brown cigarette with a
gold tip. I sat down on a pink chair and hoped I wouldn’t leave a mark on it. I
lit a Camel, blew smoke through my nose and looked at a piece of shiny metal on
a stand. It showed a full, smooth curve with a shallow fold in it and two
protuberances on the curve. I stared at it, Marriott saw me staring at it. “An interesting bit,” he said negligently.
“I picked it up just the other day. Asta Dial’s Spirit of Dawn.” “I thought it was Klopstein’s Two Warts on
a Fanny,” I said. Mr. Lindsay Marriott’s face looked as if
he had swallowed a bee. He smoothed it out with an effort. “You have a somewhat peculiar sense of
humor,” he said. “Not peculiar,” I said. “Just
uninhibited.” “Yes,” he said very coldly. “Yes—of course.
I’ve no doubt… Well, what I wished to see you about is, as a matter of fact, a
very slight matter indeed. Hardly worth bringing you down here for. I am
meeting a couple of men tonight and paying them some money. I thought I might
as well have someone with me. You carry a gun?” “At times. Yes,” I said. I looked at the
dimple in his broad, fleshy chin. You could have lost a marble in it. “I shan’t want you to carry that. Nothing
of that sort at all. This is a purely business transaction.” “I hardly ever shoot anybody,” I said. “A
matter of blackmail?” He frowned. “Certainly not. I’m not in the
habit of giving people grounds for blackmail.” “It happens to the nicest people. I might
say particularly to the nicest people.” He waved his cigarette. His aquamarine
eyes had a faintly thoughtful expression, but his lips smiled. The kind of
smile that goes with a silk noose. He blew some more smoke and tilted his
head back. This accentuated the soft firm lines of his throat. His eyes came
down slowly and studied me. “I’m meeting these men—most probably—in a
rather lonely place. I don’t know where yet. I expect a call giving me the
particulars. I have to be ready to leave at once. It won’t be very far away
from here. That’s the understanding.” “You’ve been making this deal some time?” “Three or four days, as a matter of fact.”
“You left your bodyguard problem until
pretty late.” He thought that over. He snicked some dark
ash from his cigarette. “That’s true. I had some difficulty making my mind up.
It would be better for me to go alone, although nothing has been said
definitely about my having someone with me. On the other hand I’m not much of a
hero.” “They know you by sight, of course?” “I—I’m not sure. I shall be carrying a
large amount of money and it is not my money. I’m acting for a friend. I
shouldn’t feel justified in letting it out of my possession, of course.” I snubbed out my cigarette and leaned back
in the pink chair and twiddled my thumbs. “How much money—and what for?” “Well, really—” it was a fairly nice smile
now, but I still didn’t like it. “I can’t go into that.” “You just want me to go along and hold
your hat?” His hand jerked again and some ash fell
off on his white cuff. He shook it off and stared down at the place where it
had been. “I’m afraid I don’t like your manner,” he
said, using the edge of his voice. “I’ve had complaints about it,” I said.
“But nothing seems to do any good. Let’s look at this job a little. You want a
bodyguard, but he can’t wear a gun. You want a helper, but he isn’t supposed to
know what he’s supposed to do. You want me to risk my neck without knowing why
or what for or what the risk is. What are you offering for all this?” “I hadn’t really got around to thinking
about it.” His cheekbones were dusky red. “Do you suppose you could get around to
thinking about it?” He leaned forward gracefully and smiled
between his teeth. “How would you like a swift punch on the nose?” I grinned and stood up and put my hat on.
I started across the carpet towards the front door, but not very fast. His voice snapped at my back. “I’m
offering you a hundred dollars for a few hours of your time. If that isn’t
enough, say so. There’s no risk. Some jewels were taken from a friend of mine
in a holdup—and I’m buying them back. Sit down and don’t be so touchy.” I went back to the pink chair and sat down
again. “All right,” I said. “Let’s hear about
it.” We stared at each other for all of ten
seconds. “Have you ever heard of Fei Tsui jade?” he asked slowly, and lit
another of his dark cigarettes. “No.” “It’s the only really valuable kind. Other
kinds are valuable to some extent for the material, but chiefly for the
workmanship on them. Fei Tsui is valuable in itself. All known deposits were
exhausted hundreds of years ago. A friend of mine owns a necklace of sixty
beads of about six carats each, intricately carved. Worth eighty or ninety
thousand dollars. The Chinese government has a very slightly larger one valued
at a hundred and twenty-five thousand. My friend’s necklace was taken in a
holdup a few nights ago. I was present, but quite helpless. I had driven my
friend to an evening party and later to the Trocadero and we were on our way
back to her home from there. A car brushed the left front fender and stopped,
as I thought, to apologize. Instead of that it was a very quick and very neat
holdup. Either three or four men, I really saw only two, but I’m sure another
stayed in the car behind the wheel, and I thought I saw a glimpse of still a
fourth at the rear window. My friend was wearing the jade necklace. They took
that and two rings and a bracelet. The one who seemed to be the leader looked
the things over without any apparent hurry under a small flashlight. Then he
handed one of the rings back and said that would give us an idea what kind of
people we were dealing with and to wait for a phone call before reporting to
the police or the insurance company. So we obeyed their instructions. There’s
plenty of that sort of thing going on, of course. You keep the affair to
yourself and pay ransom, or you never see your jewels again. If they’re fully
insured, perhaps you don’t mind, but if they happen to be rare pieces, you
would rather pay ransom.” I nodded. “And this jade necklace is
something that can’t be picked up every day.” He slid a finger along the polished
surface of the piano with a dreamy expression, as if touching smooth things
pleased him. “Very much so. It’s irreplaceable. She
shouldn’t have worn it out—ever. But she’s a reckless sort of woman. The other
things were good but ordinary.” “Uh-huh. How much are you paying?” “Eight thousand dollars. It’s dirt-cheap.
But if my friend couldn’t get another like it, these thugs couldn’t very easily
dispose of it either. It’s probably known to every one in the trade, all over
the country.” “This friend of yours—does she have a
name?” “I’d prefer not to mention it at the
moment.” “What are the arrangements?” He looked at me along his pale eyes. I
thought he seemed a bit scared, but I didn’t know him very well. Maybe it was a
hangover. The hand that held the dark cigarette couldn’t keep still. “We have been negotiating by telephone for
several days—through me. Everything is settled except the time and place of
meeting. It is to be sometime tonight. I shall presently be getting a call to
tell me of that. It will not be very far away, they say, and I must be prepared
to leave at once. I suppose that is so that no plant could be arranged. With
the police, I mean.” “Uh-huh. Is the money marked? I suppose it
is money?” “Currency, of course. Twenty-dollar bills.
No, why should it be marked?” “It can be done so that it takes black
light to detect it. No reason—except that the cops like to break up these
gangs—if they can get any co-operation. Some of the money might turn up on some
lad with a record.” He wrinkled his brow thoughtfully. “I’m
afraid I don’t know what black light is.” “Ultra-violet It makes certain metallic
inks glisten in the dark. I could get it done for you.” “I’m afraid there isn’t time for that
now,” he said shortly. “That’s one of the things that worries
me.” “Why?” “Why you only called me this afternoon.
Why you picked on me. Who told you about me?” He laughed. His laugh was rather boyish,
but not a very young boy. “Well, as a matter of fact I’ll have to confess I
merely picked your name at random out of the phone book. You see I hadn’t
intended to have anyone go with me. Then this afternoon I got to thinking why
not.” I lit another of my squashed cigarettes
and watched his throat muscles. “What’s the plan?” He spread his hands. “Simply to go where I
am told, hand over the package of money, and receive back the jade necklace.” “Uh-huh.” “You seem fond of that expression.” “What expression?” “Uh-huh.” “Where will I be—in the back of the car?” “I suppose so. It’s a big car. You could
easily hide in the back of it.” “Listen,” I said slowly. “You plan to go
out with me hidden in your car to a destination you are to get over the phone
some time tonight. You will have eight grand in currency on you and with that
you are supposed to buy back a jade necklace worth ten or twelve times that
much. What you will probably get will be a package you won’t be allowed to
open—providing you get anything at all. It’s just as likely they will simply
take your money, count it over in some other place, and mail you the necklace,
if they feel bighearted. There’s nothing to prevent them double-crossing you.
Certainly nothing I could do would stop them. These are heist guys. They’re
tough. They might even knock you on the head—not hard—just enough to delay you
while they go on their way.” “Well, as a matter of fact, I’m a little
afraid of something like that,” he said quietly, and his eyes twitched. “I
suppose that’s really why I wanted somebody with me.” “Did they put a flash on you when they
pulled the stick up?” He shook is head, no. “No matter. They’ve had a dozen chances to
look you over since. They probably knew all about you before that anyway. These
jobs are cased. They’re cased the way a dentist cases your tooth for a gold
inlay. You go out with this dame much?” “Well—not infrequently,” he said stiffly. “Married?” “Look here,” he snapped. “Suppose we leave
the lady out of this entirely.” “Okay,” I said. “But the more I know the
fewer cups I break. I ought to walk away from this job, Marriott. I really
ought. If the boys want to play ball, you don’t need me. If they don’t want to
play ball, I can’t do anything about it.” “All I want is your company,” he said
quickly. I shrugged and spread my hands. “Okay—but
I drive the car and carry the money—and you do the hiding in the back. We’re
about the same height. If there’s any question, we’ll just tell them the truth.
Nothing to lose by it.” “No.” He bit his lip. “I’m getting a hundred dollars for doing
nothing. If anybody gets conked, it ought to be me.” He frowned and shook his head, but after
quite a long time his face cleared slowly and he smiled. “Very well,” he said slowly. “I don’t
suppose it matters much. We’ll be together. Would you care for a spot of
brandy?” “Uh-huh. And you might bring me my hundred
bucks. I like to feel money.” He moved away like a dancer, his body
almost motionless from the waist up. The phone rang as he was on his way out.
It was in a little alcove off the living room proper, cut into the balcony. It wasn’t the call we were thinking about
though. He sounded too affectionate. He danced back after a while with a bottle
of Five-Star Martell and five nice crisp twenty-dollar bills. That made it a
nice evening—so far. 9 The house was very still. Far off there
was a sound which might have been beating surf or cars zooming along a highway,
or wind in pine trees. It was the sea, of course, breaking far down below. I
sat there and listened to it and thought long, careful thoughts. The phone rang four times within the next
hour and a half. The big one came at eight minutes past ten. Marriott talked
briefly, in a very low voice, cradled the instrument without a sound and stood
up with a sort of hushed movement. His face looked drawn. He had changed to
dark clothes now. He walked silently back into the room and poured himself a
stiff drink in a brandy glass. He held it against the light a moment with a
queer unhappy smile, swirled it once quickly and tilted his head back to pour
it down his throat. “Well—we’re all set, Marlowe. Ready?” “That’s all I’ve been all evening. Where
do we go?” “A place called Purissima Canyon.” “I never heard of it.” “I’ll get a map.” He got one and spread it
out quickly and the light blinked in his brassy hair as he bent over it. Then
he pointed with his finger. The place was one of the many canyons off the
foothill boulevard that turns into town from the coast highway north of Bay
City. I had a vague idea where it was, but no more. It seemed to be at the end
of a street called Camino de la Costa. “It will be not more than twelve minutes
from here,” Marriott said quickly. “We’d better get moving. We only have twenty
minutes to play with.” He handed me a light colored overcoat
which made me a fine target. It fitted pretty well. I wore my own hat. I had a
gun under my arm, but I hadn’t told him about that. While I put the coat on, he went on
talking in a light nervous voice and dancing on his hands the thick manila
envelope with the eight grand in it. “Purissima Canyon has a sort of level
shelf at the inner end of it, they say. This is walled off from the road by a
white fence of four-by-fours, but you can just squeeze by. A dirt road winds
down into a little hollow and we are to wait there without lights. There are no
houses around.” “We?” “Well, I mean ‘I’—theoretically.” He handed me the manila envelope and I
opened it up and looked at what was inside. It was money all right, a huge wad
of currency. I didn’t count it. I snapped the rubber around again and stuffed
the packet down inside my overcoat. It almost caved in a rib. We went to the door and Marriott switched
off all the lights. He opened the front door cautiously and peered out at the
foggy air. We went out and down the salt-tarnished spiral stairway to the
street level and the garage. It was a little foggy, the way it always
is down there at night. I had to start up the windshield wiper for a while. The big foreign car drove itself, but I
held the wheel for the sake of appearances. For two minutes we figure-eighted back and
forth across the face of the mountain and then popped out right beside the
sidewalk cafe. I could understand now why Marriott had told me to walk up the
steps. I could have driven about in those curving, twisting streets for hours without
making any more yardage than an angleworm in a bait can. On the highway the lights of the streaming
cars made an almost solid beam in both directions. The big corn poppers were
rolling north growling as they went and festooned all over with green and
yellow overhang lights. Three minutes of that and we turned inland, by a big
service station, and wound along the flank of the foothills. It got quiet.
There was loneliness and the smell of kelp and the smell of wild sage from the
hills. A yellow window hung here and there, all by itself, like the last
orange. Cars passed, spraying the pavement with cold white light, then growled
off into the darkness again. Wisps of fog chased the stars down the sky. Marriott leaned forward from the dark rear
seat and said: “Those lights off to the right are the
Belvedere Beach Club. The next canyon is Las Pulgas and the next after that
Purissima. We turn right at the top of the second rise.” His voice was hushed
and taut. I grunted and kept on driving. “Keep your
head down,” I said over my shoulder. “We may be watched all the way. This car
sticks out like spats at an Iowa picnic. Could be the boys don’t like your
being twins.” We went down into a hollow at the inward
end of a canyon and then up on the high ground and after a little while down
again and up again. Then Marriott’s tight voice said in my ear: “Next street on the right. The house with
the square turret. Turn beside that.” “You didn’t help them pick this place out,
did you?” “Hardly,” he said, and laughed grimly. “I
just happen to know these canyons pretty well.” I swung the car to the right past a big
corner house with a square white turret topped with round tiles. The headlights
sprayed for an instant on a street sign that read: Camino de la Costa. We slid
down a broad avenue lined with unfinished electroliers and weed-grown
sidewalks. Some realtor’s dream had turned into a hangover there. Crickets
chirped and bullfrogs whooped in the darkness behind the overgrown sidewalks.
Marriott’s car was that silent. There was a house to a block, then a house
to two blocks, then no houses at all. A vague window or two was still lighted,
but the people around there seemed to go to bed with the chickens. Then the
paved avenue ended abruptly in a dirt road packed as hard as concrete in dry
weather. The lights of the Belvedere Beach Club hung in the air to the right
and far ahead there was a gleam of moving water. The acrid smell of the sage
filled the night. Then a white painted barrier loomed across the dirt road and
Marriott spoke at my shoulder again. “I don’t think you can get past it,” he
said. “The space doesn’t look wide enough.” I cut the noiseless motor, dimmed the
lights and sat there, listening. Nothing. I switched the light off altogether
and got out of the car. The crickets stopped chirping. For a little while the
silence was so complete that I could hear the sound of tires on the highway at
the bottom of the cliffs, a mile away. Then one by one the crickets started up
again until the night was full of them. “Sit tight. I’m going down there and have
a look see,” I whispered into the back of the car. I touched the gun butt inside my coat and
walked forward. There was more room between the brush and the end of the white
barrier than there had seemed to be from the car. Someone had hacked the brush
away and there were car marks in the dirt. Probably kids going down there to
neck on warm nights. I went on past the barrier. The road dropped and curved.
Below was darkness and a vague far off sea-sound. And the lights of cars on the
highway. I went on. The road ended in a shallow bowl entirely surrounded by
brush. It was empty. There seemed to be no way into it but the way I had come.
I stood there in the silence and listened. Minute passed slowly after minute, but I
kept on waiting for some new sound. None came. I seemed to have that hollow
entirely to myself. I looked across to the lighted beach club.
From its upper windows a man with a good night glass could probably cover this
spot fairly well. He could see a car come and go, see who got out of it,
whether there was a group of men or just one. Sitting in a dark room with a
good night glass you can see a lot more detail than you would think possible. I turned to go back up the hill. From the
base of a bush a cricket chirped loud enough to make me jump. I went on up
around the curve and past the white barricade. Still nothing. The black car
stood dimly shining against a grayness which was neither darkness nor light. I
went over to it and put a foot on the running board beside the driver’s seat. “Looks like a tryout,” I said under my
breath, but loud enough for Marriott to hear me from the back of the car. “Just
to see if you obey orders.” There was a vague movement behind but he
didn’t answer. I went on trying to see something besides bushes. Whoever it was had a nice easy shot at the
back of my head. Afterwards I thought I might have heard the swish of a sap.
Maybe you always think that—afterwards. 10 “Four minutes,” the voice said. “Five,
possibly six. They must have moved quick and quiet. He didn’t even let out a
yell.” I opened my eyes and looked fuzzily at a
cold star. I was lying on my back. I felt sick. The voice said: “It could have been a
little longer. Maybe even eight minutes altogether. They must have been in the
brush, right where the car stopped. The guy scared easily. They must have
thrown a small light in his face and he passed out—just from panic. The pansy.”
There was silence. I got up on one knee.
Pains shot from the back of my head clear to my ankles. “Then one of them got into the car,” the
voice said, “and waited for you to come back. The others hid again. They must
have figured he would be afraid to come alone. Or something in his voice made
them suspicious, when they talked to him on the phone.” I balanced myself woozily on the flat of
my hands, listening. “Yeah, that was about how it was,” the
voice said. It was my voice. I was talking to myself,
coming out of it. I was trying to figure the thing out subconsciously. “Shut up, you dimwit,” I said, and stopped
talking to myself. Far off the purl of motors, nearer the
chirp of crickets, the peculiar long drawn ee-ee-ee of tree frogs. I didn’t
think I was going to like those sounds any more. I lifted a hand off the ground and tried to
shake the sticky sage ooze off it, then rubbed it on the side of my coat. Nice
work, for a hundred dollars. The hand jumped at the inside pocket of the
overcoat. No manila envelope, naturally. The hand jumped inside my own suit
coat. My wallet was still there. I wondered if my hundred was still in it.
Probably not. Something felt heavy against my left ribs. The gun in the
shoulder holster. That was a nice touch. They left me my
gun. A nice touch of something or other—like closing a man’s eyes after you knife
him. I felt the back of my head. My hat was
still on. I took it off, not without discomfort and felt the head underneath.
Good old head, I’d had it a long time. It was a little soft now, a little
pulpy, and more than a little tender. But a pretty light sapping at that. The
hat had helped. I could still use the head. I could use it another year anyway.
I put my right hand back on the ground and
took the left off and swiveled it around until I could see my watch. The
illuminated dial showed 10:56, as nearly as I could focus on it. The call had come at 10:08. Marriott had
talked maybe two minutes. Another four had got us out of the house. Time passes
very slowly when you are actually doing something. I mean, you can go through a
lot of movements in very few minutes. Is that what I mean? What the hell do I
care what I mean? Okay, better men than me have meant less. Okay, what I mean
is, that would be 10:15, say. The place was about twelve minutes away. 10:27. I
get out, walk down in the hollow, spend at the most eight minutes fooling
around and come on back up to get my head treated. 10:35. Give me a minute to
fall down and hit the ground with my face. The reason I hit it with my face, I
got my chin scraped. It hurts. It feels scraped. That way I know it’s scraped.
No, I can’t see it. I don’t have to see it. It’s my chin and I know whether
it’s scraped or not. Maybe you want to make something of it. Okay, shut up and
let me think. What with?… The watch showed 10:56 p.m. That meant I
had been out for twenty minutes. Twenty minutes’ sleep. Just a nice doze.
In that time I had muffed a job and lost eight thousand dollars. Well, why not?
In twenty minutes you can sink a battleship, down three or four planes, hold a
double execution. You can die, get married, get fired and find a new job, have
a tooth pulled, have your tonsils out. In twenty minutes you can even get up in
the morning. You can get a glass of water at a nightclub—maybe. Twenty minutes’ sleep. That’s a long time.
Especially on a cold night, out in the open. I began to shiver. I was still on my knees. The smell of the
sage was beginning to bother me. The sticky ooze from which wild bees get their
honey. Honey was sweet, much too sweet. My stomach took a whirl. I clamped my
teeth tight and just managed to keep it down my throat. Cold sweat stood out in
lumps on my forehead, but I shivered just the same. I got up on one foot, then
on both feet, straightened up, wobbling a little. I felt like an amputated leg.
I turned slowly. The car was gone. The dirt
road stretched empty, back up the shallow hill towards the paved street, the
end of Camino de la Costa. To the left the barrier of white-painted
four-by-fours stood out against the darkness. Beyond the low wall of brush the
pale glow in the sky would be the lights of Bay City. And over farther to the
right and near by were the lights of the Belvedere Club. I went over where the car had stood and
got a fountain pen flash unclipped from my pocket and poked the little light
down at the ground. The soil was red loam, very hard in dry weather, but the
weather was not bone dry. There was a little fog in the air, and enough of the
moisture had settled on the surface of the ground to show where the car had
stood. I could see, very faint, the tread marks of the heavy ten-ply Vogue
tires. I put the light on them and bent over and the pain made my head dizzy. I
started to follow the tracks. They went straight ahead for a dozen feet, then
swung over to the left. They didn’t turn, They went towards the gap at the left
hand end of the white barricade. Then I lost them. I went over to the barricade and shone the
little light on the brush. Fresh-broken twigs. I went through the gap, on down
the curving road. The ground was still softer here. More marks of the heavy
tires. I went on down, rounded the curve and was at the edge of the hollow
closed in by brush. It was there all right, the chromium and
glossy paint shining a little even in the dark, and the red reflector glass of
the tail-lights shining back at the pencil flash. It was there, silent,
lightless, all the doors shut. I went towards it slowly, gritting my teeth at
every step. I opened one of the rear doors and put the beam of the flash
inside. Empty. The front was empty too. The ignition was off. The key hung in the
lock on a thin chain. No torn upholstery, no scarred glass, no blood, no
bodies. Everything neat and orderly. I shut the doors and circled the car
slowly, looking for a sign and not finding any. A sound froze me. A motor throbbed above the rim of the brush.
I didn’t jump more than a foot. The flash in my hand went out. A gun slid into
my hand all by itself. Then headlight beams tilted up towards the sky, then
tilted down again. The motor sounded like a small car. It had that contented
sound that comes with moisture in the air. The lights tilted down still more and got
brighter. A car was coming down the curve of the dirt road. It came two-thirds
of the way and then stopped. A spotlight clicked on and swung out to the side,
held there for a long moment, went out again. The car came on down the hill. I
slipped the gun out of my pocket and crouched behind the motor of Marriott’s
car. A small coupe of no particular shape or
color slid into the hollow and turned so that its headlights raked the sedan
from one end to the other. I got my head down in a hurry. The lights swept
above me like a sword. The coupe stopped. The motor died. The headlights died.
Silence. Then a door opened and a light foot touched the ground. More silence.
Even the crickets were silent. Then a beam of light cut the darkness low down,
parallel to the ground and only a few inches above it. The beam swept, and
there was no way I could get my ankles out of it quickly enough. The beam
stopped on my feet. Silence. The beam came up and raked the top of the hood
again. Then a laugh. It was a girl’s laugh.
Strained, taut as a mandolin wire. A strange sound in that place. The white
beam shot under the car again and settled on my feet. The voice said, not quite shrilly: “All
right, you. Come out of there with your hands up and very damned empty. You’re
covered.” I didn’t move. The light wavered a little, as though the
hand that held it wavered. It swept slowly along the hood once more. The voice
stabbed at me again. “Listen, stranger. I’m holding a ten shot
automatic. I can shoot straight. Both your feet are vulnerable. What do you
bid?” “Put it up—or I’ll blow it out of your
hand!” I snarled. My voice sounded like somebody tearing slats off a chicken
coop. “Oh—a hardboiled gentleman.” There was a
quaver in the voice, a nice little quaver. Then it hardened again. “Coming out?
I’ll count three. Look at the odds I’m giving you—twelve fat cylinders, maybe
sixteen. But your feet will hurt. And ankle bones take years and years to get
well and sometimes they never do really—” I straightened up slowly and looked into
the beam of the flashlight. “I talk too much when I’m scared too,” I
said. “Don’t—don’t move another inch! Who are
you?” I moved around the front of the car
towards her. When I was six feet from the slim dark figure behind the flash I
stopped. The flash glared at me steadily. “You stay right there,” the girl snapped
angrily, after I had stopped. “Who are you?” “Let’s see your gun.” She held it forward into the light. It was
pointed at my stomach. It was a little gun, it looked like a small Colt vest
pocket automatic. “Oh, that,” I said. “That toy. It doesn’t
either hold ten shots. It holds six. It’s just a little gun, a butterfly gun.
They shoot butterflies with them. Shame on you for telling a deliberate lie
like that.” “Are you crazy?” “Me? I’ve been sapped by a holdup man. I
might be a little goofy.” “Is that your car?” “Who are you?” “What were you looking at back there with
your spotlight?” “I get it. You ask the answers. He-man
stuff. I was looking at a man.” “Does he have blond hair in waves?” “Not now,” she said quietly. “He might
have had—once.” That jarred me. Somehow I hadn’t expected
it. “I didn’t see him,” I said lamely. “I was following the tire marks with a
flashlight down the hill. Is he badly hurt?” I went another step towards her.
The little gun jumped at me and the flash held steady. “Take it easy,” she said quietly. “Very
easy. Your friend is dead.” I didn’t say anything for a moment. Then I
said: “All right, let’s go look at him.” “Let’s stand right here and not move and
you tell me who you are and what happened.” The voice was crisp. It was not
afraid. It meant what it said. “Marlowe. Philip Marlowe. An investigator.
Private.” “That’s who you are—if it’s true. Prove
it.” “I’m going to take my wallet out.” “I don’t think so. Just leave your hands
where they happen to be. We’ll skip the proof for the time being. What’s your
story?” “This man may not be dead.” “He’s dead all right. With his brains on his
face. The story, mister. Make it fast.” “As I said—he may not be dead. We’ll go
look at him.” I moved one foot forward. “Move and I’ll drill you!” she snapped.
I moved the other foot forward. The flash
jumped about a little. I think she took a step back. “You take some awful chances, mister,” she
said quietly. “All right, go on ahead and I’ll follow. You look like a sick
man. If it hadn’t been for that—” “You’d have shot me. I’ve been sapped. It
always makes me a little dark under the eyes.” “A nice sense of humor—like a morgue
attendant,” she almost wailed. I turned away from the light and
immediately it shone on the ground in front of me. I walked past the little
coup, an ordinary little car, clean and shiny under the misty starlight. I went
on, up the dirt road, around the curve. The steps were close behind me and the
flashlight guided me. There was no sound anywhere now except our steps and the
girl’s breathing. I didn’t hear mine. 11 Halfway up the slope I looked off to the
right and saw his foot. She swung the light. Then I saw all of him. I ought to
have seen him as I came down, but I had been bent over, peering at the ground
with the fountain pen flash, trying to read tire marks by a light the size of a
quarter. “Give me the flash,” I said and reached
back. She put it into my hand, without a word. I
went down on a knee. The ground felt cold and damp through the cloth. He lay smeared to the ground, on his back,
at the base of a bush, in that bag-of-clothes position that always means the same
thing. His face was a face I had never seen before. His hair was dark with
blood, the beautiful blond ledges were tangled-with blood and some thick
grayish ooze, like primeval slime. The girl behind me breathed hard, but she
didn’t speak. I held the light on his face. He had been beaten to a pulp. One
of his hands was flung out in a frozen gesture, the fingers curled. His
overcoat was half twisted under him, as though he had rolled as he fell. His
legs were crossed. There was a trickle as black as dirty oil at the corner of
his mouth. “Hold the flash on him,” I said, passing
it back to her. “If it doesn’t make you sick.” She took it and held it without a word, as
steady as an old homicide veteran. I got my fountain pen flash out again and
started to go through his pockets, trying not to move him. “You shouldn’t do that,” she said tensely.
“You shouldn’t touch him until the police come.” “That’s right,” I said. “And the prowl car
boys are not supposed to touch him until the K-car men come and they’re not
supposed to touch him until the coroner’s examiner sees him and the
photographers have photographed him and the fingerprint man has taken his
prints. And do you know how long all that is liable to take out here? A couple
of hours.” “All right,” she said. “I suppose you’re
always right. I guess you must be that kind of person. Somebody must have hated
him to smash his head in like that.” “I don’t suppose it was personal,” I
growled. “Some people just like to smash heads.” “Seeing that I don’t know what it’s all
about, I couldn’t guess,” she said tartly. I went through his clothes. He had loose
silver and bills in one trouser pocket, a tooled leather key case in the other,
also a small knife. His left hip pocket yielded a small billfold with more
currency, insurance cards, a driver’s license, a couple of receipts. In his
coat loose match folders, a gold pencil clipped to a pocket, two thin cambric
handkerchiefs as fine and white as dry powdered snow. Then the enamel cigarette
case from which I had seen him take his brown gold-tipped cigarettes. They were
South American, from Montevideo. And in the other inside pocket a second
cigarette case I hadn’t seen before. It was made of embroidered silk, a dragon
on each side, a frame of imitation tortoiseshell so thin it was hardly there at
all. I tickled the catch open and looked in at three oversized Russian
cigarettes under the band of elastic. I pinched one. They felt old and dry and
loose. They had hollow mouthpieces. “He smoked the others,” I said over my shoulder.
“These must have been for a lady friend. He would be a lad who would have a lot
of lady friends.” The girl was bent over, breathing on my
neck now. “Didn’t you know him?” “I only met him tonight. He hired me for a
bodyguard.” “Some bodyguard.” I didn’t say anything to that. “I’m sorry,” she almost whispered. “Of
course I don’t know the circumstances. Do you suppose those could be jujus? Can
I look?” I passed the embroidered case back to her.
“I knew a guy once who smoked jujus,” she
said. “Three highballs and three sticks of tea and it took a pipe wrench to get
him off the chandelier.” “Hold the light steady.” There was a rustling pause. Then she spoke
again. “I’m sorry.” She handed the case down
again and I slipped it back in his pocket. That seemed to be all. All it proved
was that he hadn’t been cleaned out. I stood up and took my wallet out. The
five twenties were still in it. “High class boys,” I said. “They only took
the large money.” The flash was drooping to the ground. I
put my wallet away again, clipped my own small flash to my pocket and reached
suddenly for the little gun she was still holding in the same hand with the
flashlight. She dropped the flashlight, but I got the gun. She stepped back
quickly and I reached down for the light. I put it on her face for a moment,
then snapped it off. “You didn’t have to be rough,” she said,
putting her hands down into the pockets of a long rough coat with flaring
shoulders. “I didn’t think you killed him.” I liked the cool quiet of her voice. I
liked her nerve. We stood in the darkness, face to face, not saying anything
for a moment. I could see the brush and light in the sky. I put the light on her face and she
blinked. It was a small neat vibrant face with large eyes. A face with bone under
the skin, fine drawn like a Cremona violin. A very nice face. “Your hair’s red,” I said. “You look
Irish.” “And my name’s Riordan. So what? Put that
light out. It’s not red, it’s auburn.” I put it out. “What’s your first name?” “Anne. And don’t call me Annie.” “What are you doing around here?” “Sometimes at night I go riding. Just
restless. I live alone. I’m an orphan. I know all this neighborhood like a
book. I just happened to be riding along and noticed a light flickering down in
the hollow. It seemed a little cold for love. And they don’t use lights, do
they?” “I never did. You take some awful chances,
Miss Riordan.” “I think I said the same about you. I had
a gun. I wasn’t afraid. There’s no law against going down there.” “Uh-huh. Only the law of
self-preservation. Here. It’s not my night to be clever. I suppose you have a
permit for the gun.” I held it out to her, butt first. She took it and tucked it down into her
pocket. “Strange how curious people can be, isn’t it? I write a little. Feature
articles.” “Any money in it?” “Very damned little. What were you looking
for—in his pockets?” “Nothing in particular. I’m a great guy to
snoop around. We had eight thousand dollars to buy back some stolen jewelry for
a lady. We got hijacked. Why they killed him I don’t know. He didn’t strike me
as a fellow who would put up much of a fight. And I didn’t hear a fight. I was
down in the hollow when he was jumped. He was in the car, up above. We were
supposed to drive down into the hollow but there didn’t seem to be room for the
car without scratching it up. So I went down there on foot and while I was down
there they must have stuck him up. Then one of them got into the car and
dry-gulched me. I thought he was still in the car, of course.” “That doesn’t make you so terribly dumb,”
she said. “There was something wrong with the job
from the start. I could feel it. But I needed the money. Now I have to go to
the cops and eat dirt. Will you drive me to Montemar Vista? I left my car
there. He lived there.” “Sure. But shouldn’t somebody stay with
him? You could take my car—or I could go call the cops.” I looked at the dial of my watch. The
faintly glowing hands said that it was getting towards midnight. “No.” “Why not?” “I don’t know why not. I just feel it that
way. I’ll play it alone.” She said nothing. We went back down the
hill and got into her little car and she started it and jockeyed it around
without lights and drove it back up the hill and eased it past the barrier. A
block away she sprang the lights on. My head ached. We didn’t speak until we
came level with the first house on the paved part of the street. Then she said:
“You need a drink. Why not go back to my
house and have one? You can phone the law from there. They have to come from
West Los Angeles anyway. There’s nothing up here but a fire station.” “Just keep on going down to the coast.
I’ll play it solo.” “But why? I’m not afraid of them. My story
might help you.” “I don’t want any help. I’ve got to think.
I want to be by myself for a while.” “I—Okay,” she said. She made a vague sound in her throat and
turned on to the boulevard. We came to the service station at the coast highway
and turned north to Montemar Vista and the sidewalk cafe there. It was lit up
like a luxury liner. The girl pulled over on to the shoulder and I got out and
stood holding the door. I fumbled a card out of my wallet and
passed it in to her. “Some day you may need a strong back,” I said. “Let me
know. But don’t call me if it’s brain work.” She tapped the card on the wheel and said
slowly: “You’ll find me in the Bay City phone book. 819 Twenty-fifth Street.
Come around and pin a putty medal on me for minding my own business. I think
you’re still woozy from that crack on the head.” She swung her car swiftly around on the
highway and I watched its twin tail-lights fade into the dark. I walked past the arch and the sidewalk
cafe into the parking space and got into my car. A bar was right in front of me
and I was shaking again. But it seemed smarter to walk into the West Los
Angeles police station the way I did twenty minutes later, as cold as a frog
and as green as the back of a new dollar bill. 12 It was an hour and a half later. The body
had been taken away, the ground gone over, and I had told my story three or
four times. We sat, four of us, in the day captain’s room at the West Los
Angeles station. The building was quiet except for a drunk in a cell who kept
giving the Australian bush call while he waited to go downtown for sunrise
court. A hard white light inside a glass
reflector shone down on the flat topped table on which were spread the things
that had come from Lindsay Marriott’s pockets, things now that seemed as dead
and homeless as their owner. The man across the table from me was named Randall
and he was from Central Homicide in Los Angeles. He was a thin quiet man of
fifty with smooth creamy gray hair, cold eyes, a distant manner. He wore a dark
red tie with black spots on it and the spots kept dancing in front of my eyes.
Behind him, beyond the cone of light, two beefy men lounged like bodyguards,
each of them watching one of my ears. I fumbled a cigarette around in my fingers
and lit it and didn’t like the taste of it. I sat watching it burn between my
fingers. I felt about eighty years old and slipping fast. Randall said coldly: “The oftener you tell
this story the sillier it sounds. This man Marriott had been negotiating for
days, no doubt, about this pay-off and then just a few hours before the final
meeting he calls up a perfect stranger and hires him to go with him as a
bodyguard.” “Not exactly as a bodyguard,” I said. “I
didn’t even tell him I had a gun. Just for company.” “Where did he hear of you?” “First he said a mutual friend. Then that
he just picked my name out of the book.” Randall poked gently among the stuff on
the table and detached a white card with an air of touching something not quite
clean. He pushed it along the wood. “He had your card. Your business card.” I glanced at the card. It had come out of
his billfold, together with a number of other cards I hadn’t bothered to
examine back there in the hollow of Purissima Canyon. It was one of my cards
all right. It looked rather dirty at that, for a man like Marriott. There was a
round smear across one corner. “Sure,” I said. “I hand those out whenever
I get a chance. Naturally.” “Marriott let you carry the money,”
Randall said. “Eight thousand dollars. He was rather a trusting soul.” I drew on my cigarette and blew the smoke
towards the ceiling. The light hurt my eyes. The back of my head ached. “I don’t have the eight thousand dollars,”
I said. “Sorry.” “No. You wouldn’t be here, if you had the
money. Or would you?” There was a cold sneer on his face now, but it looked
artificial. “I’d do a lot for eight thousand dollars,”
I said. “But if I wanted to kill a man with a sap, I’d only hit him twice at
the most—on the back of the head.” He nodded slightly. One of the dicks
behind him spit into the wastebasket. “That’s one of the puzzling features. It
looks like an amateur job, but of course it might be meant to look like an
amateur job. The money was not Marriott’s, was it?” “I don’t know. I got the impression not,
but that was just an impression. He wouldn’t tell me who the lady in the case
was.” “We don’t know anything about
Marriott—yet,” Randall said slowly. “I suppose it’s at least possible he meant
to steal the eight thousand himself.” “Huh?” I felt surprised. I probably looked
surprised. Nothing changed in Randall’s smooth face. “Did you count the money?” “Of course not. He just gave me a package.
There was money in it and it looked like a lot. He said it was eight grand. Why
would he want to steal it from me when he already had it before I came on the
scene?” Randall looked at a corner of the ceiling
and drew his mouth down at the corners. He shrugged. “Go back a bit,” he said. “Somebody had
stuck up Marriott and a lady and taken this jade necklace and stuff and had
later offered to sell it back for what seems like a pretty small amount, in
view of its supposed value. Marriott was to handle the payoff. He thought of
handling it alone and we don’t know whether the other parties made a point of
that or whether it was mentioned. Usually in cases like that they are rather
fussy. But Marriott evidently decided it was all right to have you along. Both
of you figured you were dealing with an organized gang and that they would play
ball within the limits of their trade. Marriott was scared. That would be
natural enough. He wanted company. You were the company. But you are a complete
stranger to him, just a name on a card handed to him by some unknown party,
said by him to be a mutual friend. Then at the last minute Marriott decides to
have you carry the money and do the talking while he hides in the car. You say
that was your idea, but he may have been hoping you would suggest it, and if
you didn’t suggest it, he would have had the idea himself.” “He didn’t like the idea at first,” I
said. Randall shrugged again. “He pretended not
to like the idea—but he gave in. So finally he gets a call and off you go to
the place he describes. All this is coming from Marriott. None of it is known
to you independently. When you get there, there seems to be nobody about. You
are supposed to drive down into that hollow, but it doesn’t look to be room
enough for the big car. It wasn’t, as a matter of fact, because the car was
pretty badly scratched on the left side. So you get out and walk down into the
hollow, see and hear nothing, wait a few minutes, come back to the car and then
somebody in the car socks you on the back of the head. Now suppose Marriott
wanted that money and wanted to make you the fall guy—wouldn’t he have acted
just the way he did?” “It’s a swell theory,” I said. “Marriott
socked me, took the money, then he got sorry and beat his brains out, after
first burying the money under a bush.” Randall looked at me woodenly. “He had an
accomplice of course. Both of you were supposed to be knocked out, and the
accomplice would beat it with the money. Only the accomplice double-crossed
Marriott by killing him. He didn’t have to kill you because you didn’t know
him.” I looked at him with admiration and ground
out my cigarette stub in a wooden tray that had once had a glass lining in it
but hadn’t any more. “It fits the facts—so far as we know
them,” Randall said calmly. “It’s no sillier than any other theory we could
think up at the moment.” “It doesn’t fit one fact—that I was socked
from the car, does it? That would make me suspect Marriott of having socked
me—other things being equal. Although I didn’t suspect him after he was
killed.” “The way you were socked fits best of
all,” Randall said. “You didn’t tell Marriott you had a gun, but he may have
seen the bulge under your arm or at least suspected you had a gun. In that case
he would want to hit you when you suspected nothing. And you wouldn’t suspect
anything from the back of the car.” “Okay,” I said. “You win. It’s a good
theory, always supposing the money was not Marriott’s and that he wanted to
steal it and that he had an accomplice. So his plan is that we both wake up
with bumps on our heads and the money is gone and we say so sorry and I go home
and forget all about it. Is that how it ends? I mean is that how he expected it
to end? It had to look good to him too, didn’t it?” Randall smiled wryly. “I don’t like it
myself. I was just trying it out. It fits the facts—as far as I know them,
which is not far.” “We don’t know enough to even start
theorizing,” I said. “Why not assume he was telling the truth and that he perhaps
recognized one of the stick-up men?” “You say you heard no struggle, no cry?” “No. But he could have been grabbed
quickly, by the throat. Or he could have been too scared to cry out when they
jumped him. Say they were watching from the bushes and saw me go down the hill.
I went some distance, you know. A good hundred feet. They go over to look into
the car and see Marriott. Somebody sticks a gun in his face and makes him get
out—quietly. Then he’s sapped down. But something he says, or some way he looks,
makes them think he has recognized somebody.” “In the dark?” “Yes,” I said. “It must have been
something like that. Some voices stay in your mind. Even in the dark people are
recognized.” Randall shook his head. “If this was an
organized gang of jewel thieves, they wouldn’t kill without a lot of
provocation.” He stopped suddenly and his eyes got a glazed look. He closed his
mouth very slowly, very tight. He had an idea. “Hijack,” he said. I nodded. “I think that’s an idea.” “There’s another thing,” he said. “How did
you get here?” “I drove my car.” “Where was your car?” “Down at Montemar Vista, in the parking
lot by the sidewalk cafe.” He looked at me very thoughtfully. The
dicks behind him looked at me suspiciously. The drunk in the cells tried to
yodel, but his voice cracked and that discouraged him. He began to cry. “I walked back to the highway,” I said. “I
flagged a car. A girl was driving it alone. She stopped and took me down.”. “Some girl,” Randall said. “It was late at
night, on a lonely road, and she stopped.” “Yeah. Some of them will do that. I didn’t
get to know her, but she seemed nice.” I stared at them, knowing they didn’t
believe me and wondering why I was lying about it. “It was a small car,” I said. “A Chevy
coupe. I didn’t get the license number.” “Haw, he didn’t get the license number,”
one of the dicks said and spat into the wastebasket again. Randall leaned forward and stared at me
carefully. “If you’re holding anything back with the idea of working on this
case yourself to make yourself a little publicity, I’d forget it, Marlowe. I
don’t like all the points in your story and I’m going to give you the night to
think it over. Tomorrow I’ll probably ask you for a sworn statement. In the
meantime let me give you a tip. This is a murder and a police job and we
wouldn’t want your help, even if it was good. All we want from you is facts.
Get me?” “Sure. Can I go home now? I don’t feel any
too well.” “You can go home now.” His eyes were icy. I got up and started towards the door in a
dead silence. When I had gone four steps Randall cleared his throat and said
carelessly: “Oh, one small point. Did you notice what
kind of cigarettes Marriott smoked?” I turned. “Yes. Brown ones. South
American, in a french enamel case.” He leaned forward and pushed the
embroidered silk case out of the pile of junk on the table and then pulled it
towards him. “Ever see this one before?” “Sure. I was just looking at it.” “I mean, earlier this evening.” “I believe I did,” I said. “Lying around somewhere.
Why?” “You didn’t search the body?” “Okay,” I said. “Yes, I looked through his
pockets. That was in one of them. I’m sorry. Just professional curiosity. I
didn’t disturb anything. After all he was my client.” Randall took hold of the embroidered case
with both hands and opened it. He sat looking into it. It was empty. The three
cigarettes were gone. I bit hard on my teeth and kept the tired
look on my face. It was not easy. “Did you see him smoke a cigarette out of
this?” “No.” Randall nodded coolly. “It’s empty as you
see. But it was in his pocket just the same. There’s a little dust in it. I’m
going to have it examined under a microscope. I’m not sure, but I have an idea
it’s marijuana.” I said: “If he had any of those, I should
think he would have smoked a couple tonight. He needed something to cheer him
up.” Randall closed the case carefully and
pushed it away. “That’s all,” he said. “And keep your nose
clean.” I went out. The fog had cleared off outside and the
stars were as bright as artificial stars of chromium on a sky of black velvet.
I drove fast. I needed a drink badly and the bars were closed. 13 I got up at nine, drank three cups of
black coffee, bathed the back of my head with ice-water and read the two
morning papers that had been thrown against the apartment door. There was a
paragraph and a bit about Moose Malloy, in Part II, but Nulty didn’t get his
name mentioned. There was nothing about Lindsay Marriott, unless it was on the
society page. I dressed and ate two soft-boiled eggs and
drank a fourth cup of coffee and looked myself over in the mirror. I still
looked a little shadowy under the eyes. I had the door open to leave when the
phone rang. It was Nulty. He sounded mean. “Marlowe?” “Yeah. Did you get him?” “Oh sure. We got him.” He stopped to
snarl. “On the Ventura line, like I said. Boy, did we have fun! Six foot six,
built like a cofferdam, on his way to Frisco to see the Fair. He had five
quarts of hooch in the front seat of the rent car, and he was drinking out of
another one as he rode along, doing a quiet seventy. All we had to go up
against him with was two county cops with guns and blackjacks.” He paused and I turned over a few witty
sayings in my mind, but none of them seemed amusing at the moment. Nulty went
on: “So he done exercises with the cops and
when they was tired enough to go to sleep, he pulled one side off their car,
threw the radio into the ditch, opened a fresh bottle of hooch, and went to
sleep hisself. After a while the boys snapped out of it and bounced blackjacks
off his head for about ten minutes before he noticed it. When he began to get
sore they got handcuffs on him. It was easy. We got him in the icebox now,
drunk driving, drunk in auto, assaulting police officer in performance of duty,
two counts, malicious damage to official property, attempted escape from
custody, assault less than mayhem, disturbing the peace, and parking on a state
highway. Fun, ain’t it?” “What’s the gag?” I asked. “You didn’t
tell me all that just to gloat.” “It was the wrong guy,” Nulty said
savagely. “This bird is named Stoyanoffsky and he lives in Hemet and he just
got through working as a sandhog on the San Jack tunnel. Got a wife and four
kids. Boy, is she sore. What you doing on Malloy?” “Nothing. I have a headache.” “Any time you get a little free time—” “I don’t think so,” I said. “Thanks just
the same. When is the inquest on the nigger coming up?” “Why bother?” Nulty sneered, and hung up. I drove down to Hollywood Boulevard and
put my car in the parking space beside the building and rode up to my floor. I
opened the door of the little reception room which I always left unlocked, in
case I had a client and the client wanted to wait. Miss Anne Riordan looked up from a
magazine and smiled at me. She was wearing a tobacco brown suit with
a high-necked white sweater inside it. Her hair by daylight was pure auburn and
on it she wore a hat with a crown the size of a whiskey glass and a brim you
could have wrapped the week’s laundry in. She wore it at an angle of
approximately forty-five degrees, so that the edge of the brim just missed her
shoulder. In spite of that it looked smart. Perhaps because of that. She was about twenty-eight years old. She
had a rather narrow forehead of more height than is considered elegant. Her
nose was small and inquisitive, her upper lip a shade too long and her mouth
more than a shade too wide. Her eyes were gray-blue with flecks of gold in
them. She had a nice smile. She looked as if she had slept well. It was a nice
face, a face you get to like. Pretty, but not so pretty that you would have to
wear brass knuckles every time you took it out. “I didn’t know just what your office hours
were,” she said. “So I waited. I gather that your secretary is not here today.”
“I don’t have a secretary.” I went across and unlocked the inner door,
then switched on the buzzer that rang on the outer door. “Let’s go into my
private thinking parlor.” She passed in front of me with a vague
scent of very dry sandalwood and stood looking at the five green filing cases,
the shabby rust-red rug, the half-dusted furniture, and the not too clean net
curtains. “I should think you would want somebody to
answer the phone,” she said. “And once in a while to send your curtains to the
cleaners.” “I’ll send them out come St. Swithin’s
Day. Have a chair. I might miss a few unimportant jobs. And a lot of leg art. I
save money.” “I see,” she said demurely, and placed a
large suede bag carefully on the corner of the glass-topped desk. She leaned
back and took one of my cigarettes. I burned my finger with a paper match
lighting it for her. She blew a fan of smoke and smiled though
it. Nice teeth, rather large. “You probably didn’t expect to see me
again so soon. How is your head?” “Poorly. No, I didn’t.” “Were the police nice to you?” “About the way they always are.” “I’m not keeping you from anything
important, am I?” “No.” “All the same I don’t think you’re very
pleased to see me.” I filled a pipe and reached for the packet
of paper matches. I lit the pipe carefully. She watched that with approval.
Pipe smokers were solid men. She was going to be disappointed in me. “I tried to leave you out of it,” I said.
“I don’t know why exactly. It’s no business of mine any more anyhow. I ate my
dirt last night and banged myself to sleep with a bottle and now it’s a police
case: I’ve been warned to leave it alone.” “The reason you left me out of it,” she
said calmly, “was that you didn’t think the police would believe just mere idle
curiosity took me down into that hollow last night. They would suspect some
guilty reason and hammer at me until I was a wreck.” “How do you know I didn’t think the same
thing?” “Cops are just people,” she said
irrelevantly. “They start out that way, I’ve heard.” “Oh—cynical this morning.” She looked
around the office with an idle but raking glance. “Do you do pretty well in
here? I mean financially? I mean, do you make a lot of money—with this kind of
furniture?” I grunted. “Or should I try minding my own business
and not asking impertinent questions?” “Would it work, if you tried it?” “Now we’re both doing it. Tell me, why did
you cover up for me last night? Was it on account of I have reddish hair and a
beautiful figure?” I didn’t say anything. “Let’s try this one,” she said cheerfully.
“Would you like to know who that jade necklace belonged to?” I could feel my face getting stiff. I
thought hard but I couldn’t remember for sure. And then suddenly I could. I
hadn’t said a word to her about a jade necklace. I reached for the matches and relit my
pipe. “Not very much,” I said. “Why?” “Because I know.” “Uh-huh.” “What do you do when you get real
talkative—wiggle your toes?” “All right,” I growled. “You came here to
tell me. Go ahead and tell me.” Her blue eyes widened and for a moment I
thought they looked a little moist. She took her lower lip between her teeth
and held it that way while she stared down at the desk. Then she shrugged and
let go of her lip and smiled at me candidly. “Oh I know I’m just a damned inquisitive
wench. But there’s a strain of bloodhound in me. My father was a cop. His name
was Cliff Riordan and he was police chief of Bay City for seven years. I
suppose that’s what’s the matter.” “I seem to remember. What happened to
him?” “He was fired. It broke his heart. A mob
of gamblers headed by a man named Laird Brunette elected themselves a mayor. So
they put Dad in charge of the Bureau of Records and Identification, which in
Bay City is about the size of a tea bag. So Dad quit and pottered around for a
couple of years and then died. And Mother died soon after him. So I’ve been
alone for two years.” “I’m sorry,” I said. She ground out her cigarette. It had no
lipstick on it. “The only reason I’m boring you with this is that it makes it
easy for me to get along with policemen. I suppose I ought to have told you
last night. So this morning I found out who had charge of the case and went to
see him. He was a little sore at you at first.” “That’s all right,” I said. “If I had told
him the truth on all points, he still wouldn’t have believed me. All he will do
is chew one of my ears off.” She looked hurt. I got up and opened the
other window. The noise of the traffic from the boulevard came in in waves,
like nausea. I felt lousy. I opened the deep drawer of the desk and got the
office bottle out and poured myself a drink. Miss Riordan watched me with disapproval.
I was no longer a solid man. She didn’t say anything. I drank the drink and put
the bottle away again and sat down. “You didn’t offer me one,” she said
coolly. “Sorry. It’s only eleven o’clock or less.
I didn’t think you looked the type.” Her eyes crinkled at the corners. “Is that
a compliment?” “In my circle, yes.” She thought that over. It didn’t mean
anything to her. It didn’t mean anything to me either when I thought it over.
But the drink made me feel a lot better. She leaned forward and scraped her gloves
slowly across the glass of the desk. “You wouldn’t want to hire an assistant,
would you? Not if it only cost you a kind word now and then?” “No.” She nodded. “I thought probably you
wouldn’t. I’d better just give you my information and go on home.” I didn’t say anything. I lit my pipe
again. It makes you look thoughtful when you are not thinking. “First of all, it occurred to me that a
jade necklace like that would be a museum piece and would be well known,” she
said. I held the match in the air, still burning
and watching the flame crawl close to my fingers. Then I blew it out softly and
dropped it in the tray and said: “I didn’t say anything to you about a jade
necklace.” “No, but Lieutenant Randall did.” “Somebody ought to sew buttons on his
face.” “He knew my father. I promised not to
tell.” “You’re telling me.” “You knew already, silly.” Her hand suddenly flew up as if it was
going to fly to her mouth, but it only rose halfway and then fell back slowly
and her eyes widened. It was a good act, but I knew something else about her
that spoiled it. “You did know, didn’t you?” She breathed
the words, hushedly. “I thought it was diamonds. A bracelet, a
pair of earrings, a pendant, three rings, one of the rings with emeralds too.” “Not funny,” she said. “Not even fast.” “Fei Tsui jade. Very rare. Carved beads
about six carats apiece, sixty of them. Worth eighty thousand dollars.” “You have such nice brown eyes,” she said.
“And you think you’re tough.” “Well, who does it belong to and how did
you find out?” “I found out very simply. I thought the
best jeweler in town would probably know, so I went and asked the manager of
Block’s. I told him I was a writer and wanted to do an article on rare jade—you
know the line.” “So he believed your red hair and your
beautiful figure.” She flushed clear to the temples. “Well, he told me anyway. It belongs to a
rich lady who lives in Bay City, in an estate on the canyon. Mrs. Lewin
Lockridge Grayle. Her husband is an investment banker or something, enormously
rich, worth about twenty millions. He used to own a radio station in Beverly
Hills, Station KFDK, and Mrs. Grayle used to work there. He married her five
years ago. She’s a ravishing blonde. Mr. Grayle is elderly, liverish, stays
home and takes calomel while Mrs. Grayle goes places and has a good time.” “This manager of Block’s,” I said. “He’s a
fellow that gets around.” “Oh, I didn’t get all that from him,
silly. Just about the necklace. The rest I got from Giddy Gertie Arbogast.” I reached into the deep drawer and brought
the office bottle up again. “You’re not going to turn out to be one of
those drunken detectives, are you?” she asked anxiously. “Why not? They always solve their cases
and they never even sweat. Get on with the story.” “Giddy Gertie is the society editor of the
Chronicle. I’ve known him for years. He weighs two hundred and wears a Hitler
mustache. He got out his morgue file on the Grayles. Look.” She reached into her bag and slid a
photograph across the desk, a five-by-three glazed still. It was a blonde. A blonde to make a bishop
kick a hole in a stained glass window. She was wearing street clothes that
looked black and white, and a hat to match and she was a little haughty, but
not too much. Whatever you needed, wherever you happened to be—she had it.
About thirty years old. I poured a fast drink and burned my throat
getting it down. “Take it away,” I said. “I’ll start jumping.” “Why, I got it for you. You’ll want to see
her, won’t you?” I looked at it again. Then I slid it under
the blotter. “How about tonight at eleven?” “Listen, this isn’t just a bunch of gag
lines, Mr. Marlowe. I called her up. She’ll see you. On business.” “It may start out that way.” She made an impatient gesture, so I
stopped fooling around and got my battle-scarred frown back on my face. “What
will she see me about?” “Her necklace, of course. It was like
this. I called her up and had a lot of trouble getting to talk to her, of
course, but finally I did. Then I gave her the song and dance I had given the
nice man at Block’s and it didn’t take. She sounded as if she had a hangover.
She said something about talking to her secretary, but I managed to keep her on
the phone and ask her if it was true she had a Fei Tsui jade necklace. After a
while she said, yes. I asked if I might see it. She said, what for? I said my
piece over again and it didn’t take any better than the first time. I could
hear her yawning and bawling somebody outside the mouthpiece for putting me on.
Then I said I was working for Philip Marlowe. She said ‘So what?’ Just like
that.” “Incredible. But all the society dames
talk like tramps nowadays.” “I wouldn’t know,” Miss Riordan said
sweetly. “Probably some of them are tramps. So I asked her if she had a phone
with no extension and she said what business was it of mine. But the funny
thing was she hadn’t hung up on me.” “She had the jade on her mind and she
didn’t know what you were leading up to. And she may have heard from Randall
already.” Miss Riordan shook her head. “No, I called
him later and he didn’t know who owned the necklace until I told him. He was
quite surprised that I had found out.” “He’ll get used to you,” I said. “He’ll
probably have to. What then?” “So I said to Mrs. Grayle: ‘You’d still
like it back, wouldn’t you?’ Just like that. I didn’t know any other way to
say. I had to say something that would jar her a bit. It did. She gave me
another number in a hurry. And I called that and I said I’d like to see her.
She seemed surprised. So I had to tell her the story. She didn’t like it. But
she had been wondering why she hadn’t heard from Marriott. I guess she thought
he had gone south with the money or something. So I’m to see her at two
o’clock. Then I’ll tell her about you and how nice and discreet you are and how
you would be a good man to help her get it back, if there’s any chance and so
on. She’s already interested.” I didn’t say anything. I just stared at
her. She looked hurt. “What’s the matter? Did I do right?” “Can’t you get it through your head that
this is a police case now and that I’ve been warned to stay off it?” “Mrs. Grayle has a perfect right to employ
you, if she wants to.” “To do what?” She snapped and unsnapped her bag
impatiently. “Oh, my goodness—a woman like that—with her looks—can’t you see—”
She stopped and bit her lip. “What kind of man was Marriott?” “I hardly knew him. I thought he was a bit
of a pansy. I didn’t like him very well.” “Was he a man who would be attractive to
women?” “Some women. Others would want to spit.” “Well, it looks as if he might have been
attractive to Mrs. Grayle. She went out with him.” “She probably goes out with a hundred men.
There’s very little chance to get the necklace now.” “Why?” I got up and walked to the end of the
office and slapped the wall with the flat of my hand, hard. The clacking
typewriter on the other side stopped for a moment, and then went on. I looked
down through the open window into the shaft between my building and the Mansion
House Hotel. The coffee shop smell was strong enough to build a garage on. I
went back to my desk, dropped the bottle of whiskey back into the drawer, shut
the drawer and sat down again. I lit my pipe for the eighth or ninth time and
looked carefully across the half-dusted glass to Miss Riordan’s grave and
honest little face. You could get to like that face a lot.
Glamoured up blondes were a dime a dozen, but that was a face that would wear.
I smiled at it. “Listen, Anne. Killing Marriott was a dumb
mistake. The gang behind this holdup would never pull anything like that. What
must have happened was that some gowed-up run they took along for a gun-holder
lost his head. Marriott made a false move and some punk beat him down and it
was done so quickly nothing could be done to prevent it. Here is an organized
mob with inside information on jewels and the movements of the women that wear
them. They ask moderate returns and they would play ball. But here also is a
back alley murder that doesn’t fit at all. My idea is that whoever did it is a
dead man hours ago, with weights on his ankles, deep in the Pacific Ocean. And
either the jade went down with him or else they have some idea of its real
value and they have cached it away in a place where it will stay for a long
time—maybe for years before they dare bring it out again. Or, if the gang is
big enough, it may show up on the other side of the world. The eight thousand
they asked seems pretty low if they really know the value of the jade. But it
would be hard to sell. I’m sure of one thing. They never meant to murder
anybody.” Anne Riordan was listening to me with her
lips slightly parted and a rapt expression on her face, as if she was looking
at the Dalai Lhama. She closed her mouth slowly and nodded
once. “You’re wonderful,” she said softly. “But you’re nuts.” She stood up and gathered her bag to her.
“Will you go to see her or won’t you?” “Randall can’t stop me—if it comes from
her.” “All right. I’m going to see another
society editor and get some more dope on the Grayles if I can. About her love
life. She would have one, wouldn’t she?” The face framed in auburn hair was
wistful. “Who hasn’t?” I sneered. “I never had. Not really.” I reached up and shut my mouth with my
hand. She gave me a sharp look and moved towards the door. “You’ve forgotten something,” I said. She stopped and turned. “What?” She looked
all over the top of the desk. “You know damn well what.” She came back to the desk and leaned
across it earnestly. “Why would they kill the man that killed Marriott, if they
don’t go in for murder?” “Because he would be the type that would
get picked up sometime and would talk—when they took his dope away from him. I
mean they wouldn’t kill a customer.” “What makes you so sure the killer took
dope?” “I’m not sure. I just said that. Most
punks do.” “Oh.” She straightened up and nodded and
smiled. “I guess you mean these,” she said and reached quickly into her bag and
laid a small tissue bag package on the desk. I reached for it, pulled a rubber band off
it carefully and opened up the paper. On it lay three long thick Russian
cigarettes with paper mouthpieces. I looked at her and didn’t say anything. “I know I shouldn’t have taken them,” she
said almost breathlessly. “But I knew they were jujus. They usually come in
plain papers but lately around Bay City they have been putting them out like
this. I’ve seen several. I thought it was kind of mean for the poor man to be
found dead with marijuana cigarettes in his pocket.” “You ought to have taken the case too,” I
said quietly. “There was dust in it. And it being empty was suspicious.” “I couldn’t—with you there. I—I almost
went back and did. But I didn’t quite have the courage. Did it get you in
wrong?” “No,” I lied. “Why should it?” “I’m glad of that,” she said wistfully. “Why didn’t you throw them away?” She thought about it, her bag clutched to
her side, her wide-brimmed absurd hat tilted so that it hid one eye. “I guess it must be because I’m a cop’s
daughter,” she said at last. “You just don’t throw away evidence.” Her smile
was frail and guilty and her cheeks were flushed. I shrugged. “Well—” the word hung in the air, like
smoke in a closed room. Her lips stayed parted after saying it. I let it hang.
The flush on her face deepened. “I’m horribly sorry. I shouldn’t have done
it.” I passed that too. She went very quickly to the door and out.
14 I poked at one of the long Russian
cigarettes with a finger, then laid them in a neat row, side by side and
squeaked my chair. You just don’t throw away evidence. So they were evidence.
Evidence of what? That a man occasionally smoked a stick of tea, a man who
looked as if any touch of the exotic would appeal to him. On the other hand lots
of tough guys smoked marijuana, also lots of band musicians and high school
kids, and nice girls who had given up trying. American hashish. A weed that
would grow anywhere. Unlawful to cultivate now. That meant a lot in a country
as big as the U.S.A. I sat there and puffed my pipe and
listened to the clacking typewriter behind the wall of my office and the
bong-bong of the traffic lights changing on Hollywood Boulevard and spring
rustling in the air, like a paper bag blowing along a concrete sidewalk. They were pretty big cigarettes, but a lot
of Russians are, and marijuana is a coarse leaf. Indian hemp. American hashish.
Evidence. God, what hats the women wear. My head ached. Nuts. I got my penknife out and opened the small
sharp blade, the one I didn’t clean my pipe with, and reached for one of them.
That’s what a police chemist would do. Slit one down the middle and examine the
stuff under a microscope, to start with. There might just happen to be
something unusual about it. Not very likely, but what the hell, he was paid by
the month. I slit one down the middle. The mouthpiece
part was pretty tough to slit. Okay, I was a tough guy. I slit it anyway. See
if can you stop me. Out of the mouthpiece shiny segments of
rolled thin cardboard partly straightened themselves and had printing on them.
I sat up straight and pawed for them. I tried to spread them out on the desk in
order, but they slid around on the desk. I grabbed another of the cigarettes
and squinted inside the mouthpiece. Then I went to work with the blade of the
pocketknife in a different way. I pinched the cigarette down to the place where
the mouthpiece began. The paper was thin all the way, you could feel the grain
of what was underneath. So I cut the mouthpiece off carefully and then still
more carefully cut through the mouthpiece longways, but only just enough. It
opened out and there was another card underneath, rolled up, not touched this
time. I spread it out fondly. It was a man’s
calling card. Thin pale ivory, just off white. Engraved on that were delicately
shaded words. In the lower left hand corner a Stillwood Heights telephone
number. In the lower right hand corner the legend, “By Appointment Only.” In
the middle, a little larger, but still discreet: “Jules Amthor.” Below, a little
smaller: “Psychic Consultant.” I took hold of the third cigarette. This
time, with a lot of difficulty. I teased the card out without cutting anything.
It was the same. I put it back where it had been. I looked at my watch, put my pipe in an
ashtray, and then had to look at my watch again to see what time it was. I
rolled the two cut cigarettes and the cut card in part of the tissue paper, the
one that was complete with card inside in another part of the tissue paper and
locked both little packages away in my desk. I sat looking at the card. Jules Amthor,
Psychic Consultant, By Appointment Only, Stillwood Heights phone number, no
address. Three like that rolled inside three sticks of tea, in a Chinese or
Japanese silk cigarette case with an imitation tortoise-shell frame, a trade
article that might have cost thirty-five to seventy-five cents in any Oriental
store, Hooey Phooey Sing—Long Sing Tung, that kind of place, where a
nice-mannered Jap hisses at you, laughing heartily when you say that the Moon of
Arabia incense smells like the girls in Frisco Sadie’s back parlor. And all this in the pocket of a man who
was very dead, and who had another and genuinely expensive cigarette case
containing cigarettes which he actually smoked. He must have forgotten it. It didn’t make
sense. Perhaps it hadn’t belonged to him at all. Perhaps he had picked it up in
a hotel lobby. Forgotten he had it on him. Forgotten to turn it in. Jules
Amthor, Psychic Consultant. The phone rang and I answered it absently.
The voice had the cool hardness of a cop who thinks he is good. It was Randall.
He didn’t bark. He was the icy type. “So you didn’t know who that girl was last
night? And she picked you up on the boulevard and you walked over to there.
Nice lying, Marlowe.” “Maybe you have a daughter and you
wouldn’t like news cameramen jumping out of bushes and popping flashbulbs in
her face.” “You lied to me.” “It was a pleasure.” He was silent a moment, as if deciding
something. “We’ll let that pass,” he said. “I’ve seen her. She came in and told
me her story. She’s the daughter of a man I knew and respected, as it happens.”
“She told you,” I said, “and you told
her.” “I told her a little,” he said coldly.
“For a reason. I’m calling you for the same reason. This investigation is going
to be undercover. We have a chance to break this jewel gang and we’re going to
do it.” “Oh, it’s a gang murder this morning.
Okay.” “By the way, that was marijuana dust in
that funny cigarette case—the one with the dragons on it. Sure you didn’t see
him smoke one out of it?” “Quite sure. In my presence he smoked only
the others. But he wasn’t in my presence all the time.” “I see. Well, that’s all. Remember what I
told you last night. Don’t try getting ideas about this case. All we want from
you is silence. Otherwise—” He paused. I yawned into the mouthpiece. “I heard that,” he snapped. “Perhaps you
think I’m not in a position to make that stick. I am. One false move out of you
and you’ll be locked up as a material witness.” “You mean the papers are not to get the
case?” “They’ll get the murder—but they won’t
know what’s behind it.” “Neither do you,” I said. “I’ve warned you twice now,” be said. “The
third time is out.” “You’re doing a lot of talking,” I said,
“for a guy that holds cards.” I got the phone hung in my face for that.
Okay, the hell with him, let him work at it. I walked around the office a little to
cool off, bought myself a short drink, looked at my watch again and didn’t see
what time it was, and sat down at the desk once more. Jules Amthor, Psychic Consultant.
Consultations by Appointment Only. Give him enough time and pay him enough
money and he’ll cure anything from a jaded husband to a grasshopper plague. He
would be an expert in frustrated love affairs, women who slept alone and didn’t
like it, wandering boys and girls who didn’t write home, sell the property now
or hold it for another year, will this part hurt me with my public or make me
seem more versatile? Men would sneak in on him too, big strong guys that roared
like lions around their offices and were all cold mush under their vests. But
mostly it would be women, fat women that panted and thin women that burned, old
women that dreamed and young women that thought they might have Electra
complexes, women of all sizes, shapes and ages, but with one thing in
common—money; No Thursdays at the County Hospital for Mr. Jules Amthor. Cash on
the line for him. Rich bitches who had to be dunned for their milk bills would
pay him right now. A fakeloo artist, a hoopla spreader, and a
lad who had his card rolled up inside sticks of tea, found on a dead man. This was going to be good. I reached for
the phone and asked the 0-operator for the Stillwood Heights number. 15 A woman’s voice answered, a dry,
husky-sounding foreign voice: “’Allo.” “May I talk to Mr. Amthor?” “Ah no. I regret. I am ver-ry sor-ry.
Amthor never speaks upon the telephone. I am hees secretary. Weel I take the
message?” “What’s the address out there? I want to
see him.” “Ah, you weesh to consult Amthor
professionally? He weel be ver-ry pleased. But he ees ver-ry beesy. When you
weesh to see him?” “Right away. Sometime today.” “Ah,” the voice regretted, “that cannot
be. The next week per’aps. I weel look at the book.” “Look,” I said, “never mind the book You
‘ave the pencil?” “But certainly I ‘ave the pencil. I—” “Take this down. My name is Philip
Marlowe. My address is 615 Cahuenga Building, Hollywood. That’s on Hollywood
Boulevard near Ivar. My phone number is Glenview 7537.” I spelled the hard ones
and waited. “Yes, Meester Marlowe. I ‘ave that.” “I want to see Mr. Amthor about a man
named Marriott.” I spelled that too. “It is very urgent. It is a matter of life
and death. I want to see him fast. F-a-s-t—fast. Sudden, in other words. Am I
clear?” “You talk ver-ry strange,” the foreign
voice said. “No.” I took hold of the phone standard
and shook it. “I feel fine. I always talk like that. This is a very queer
business. Mr. Amthor will positively want to see me. I’m a private detective.
But I don’t want to go to the police until I’ve seen him.” “Ah,” the voice got as cool as a cafeteria
dinner. “You are of the police, no.” “Listen,” I said. “I am of the police, no.
I am a private detective. Confidential. But it is very urgent just the same.
You call me back, no? You ‘ave the telephone number, yes?” “Si. I ‘ave the telephone number. Meester
Marriott—he ees sick.” “Well, he’s not up and around,” I said.
“So you know him?” “But no. You say a matter of life and
death. Amthor he cure many people—” “This is one time he flops,” I said. “I’ll
be waiting for a call.” I hung up and lunged for the office
bottle. I felt as if I had been through a meat grinder. Ten minutes passed. The
phone rang. The voice said: “Amthor he weel see you at six o’clock.” “That’s fine. What’s the address?” “He weel send a car.” “I have a car of my own. Just give me—” “He weel send a car,” the voice said
coldly, and the phone clicked in my ear. I looked at my watch once more. It was
more than time for lunch. My stomach burned from the last drink. I wasn’t
hungry. I lit a cigarette. It tasted like a plumber’s handkerchief. I nodded
across the office at Mr. Rembrandt, then I reached for my hat and went out. I
was halfway to the elevator before the thought hit me. It hit me without any
reason or sense, like a dropped brick. I stopped and leaned against the marbled
wall and pushed my hat around on my head and suddenly I laughed. A girl passing me on the way from the
elevators back to her work turned and gave me one of those looks which are
supposed to make your spine feel like a run in a stocking. I waved my hand at
her and went back to my office and grabbed the phone. I called up a man I knew
who worked on the Lot Books of a title company. “Can you find a property by the address
alone?” I asked him. “Sure. We have a cross index. What is it?”
“1644 West 54th Place. I’d like
to know a little something about the condition of the title.” “I’d better call you back. What’s that
number?” He called back in about three minutes. “Get your pencil out,” he said. “It’s Lot
8 of Block 11 of Caraday’s Addition to the Maplewood Tract Number 4. The owner
of record, subject to certain things, is Jessie Pierce Florian, widow.” “Yeah. What things?” “Second half taxes, two ten-year street improvement
bonds, one storm drain assessment bond also ten year, none of these
delinquents, also a first trust deed of $2600.” “You mean one of those things where they
can sell you out on ten minutes’ notice?” “Not quite that quick, but a lot quicker
than a mortgage. There’s nothing unusual about it except the amount. It’s high
for that neighborhood, unless it’s a new house.” “It’s a very old house and in bad repair,”
I said. “I’d say fifteen hundred would buy the place.” “Then it’s distinctly unusual, because the
refinancing was done only four years ago.” “Okay, who holds it? Some investment
company?” “No. An individual. Man named Lindsay
Marriott, a single man. Okay?” I forget what I said to him or what thanks
I made. They probably sounded like words. I sat there, just staring at the
wall. My stomach suddenly felt fine. I was
hungry. I went down to the Mansion House Coffee Shop and ate lunch and got my
car out of the parking lot next to my building. I drove south and east, towards West 54th
Place. I didn’t carry any liquor with me this time. 16 The block looked just as it had looked the
day before. The street was empty except for an ice truck, two Fords in
driveways, and a swirl of dust going around a corner. I drove slowly past No.
1644 and parked farther along and studied the houses on either side of mine. I
walked back and stopped in front of it, looking at the tough palm tree and the
drab unwatered scrap of lawn. The house seemed empty, but probably wasn’t. It
just had that look. The lonely rocker on the front porch stood just where it
had stood yesterday. There was a throw-away paper on the walk. I picked it up
and slapped it against my leg and then I saw the curtain move next door, in the
near front window. Old Nosey again. I yawned and tilted my
hat down. A sharp nose almost flattened itself against the inside of the glass.
White hair above it, and eyes that were just eyes from where I stood. I
strolled along the sidewalk and the eyes watched me. I turned in towards her
house. I climbed the wooden steps and rang the bell. The door snapped open as if it had been on
a spring. She was a tall old bird with a chin like a rabbit. Seen from close
her eyes were as sharp as lights on still water. I took my hat off. “Are you the lady who called the police
about Mrs. Florian?” She stared at me coolly and missed nothing
about me, probably not even the mole on my right shoulder blade. “I ain’t sayin’ I am, young man, and I
ain’t sayin’ I ain’t. Who are you?” It was a high twangy voice, made for
talking over an eight party line. “I’m a detective.” “Land’s sakes. Why didn’t you say so?
What’s she done now? I ain’t seen a thing and I ain’t missed a minute. Henry
done all the goin’ to the store for me. Ain’t been a sound out of there.” She snapped the screen door unhooked and
drew me in. The hall smelled of furniture oil. It had a lot of dark furniture
that had once been in good style. Stuff with inlaid panels and scallops at the
corners. We went into a front room that had cotton lace antimacassars pinned on
everything you could stick a pin into. “Say, didn’t I see you before?” she asked
suddenly, a note of suspicion crawling around in her voice. “Sure enough I did.
You was the man that—” “That’s right. And I’m still a detective.
Who’s Henry?” “Oh, he’s just a little colored boy that
goes errands for me. Well, what you want, young man?” She patted a clean red
and white apron and gave me the beady eye. She clicked her store teeth a couple
of times for practice. “Did the officers come here yesterday
after they went to Mrs. Florian’s house?” “What officers?” “The uniformed officers,” I said
patiently. “Yes, they was here a minute. They didn’t
know nothing.” “Describe the big man to me—the one that
had a gun and made you call up.” She described him, with complete accuracy.
It was Malloy all right. “What kind of car did he drive?” “A little car. He couldn’t hardly get into
it.” “That’s all you can say? This man’s a
murderer!” Her mouth gaped, but her eyes were
pleased. “Land’s sakes, I wish I could tell you, young man. But I never knew
much about cars. Murder, eh? Folks ain’t safe a minute in this town. When I
come here twenty-two years ago we didn’t lock our doors hardly. Now it’s
gangsters and crooked police and politicians fightin’ each other with machine
guns, so I’ve heard. Scandalous is what it is, young man.” “Yeah. What do you know about Mrs.
Florian?” The small mouth puckered. “She ain’t
neighborly. Plays her radio loud late nights. Sings. She don’t talk to
anybody.” She leaned forward a little. “I’m not positive, but my opinion is she
drinks liquor.” “She have many visitors?” “She don’t have no visitors at all.” “You’d know, of course, Mrs.—” “Mrs. Morrison. Land’s sakes, yes. What
else have I got to do but look out of the windows?” “I bet it’s fun. Mrs. Florian has lived
here a long time—” “About ten years, I reckon. Had a husband
once. Looked like a bad one to me. He died.” She paused and thought “I guess he
died natural,” she added. “I never heard different.” “Left her money?” Her eyes receded and her chin followed
them. She sniffed hard. “You been drinkin’ liquor,” she said coldly. “I just had a tooth out. The dentist gave
it to me.” “I don’t hold with it.” “It’s bad stuff, except for medicine,” I
said. “I don’t hold with it for medicine
neither.” “I think you’re right,” I said. “Did he
leave her money? Her husband?” “I wouldn’t know.” Her mouth was the size
of a prune and as smooth. I had lost out. “Has anybody at all been there since the
officers?” “Ain’t seen.” “Thank you very much, Mrs. Morrison. I
won’t trouble you any more now. You’ve been very kind and helpful.” I walked out of the room and opened the
door. She followed me and cleared her throat and clicked her teeth a couple
more times. “What number should I call?” she asked,
relenting a little. “University 4-5000. Ask for Lieutenant
Nulty. What does she live on—relief?” “This ain’t a relief neighborhood,” she
said coldly. “I bet that side piece was the admiration
of Sioux Falls once,” I said, gazing at a carved sideboard that was in the hall
because the dining room was too small for it. It had curved ends, thin carved
legs, was inlaid all ever, and had a painted basket of fruit on the front. “Mason City,” she said softly. “Yessir, we
had a nice home once, me and George. Best there was.” I opened the screen door and stepped
through it and thanked her again. She was smiling now. Her smile was as sharp
as her eyes. “Gets a registered letter first of every
month,” she said suddenly. I turned and waited. She leaned towards
me. “I see the mailman go up to the door and get her to sign. First day of
every month. Dresses up then and goes out. Don’t come home till all hours.
Sings half the night. Times I could have called the police it was so loud.” I patted the thin malicious arm. “You’re one in a thousand, Mrs. Morrison,”
I said. I put my hat on, tipped it to her and left. Halfway down the walk I
thought of something and swung back. She was still standing inside the screen
door, with the house door open behind her. I went back up on the steps. “Tomorrow’s the first,” I said. “First of
April. April Fool’s Day. Be sure to notice whether she gets her registered
letter, will you, Mrs. Morrison?” The eyes gleamed at me. She began to
laugh—a high-pitched old woman’s laugh. “April Fool’s Day,” she tittered.
“Maybe she won’t get it.” I left her laughing. The sound was like a
hen having hiccups. 17 Nobody answered my ring or knock next
door. I tried again. The screen door wasn’t hooked. I tried the house door. It
was unlocked. I stepped inside. Nothing was changed, not even the smell of
gin. There were still no bodies on the floor. A dirty glass stood on the table
beside the chair where Mrs. Florian had sat yesterday. The radio was turned
off. I went over to the davenport and felt down behind the cushions. The same
dead soldier and another one with him now. I called out. No answer. Then I thought I
heard a long slow unhappy breathing that was half groaning. I went through the
arch and sneaked into the little hallway. The bedroom door was partly open and
the groaning sound came from behind it. I stuck my head in and looked. Mrs. Florian was in bed. She was lying
flat on her back with a cotton comforter pulled up to her chin. One of the
little fluff balls on the comforter was almost in her mouth. Her long yellow
face was slack, half dead. Her dirty hair straggled on the pillow. Her eyes
opened slowly and looked at me with no expression. The room had a sickening
smell of sleep, liquor and dirty clothes. A sixty-nine cent alarm clock ticked
on the peeling gray-white paint of the bureau. It ticked loud enough to shake
the walls. Above it a mirror showed a distorted view of the woman’s face. The
trunk from which she had taken the photos was still open. I said: “Good afternoon, Mrs. Florian. Are
you sick?” She worked her lips slowly, rubbed one
over the other, then slid a tongue out and moistened them and worked her jaws.
Her voice came from her mouth sounding like a worn-out phonograph record. Her
eyes showed recognition now, but not pleasure. “You get him?” “The Moose?” “Sure.” “Not yet. Soon, I hope.” She screwed her eyes up and then snapped
them open as if trying to get rid of a film over them. “You ought to keep your house locked up,”
I said. “He might come back.” “You think I’m scared of the Moose, huh?” “You acted like it when I was talking to
you yesterday.” She thought about that. Thinking was weary
work. “Got any liquor?” “No, I didn’t bring any today, Mrs.
Florian. I was a little low on cash.” “Gin’s cheap. It hits.” “I might go out for some in a little
while. So you’re not afraid of Malloy?” “Why would I be?” “Okay, you’re not. What are you afraid
of?” Light snapped into her eyes, held for a
moment, and faded out again. “Aw beat it. You coppers give me an ache in the
fanny.” I said nothing. I leaned against the door
frame and put a cigarette in my mouth and tried to jerk it up far enough to hit
my nose with it. This is harder than it looks. “Coppers,” she said slowly, as if talking
to herself, “will never catch that boy. He’s good and he’s got dough and he’s
got friends. You’re wasting your time, copper.” “Just the routine,” I said. “It was
practically a self-defense anyway. Where would he be?” She snickered and wiped her mouth on the
cotton comforter. “Soap now,” she said. “Soft stuff. Copper
smart. You guys still think it gets you something.” “I liked the Moose,” I said. Interest flickered in her eyes. “You know
him?” “I was with him yesterday—when he killed
the nigger over on Central.” She opened her mouth wide and laughed her
head off without making any more sound than you would make cracking a
breadstick. Tears ran out of her eyes and down her face. “A big strong guy,” I said. “Soft-hearted
in spots too. Wanted his Velma pretty bad.” The eyes veiled. “Thought it was her folks
was looking for her,” she said softly. “They are. But she’s dead, you said.
Nothing there. Where did she die?” “Dalhart, Texas. Got a cold and went to
the chest and off she went.” “You were there?” “Hell, now. I just heard.” “Oh. Who told you, Mrs. Florian?” “Some hoofer. I forget the name right now.
Maybe a good stiff drink might help some. I feel like Death Valley.” “And you look like a dead mule,” I
thought, but didn’t say it out loud. “There’s just one more thing,” I said,
“then I’ll maybe run out for some gin. I looked up the title to your house, I
don’t know just why.” She was rigid under the bedclothes, like a
wooden woman. Even her eyelids were frozen half down over the clogged iris of
her eyes. Her breath stilled. “There’s a rather large trust deed on it,”
I said. “Considering the low value of property around here. It’s held by a man
named Lindsay Marriott.” Her eyes blinked rapidly, but nothing else
moved. She stared. “I used to work for him,” she said at last.
“I used to be a servant in his family. He kind of takes care of me a little.” I took the unlighted cigarette out of my
mouth and looked at it aimlessly and stuck it back in. “Yesterday afternoon, a few hours after I
saw you, Mr. Marriott called me up at my office. He offered me a job.” “What kind of job?” Her voice croaked now,
badly. I shrugged. “I can’t tell you that.
Confidential. I went to see him last night.” “You’re a clever son of a bitch,” she said
thickly and moved a hand under the bedclothes. I stared at her and said nothing. “Copper-smart,” she sneered. I ran a hand up and down the doorframe. It
felt slimy. Just touching it made me want to take a bath. “Well, that’s all,” I said smoothly. “I
was just wondering how come. Might be nothing at all. Just a coincidence. It
just looked as if it might mean something.” “Copper-smart,” she said emptily. “Not a
real copper at that. Just a cheap shamus.” “I suppose so,” I said. “Well, goodbye,
Mrs. Florian. By the way, I don’t think you’ll get a registered letter tomorrow
morning.” She threw the bedclothes aside and jerked
upright with her eyes blazing. Something glittered in her right hand. A small
revolver, a Banker’s Special. It was old and worn, but looked business-like. “Tell it,” she snarled. “Tell it fast.” I looked at the gun and the gun looked at
me. Not too steadily. The hand behind it began to shake, but the eyes still
blazed. Saliva bubbled at the corners of her mouth. “You and I could work together,” I said. The gun and her jaw dropped at the same
time. I was inches from the door. While the gun was still dropping, I slid
through it and beyond the opening. “Think it over,” I called back. There was no sound, no sound of any kind. I went fast back through the hall and
dining room and out of the house. My back felt queer as I went down the walk.
The muscles crawled. Nothing happened. I went along the street
and got into my car and drove away from there. The last day of March and hot enough for
summer. I felt like taking my coat off as I drove. In front of the 77th
Street Station, two prowl car men were scowling at a bent front fender. I went
in through the swing doors and found a uniformed lieutenant behind the railing
looking over the charge sheet. I asked him if Nulty was upstairs. He said he thought he was, was I a friend
of his? I said yes. He said Okay, go on up, so I went up the
worn stairs and along the corridor and knocked at the door. The voice yelled
and I went in. He was picking his teeth, sitting in one
chair with his feet on the other. He was looking at his left thumb, holding it
up in front of his eyes and at arm’s length. The thumb looked all right to me,
but Nulty’s stare was gloomy, as if he thought it wouldn’t get well. He lowered it to his thigh and swung his feet
to the floor and looked at me instead of at his thumb. He wore a dark gray suit
and a mangled cigar end was waiting on the desk for him to get through with the
toothpick. I turned the felt seat cover that lay on
the other chair with its straps not fastened to anything, sat down, and put a
cigarette in my face. “You,” Nulty said, and looked at his
toothpick, to see if it was chewed enough. “Any luck?” “Malloy? I ain’t on it any more.” “Who is?” “Nobody ain’t. Why? The guy’s lammed. We
got him on the teletype and they got readers out. Hell, he’ll be in Mexico long
gone.” “Well, all he did was kill a Negro,” I
said. “I guess that’s only a misdemeanor.” “You still interested? I thought you was
workin’?” His pale eyes moved damply over my face. “I had a job last night, but it didn’t
last. Have you still got that Pierrot photo?” He reached around and pawed under his
blotter. He held it out. It still looked pretty. I stared at the face. “This is really mine,” I said. “If you
don’t need it for the file, I’d like to keep it.” “Should be in the file, I guess,” Nulty
said. “I forgot about it. Okay, keep it under your hat. I passed the file in.” I put the photo in my breast pocket and
stood up. “Well, I guess that’s all,” I said, a little too airily. “I smell something,” Nulty said coldly. I looked at the piece of rope on the edge
of his desk. His eyes followed my look. He threw the toothpick on the floor and
stuck the chewed cigar in his mouth. “Not this either,” he said. “It’s a vague hunch. If it grows more
solid, I won’t forget you.” “Things is tough. I need a break, pal.” “A man who works as hard as you deserves
one,” I said. He struck a match on his thumbnail, looked
pleased because it caught the first time, and started inhaling smoke from the
cigar. “I’m laughing,” Nulty said sadly, as I
went out. The hall was quiet, the whole building was
quiet. Down in front the prowl car men were still looking at their bent fender.
I drove back to Hollywood. The phone was ringing as I stepped into
the office. I leaned down over the desk and said, “Yes?” “Am I addressing Mr. Philip Marlowe?” “Yes, this is Marlowe.” “This is Mrs. Grayle’s residence. Mrs.
Lewin Lockridge Grayle. Mrs. Grayle would like to see you here as soon as
convenient.” “Where?” “The address is Number 862 Aster Drive, in
Bay City. May I say you will arrive within the hour?” “Are you Mr. Grayle?” “Certainly not, sir. I am the butler.” “That’s me you hear ringing the doorbell,”
I said. 18 It was close to the ocean and you could feel
the ocean in the air but you couldn’t see water from the front of the place.
Aster Drive had a long smooth curve there and the houses on the inland side
were just nice houses, but on the canyon side they were great silent estates,
with twelve foot walls and wrought-iron gates and ornamental hedges; and
inside, if you could get inside, a special brand of sunshine, very quiet, put
up in noise-proof containers just for the upper classes. A man in a dark blue Russian tunic and
shiny black puttees and flaring breeches stood in the half-open gates. He was a
dark, good-looking lad, with plenty of shoulders and shiny smooth hair and the
peak on his rakish cap made a soft shadow over his eyes. He had a cigarette in
the corner of his mouth and he held his head tilted a little, as if he liked to
keep the smoke out of his nose. One hand had a smooth black gauntlet on it and
the other was bare. There was a heavy ring on his third finger. There was no number in sight, but this
should be 862. I stopped my car and leaned out and asked him. It took him a
long time to answer. He had to look me over very carefully. Also the car I was
driving. He came over to me and as he came he carelessly dropped his ungloved
hand towards his hip. It was the kind of carelessness that was meant to be
noticed. He stopped a couple of feet away from my
car and looked me over again. “I’m looking for the Grayle residence,” I
said. “This is it. Nobody in.” “I’m expected.” He nodded. His eyes gleamed like water.
“Name?” “Philip Marlowe.” “Wait there.” He strolled, without hurry,
over to the gates and unlocked an iron door set into one of the massive
pillars. There was a telephone inside. He spoke briefly into it, snapped the
door shut, and came back to me. “You have some identification.” I let him look at the license on the
steering post. “That doesn’t prove anything,” he said. “How do I know it’s your
car?” I pulled the key out of the ignition and
threw the door open and got out. That put me about a foot from him. He had a
nice breath. Haig and Haig at least. “You’ve been at the side boy again,” I
said. He smiled. His eyes measured me. I said: “Listen, I’ll talk to the butler over that
phone and he’ll know my voice. Will that pass me in or do I have to ride on
your back?” “I just work here,” he said softly. “If I
didn’t—” he let the rest hang in the air, and kept on smiling. “You’re a nice lad,” I said and patted his
shoulder. “Dartmouth or Dannemora?” “Christ,” he said. “Why didn’t you say you
were a cop?” We both grinned. He waved his hand and I
went in through the half open gate. The drive curved and tall molded hedges of
dark green completely screened it from the street and from the house. Through a
green gate I saw a Jap gardener at work weeding a huge lawn. He was pulling a
piece of weed out of the vast velvet expanse and sneering at it the way Jap
gardeners do. Then the tall hedge closed in again and I didn’t see anything
more for a hundred feet. Then the hedge ended in a wide circle in which half a
dozen cars were parked. One of them was a small coupe. There were
a couple of very nice two-tone Buicks of the latest model, good enough to go
for the mail in. There was a black limousine, with dull nickel louvers and
hubcaps the size of bicycle wheels. There was a long sport phaeton with the top
down. A short very wide all-weather concrete driveway led from these to the
side entrance of the house. Off to the left, beyond the parking space
there was a sunken garden with a fountain at each of the four corners. The
entrance was barred by a wrought-iron gate with a flying Cupid in the middle.
There were busts on light pillars and a stone seat with crouching griffins at
each end. There was an oblong pool with stone water lilies in it and a big
stone bullfrog sitting on one of the leaves. Still farther a rose colonnade led
to a thing like an altar, hedged in at both sides, yet not so completely but
that the sun lay in an arabesque along the steps of the altar. And far over to
the left there was a wild garden, not very large, with a sundial in the corner
near an angle of wall that was built to look like a ruin. And there were
flowers. There were a million flowers. The house itself was not so much. It was
smaller than Buckingham Palace, rather gray for California, and probably had
fewer windows than the Chrysler Building. I sneaked over to the side entrance and
pressed a bell and somewhere a set of chimes made a deep mellow sound like
church bells. A man in a striped vest and gilt buttons
opened the door, bowed, took my hat and was through for the day. Behind him in
dimness, a man in striped knife-edged pants and a black coat and wing collar
with gray striped tie leaned his gray head forward about half an inch and said:
“Mr. Marlowe? If you will come this way, please—” We went down a hall. It was a very quiet
hail. Not a fly buzzed in it. The floor was covered with Oriental rugs and
there were paintings along the walls. We turned a corner and there was more
hall. A french window showed a gleam of blue water far off and I remembered
almost with a shock that we were near the Pacific Ocean and that this house was
on the edge of one of the canyons. The butler reached a door and opened it
against voices and stood aside and I went in. It was a nice room with large
chesterfields and lounging chairs done in pale yellow leather arranged around a
fireplace in front of which, on the glossy but not slippery floor, lay a rug as
thin as silk and as old as Aesop’s aunt. A jet of flowers glistened in a
corner, another on a low table, the walls were of dull painted parchment, there
was comfort, space, coziness, a dash of the very modern and a dash of the very
old, and three people sitting in a sudden silence watching me cross the floor. One of them was Anne Riordan, looking just
as I had seen her last, except that she was holding a glass of amber fluid in
her hand. One was a tall thin sad-faced man with a stony chin and deep eyes and
no color in his face but an unhealthy yellow. He was a good sixty, or rather a
bad sixty. He wore a dark business suit, a red carnation, and looked subdued. The third was the blonde. She was dressed
to go out, in a pale greenish blue. I didn’t pay much attention to her clothes.
They were what the guy designed for her and she would go to the right man. The
effect was to make her look very young and to make her lapis lazuli eyes look
very blue. Her hair was of the gold of old paintings and had been fussed with
just enough but not too much. She had a full set of curves which nobody had
been able to improve on. The dress was rather plain except for a clasp of
diamonds at the throat. Her hands were not small, but they had shape, and the
nails were the usual jarring note—almost magenta. She was giving me one of her
smiles. She looked as if she smiled easily, but her eyes had a still look, as
if they thought slowly and carefully. And her mouth was sensual. “So nice of you to come,” she said. “This
is my husband. Mix Mr. Marlowe a drink, honey.” Mr. Grayle shook hands with me. His hand
was cold and a little moist. His eyes were sad. He mixed a Scotch and soda and
handed it to me. Then he sat down in a corner and was
silent. I drank half of the drink and grinned at Miss Riordan. She looked at me
with a sort of absent expression, as if she had another clue. “Do you think you can do anything for us?”
the blonde asked slowly, looking down into her glass. “If you think you can,
I’d be delighted. But the loss is rather small, compared with having any more
fuss with gangsters and awful people.” “I don’t know very much about it really,”
I said. “Oh, I hope you can.” She gave me a smile
I could feel in my hip pocket. I drank the other half of my drink. I
began to feel rested. Mrs. Grayle rang a bell set into the arm of the leather
chesterfield and a footman came in. She half pointed to the tray. He looked
around and mixed two drinks. Miss Riordan was still playing cute with the same
one and apparently Mr. Grayle didn’t drink. The footman went out. Mrs. Grayle and I held our glasses. Mrs.
Grayle crossed her legs, a little carelessly. “I don’t know whether I can do anything,”
I said. “I doubt it. What is there to go on?” “I’m sure you can.” She gave me another
smile. “How far did Lin Marriott take you into his confidence?” She looked sideways at Miss Riordan. Miss
Riordan just couldn’t catch the look. She kept right on sitting. She looked
sideways the other way. Mrs. Grayle looked at her husband. “Do you have to
bother with this, honey?” Mr. Grayle stood up and said he was very
glad to have met me and that he would go and lie down for a while. He didn’t
feel very well. He hoped I would excuse him. He was so polite I wanted to carry
him out of the room just to show my appreciation. He left. He closed the door softly, as if
he was afraid to wake a sleeper. Mrs. Grayle looked at the door for a moment
and then put the smile back on her face and looked at me. “Miss Riordan is in your complete
confidence, of course.” “Nobody’s In my complete confidence, Mrs.
Grayle. She happens to know about this case—what there is to know.” “Yes.” She drank a sip or two, then
finished her glass at a swallow and set it aside. “To hell with this polite drinking,” she
said suddenly. “Let’s get together on this. You’re a very good-looking man to
be in your sort of racket.” “It’s a smelly business,” I said. “I didn’t quite mean that. Is there any
money in it—or is that impertinent?” “There’s not much money in it. There’s a
lot of grief. But there’s a lot of fun too. And there’s always a chance of a
big case.” “How does one get to be a private
detective? You don’t mind my sizing you up a little? And push that table over
here, will you? So I can reach the drinks.” I got up and pushed the huge silver tray
on a stand across the glossy floor to her side. She made two more drinks. I
still had half of my second. “Most of us are ex-cops,” I said. “I
worked for the D.A. for a while. I got fired.” She smiled nicely. “Not for incompetence,
I’m sure.” “No, for talking back. Have you had any
more phone calls?” “Well—” She looked at Anne Riordan. She
waited. Her look said things. Anne Riordan stood up. She carried her
glass, still full, over to the tray and set it down. “You probably won’t run
short,” she said. “But if you do—and thanks very much for talking to me, Mrs.
Grayle. I won’t use anything. You have my word for it.” “Heavens, you’re not leaving,” Mrs. Grayle
said with a smile. Anne Riordan took her lower lip between
her teeth and held it there for a moment as if making up her mind whether to
bite it off and spit it out or leave it on a while longer. “Sorry, afraid I’ll have to. I don’t work
for Mr. Marlowe, you know. Just a friend. Goodbye, Mrs. Grayle.” The blonde gleamed at her. “I hope you’ll
drop in again soon. Any time.” She pressed the bell twice. That got the butler.
He held the door open. Miss Riordan went out quickly and the door
closed. For quite a while after it closed, Mrs. Grayle stared at it with a
faint smile. “It’s much better this way, don’t you think?” she said after an
interval of silence. I nodded. “You’re probably wondering how
she knows so much if she’s just a friend,” I said. “She’s a curious little
girl. Some of it she dug out herself, like who you were and who owned the jade
necklace. Some of it just happened. She came by last night to that dell where
Marriott was killed. She was out riding. She happened to see a light and came
down there.” “Oh.” Mrs. Grayle lifted a glass quickly
and made a face. “It’s horrible to think of. Poor Lin. He was rather a heel.
Most of one’s friends are. But to die like that is awful.” She shuddered. Her
eyes got large and dark. “So it’s all right about Miss Riordan. She
won’t talk. Her father was chief of police here for a long time,” I said. “Yes. So she told me. You’re not
drinking.” “I’m doing what I call drinking.” “You and I should get along. Did Lin—Mr.
Marriott—tell you how the hold-up happened?” “Between here and the Trocadero somewhere.
He didn’t say exactly. Three or four men.” She nodded her golden gleaming head. “Yes.
You know there was something rather funny about that holdup. They gave me back
one of my rings, rather a nice one, too.” “He told me that.” “Then again I hardly ever wore the jade.
After all, it’s a museum piece, probably not many like it in the world, a very
rare type of jade. Yet they snapped at it. I wouldn’t expect them to think it
had any value much, would you?” “They’d know you wouldn’t wear it
otherwise. Who knew about its value?” She thought. It was nice to watch her
thinking. She still had her legs crossed, and still carelessly. “All sorts of people, I suppose.” “But they didn’t know you would be wearing
it that night? Who knew that?” She shrugged her pale blue shoulders. I
tried to keep my eyes where they belonged. “My maid. But she’s had a hundred chances.
And I trust her—” “Why?” “I don’t know. I just trust some people. I
trust you.” “Did you trust Marriott?” Her face got a little hard. Her eyes a
little watchful. “Not in some things. In others, yes. There are degrees.” She
had a nice way of talking, cool, half-cynical, and yet not hardboiled. She
rounded her words well. “All right—besides the maid. The
chauffeur?” She shook her head, no. “Lin drove me that
night, in his own car. I don’t think George was around at all. Wasn’t it
Thursday?” “I wasn’t there. Marriott said four or
five days before in telling me about it. Thursday would have been an even week
from last night.” “Well, it was Thursday.” She reached for
my glass and her fingers touched mine a little, and were soft to the touch.
“George gets Thursday evening off. That’s the usual day, you know.” She poured
a fat slug of mellow-looking Scotch into my glass and squirted in some
fizz-water. It was the kind of liquor you think you can drink forever, and all
you do is get reckless. She gave herself the same treatment. “Lin told you my name?” she asked softly, the
eyes still watchful. “He was careful not to.” “Then he probably misled you a little
about the time. Let’s see what we have. Maid and chauffeur out. Out of
consideration as accomplices, I mean.” “They’re not out by me.” “Well, at least I’m trying,” she laughed.
“Then there’s Newton, the butler. He might have seen it on my neck that night.
But it hangs down rather low and I was wearing a white fox evening wrap; no, I
don’t think he could have seen it.” “I bet you looked like a dream,” I said. “You’re not getting a little tight, are
you?” “I’ve been known to be soberer.” She put her head back and went off into a
peal of laughter. I have only known four women in my life who could do that and
still look beautiful. She was one of them. “Newton is Okay,” I said. “His type don’t
run with hoodlums. That’s just guessing, though. How about the footman?” She thought and remembered, then shook her
head. “He didn’t see me.” “Anybody ask you to wear the jade?” Her eyes instantly got more guarded.
“You’re not fooling me a damn bit,” she said. She reached for my glass to refill it. I
let her have it, even though it still had an inch to go. I studied the lovely
lines of her neck. When she had filled the glasses and we
were playing with them again I said, “Let’s get the record straight and then
I’ll tell you something. Describe the evening.” She looked at her wristwatch, drawing a
full-length sleeve back to do it. “I ought to be—” “Let him wait.” Her eyes flashed at that. I liked them
that way. “There’s such a thing as being just a little too frank,” she said. “Not in my business. Describe the evening.
Or have me thrown out on my ear. One or the other. Make your lovely mind up.” “You’d better sit over here beside me.” “I’ve been thinking that a long time,” I
said. “Ever since you crossed your legs, to be exact.” She pulled her dress down. “These damn
things are always up around your neck.” I sat beside her on the yellow leather
chesterfield. “Aren’t you a pretty fast worker?” she asked quietly. I didn’t answer her. “Do you do much of this sort of thing?”
she asked with a sidelong look. “Practically none. I’m a Tibetan monk, in
my spare time.” “Only you don’t have any spare time.” “Let’s focus,” I said. “Let’s get what’s
left of our minds—or mine—on the problem. How much are you going to pay me?” “Oh, that’s the problem. I thought you
were going to get my necklace back. Or try to.” “I have to work in my own way. This way.”
I took a long drink and it nearly stood me on my head. I swallowed a little
air. “And investigate a murder,” I said. “That has nothing to do with it. I mean
that’s a police affair, isn’t it?” “Yeah—only the poor guy paid me a hundred
bucks to take care of him—and I didn’t. Makes me feel guilty. Makes we want to
cry. Shall I cry?” “Have a drink.” She poured us some more
Scotch. It didn’t seem to affect her any more than water affects Boulder Dam. “Well, where have we got to?” I said,
trying to hold my glass so that the whiskey would stay inside it. “No maid, no
chauffeur, no butler, no footman. We’ll be doing our own laundry next. How did
the holdup happen? Your version might have a few details Marriott didn’t give
me.” She leaned forward and cupped her chin in
her hand. She looked serious without looking silly-serious. “We went to a party in Brentwood Heights.
Then Lin suggested we run over to the Troc for a few drinks and a few dances.
So we did. They were doing some work on Sunset and it was very dusty. So coming
back Lin dropped down to Santa Monica. That took us past a shabby looking hotel
called the Hotel Indio, which I happened to notice for some silly meaningless
reason. Across the street from it was a beer joint and a car was parked in
front of that.” “Only one car—in front of a beer joint?” “Yes. Only one. It was a very dingy place.
Well, this car started up and followed us and of course I thought nothing of
that either. There was no reason to. Then before we got to where Santa Monica
turns into Arguello Boulevard, Lin said, ‘Let’s go over the other road’ and
turned up some curving residential street. Then all of a sudden a car rushed by
us and grazed the fender and then pulled over to stop. A man in an overcoat and
scarf and hat low on his face came back to apologize. It was a white scarf
bunched out and it drew my eyes. It was about all I really saw of him except
that he was tall and thin. As soon as he got close—and I remembered afterwards
that he didn’t walk in our headlights at all—” “That’s natural. Nobody likes to look into
headlights. Have a drink. My treat this time.” She was leaning forward, her fine
eyebrows—not daubs of paint—drawn together in a frown of thought. I made two
drinks. She went on: “As soon as he got close to the side where
Lin was sitting he jerked the scarf up over his nose and a gun was shining at
us. ‘Stick-up,’ he said. ‘Be very quiet and everything will be jake.’ Then
another man came over on the other side.” “In Beverly Hills,” I said, “the best
policed four square miles in California.” She shrugged. “It happened just the same.
They asked for my jewelry and bag. The man with the scarf did. The one on my
side never spoke at all. I passed the things across Lin and the man gave me
back my bag and one ring. He said to hold off calling the police and insurance
people for a while. They would make us a nice smooth easy deal. He said they
found it easier to work on a straight percentage. He seemed to have all the
time in the world. He said they could work through the insurance people, if
they had to, but that meant cutting in a shyster, and they preferred not to. He
sounded like a man with some education.” “It might have been Dressed-Up Eddie,” I
said. “Only he got bumped off in Chicago.” She shrugged. We had a drink. She went on.
“Then they left and we went home and I
told Lin to keep quiet about it. The next day I got a call. We have two phones,
one with extensions and one in my bedroom with no extensions. The call was on
this. It’s not listed, of course.” I nodded. “They can buy the number for a
few dollars. It’s done all the time. Some movie people have to change their
numbers every month.” We had a drink. “I told the man calling to take it up with
Lin and he would represent me and if they were not too unreasonable, we might
deal. He said Okay, and from then on I guess they just stalled long enough to
watch us a little. Finally, as you know, we agreed on eight thousand dollars
and so forth.” “Could you recognize any of them?” “Of course not” “Randall know all this?” “Of course. Do we have to talk about it
any more? It bores me.” She gave me the lovely smile. “Did he make any comment?” She yawned. “Probably. I forget.” I sat with my empty glass in my hand and
thought. She took it away from me and started to fill it again. I took the refilled glass out of her hand
and transferred it to my left and took hold of her left hand with my right. It
felt smooth and soft and warm and comforting. It squeezed mine. The muscles in
it were strong. She was a well built woman, and no paper flower. “I think he had an idea, she said. “But he
didn’t say what it was.” “Anybody would have an idea out of all
that,” I said. She turned her head slowly and looked at
me. Then she nodded. “You can’t miss it, can you?” “How long have you known him?” “Oh, years. He used to be an announcer at
the station my husband owned. KFDK. That’s where I met him. That’s where I met
my husband too.” “I knew that. But Marriott lived as if he
had money. Not riches, but comfortable money.” “He came into some and quit radio
business.” “Do you know for a fact he came into
money—or was that just something he said?” She shrugged. She squeezed my hand. “Or it may not have been very much money
and he may have gone through it pretty fast.” I squeezed her hand back. “Did he
borrow from you?” “You’re a little old-fashioned, aren’t you?”
She looked down at the hand I was holding. “I’m still working. And your Scotch is so
good it keeps me half-sober. Not that I’d have to be drunk—” “Yes.” She drew her hand out of mine and
rubbed it. “You must have quite a clutch—in your spare time. Lin Marriott was a
high-class blackmailer, of course. That’s obvious. He lived on women.” “He had something on you?” “Should I tell you?” “It probably wouldn’t be wise.” She laughed. “I will, anyhow. I got a
little tight at his house once and passed out. I seldom do. He took some photos
of me—with my clothes up to my neck.” “The dirty dog,” I said. “Have you got any
of them handy?” She slapped my wrist. She said softly: “What’s your name?” “Phil. What’s yours?” “Helen. Kiss me.” She fell softly across my lap and I bent
down over her face and began to browse on it. She worked her eyelashes and made
butterfly kisses on my cheeks. When I got to her mouth it was half open and
burning and her tongue was a darting snake between her teeth. The door opened and Mr. Grayle stepped
quietly into the room. I was holding her and didn’t have a chance to let go. I
lifted my face and looked at him. I felt as cold as Finnegan’s feet, the day
they buried him. The blonde in my arms didn’t move, didn’t
even close her lips. She had a half-dreamy, half-sarcastic expression on her
face. Mr. Grayle cleared his throat slightly and
said: “I beg your pardon, I’m sure,” and went quietly out of the room. There
was an infinite sadness in his eyes. I pushed her away and stood up and got my
handkerchief out and mopped my face. She lay as I had left her, half sideways
along the davenport, the skin showing in a generous sweep above one stocking. “Who was that?” she asked thickly. “Mr. Grayle.” “Forget him.” I went away from her and sat down in the
chair I had sat in when I first came into the room. After a moment she straightened herself
out and sat up and looked at me steadily. “It’s all right. He understands. What the
hell can he expect?” “I guess he knows.” “Well, I tell you it’s all right. Isn’t
that enough? He’s a sick man. What the hell—” “Don’t go shrill on me. I don’t like
shrill women.” She opened a bag lying beside her and took
out a small handkerchief and wiped her lips, then looked at her face in a
mirror. “I guess you’re right,” she said. “Just too much Scotch. Tonight at the
Belvedere Club. Ten o’clock.” She wasn’t looking at me. Her breath was fast. “Is that a good place?” “Laird Brunette owns it I know him pretty
well.” “Right,” I said. I was still cold. I felt
nasty, as if I had picked a poor man’s pocket. She got a lipstick out and touched her
lips very lightly and then looked at me along her eyes. She tossed the mirror.
I caught it and looked at my face. I worked at it with my handkerchief and
stood up to give her back the mirror. She was leaning back, showing all her
throat, looking at me lazily down her eyes. “What’s the matter?” “Nothing. Ten o’clock at the Belvedere
Club. Don’t be too magnificent. All I have is a dinner suit. In the bar?” She nodded, her eyes still lazy. I went across the room and out, without
looking back. The footman met me in the hall and gave me my hat, looking like
the Great Stone Face. 19 I walked down the curving driveway and
lost myself in the shadow of the tall trimmed hedges and came to the gates.
Another man was holding the fort now, a husky in plainclothes, an obvious
bodyguard. He let me out with a nod. A horn tooted. Miss Riordan’s coupe was
drawn up behind my car. I went over there and looked in at her. She looked cool
and sarcastic. She sat there with her hands on the wheel,
gloved and slim. She smiled. “I waited. I suppose it was none of my
business. What did you think of her?” “I bet she snaps a mean garter.” “Do you always have to say things like
that?” She flushed bitterly. “Sometimes I hate men. Old men, young men,
football players, opera tenors, smart millionaires, beautiful men who are
gigolos and almost-heels who are—private detectives.” I grinned at her sadly. “I know I talk too
smart. It’s in the air nowadays. Who told you he was a gigolo?” “Who?” “Don’t be obtuse. Marriott.” “Oh, it was a cinch guess. I’m sorry. I
don’t mean to be nasty. I guess you can snap her garter any time you want to,
without much of a struggle. But there’s one thing you can be sure of—you’re a
late comer to the show.” The wide curving street dozed peacefully
in the sun. A beautifully painted panel truck slid noiselessly to a stop before
a house across the street, then backed a little and went up the driveway to a
side entrance. On the side of the panel truck was painted the legend. “Bay City
Infant Service.” Anne Riordan leaned towards me, her
gray-blue eyes hurt and clouded. Her slightly too long upper lip pouted and
then pressed back against her teeth. She made a sharp little sound with her
breath. “Probably you’d like me to mind my own business, is that it? And not
have ideas you don’t have first. I thought I was helping a little.” “I don’t need any help. The police don’t
want any from me. There’s nothing I can do for Mrs. Grayle. She has a yarn
about a beer parlor where a car started from and followed them, but what does
that amount to? It was a crummy dive on Santa Monica. This was a high-class
mob. There was somebody in it that could even tell Fei Tsui jade when he saw
it.” “If he wasn’t tipped off.” “There’s that too,” I said, and fumbled a
cigarette out of a package. “Either way there’s nothing for me in it.” “Not even about psychics?” I stared rather blankly. “Psychics?” “My God,” she said softly. “And I thought
you were a detective.” “There’s a hush on part of this,” I said.
“I’ve got to watch my step. This Grayle packs a lot of dough in his pants. And
law is where you buy it in this town. Look at the funny way the cops are
acting. No build-up, no newspaper handout, no chance for the innocent stranger
to step in with the trifling clue that turns out to be all important. Nothing
but silence and warnings to me to lay off. I don’t like it at all.” “You got most of the lipstick off,” Anne
Riordan said. “I mentioned psychics. Well, goodbye. It was nice to know you—in
a way.” She pressed her starter button and jammed
her gears in and was gone in a swirl of dust. I watched her go. When she was gone I
looked across the street. The man from the panel truck that said Bay City
Infant Service came out of the side door of the house dressed in a uniform so
white and stiff and gleaming that it made me feel clean just to look at it. He
was carrying a carton of some sort. He got into his panel truck and drove away.
I figured he had just changed a diaper. I got into my own car and looked at my
watch before starting up. It was almost five. The Scotch, as good enough Scotch will,
stayed with me all the way back to Hollywood. I took the red lights as they
came. “There’s a nice little girl,” I told
myself out loud, in the car, “for a guy that’s interested in a nice little
girl.” Nobody said anything. “But I’m not,” I said. Nobody said anything to
that either. “Ten o’clock at the Belvedere Club,” I said. Somebody said:
“Phooey.” It sounded like my voice. It was a quarter to six when I reached my
office again. The building was very quiet. The typewriter beyond the party wall
was still. I lit a pipe and sat down to wait. 20 The Indian smelled. He smelled clear
across the little reception room when the buzzer sounded and I opened the door
between to see who it was. Ho stood just inside the corridor door looking as if
he had been cast in bronze. He was a big man from the waist up and he had a big
chest. He looked like a bum. He wore a brown suit of which the coat was
too small for his shoulders and his trousers were probably a little tight at
the waist. His hat was at least two sizes too small and had been perspired in
freely by somebody it fitted better than it fitted him. He wore it about where
a house wears a wind vane. His collar had the snug fit of a horse-collar and
was of about the same shade of dirty brown. A tie dangled outside his buttoned
jacket, a black tie which had been tied with a pair of pliers in a knot the
size of a pea. Around his bare and magnificent throat, above the dirty collar,
he wore a wide piece of black ribbon, like an old woman trying to freshen up
her neck. He had a big flat face and a high bridged
fleshy nose that looked as hard as the prow of a cruiser. He had lidless eyes,
drooping jowls, the shoulders of a blacksmith and the short and apparent
awkward legs of a chimpanzee. I found out later that they were only short. If he had been cleaned up a little and
dressed in a white nightgown, he would have looked like a very wicked Roman
senator. His smell was the earthy smell of
primitive man, and not the slimy dirt of cities. “Huh,” he said. “Come quick. Come now.” I backed into my office and wiggled my
finger at him and he followed me making as much noise as a fly makes walking on
the wall. I sat down behind my desk and squeaked my swivel chair professionally
and pointed to the customer’s chair on the other side. He didn’t sit down. His
small black eyes were hostile. “Come where?” I said. “Huh. Me Second Planting. Me Hollywood
Indian.” “Have a chair, Mr. Planting.” He snorted and his nostrils got very wide.
They had been wide enough for mouse holes to start with. “Name Second Planting. Name no Mister
Planting.” “What can I do for you?” He lifted his voice and began to intone in
a deep-chested sonorous boom. “He say come quick. Great white father say come
quick. He say me bring you in fiery chariot. He say—” “Yeah. Cut out the pig Latin,” I said.
“I’m no schoolmarm at the snake dances.” “Nuts,” the Indian said. We sneered at each other across the desk
for a moment. He sneered better than I did. Then he removed his hat with
massive disgust and turned it upside down. He rolled a finger around under the
sweatband. That turned the sweatband up into view, and it had not been
misnamed. He removed a paper clip from the edge and threw a fold of tissue
paper on the desk. He pointed at it angrily, with a well-chewed fingernail. His
lank hair had a shelf around it, high up, from the too-tight hat. I unfolded the piece of tissue paper and
found a card inside. The card was no news to me. There had been three exactly
like it in the mouth-pieces of three Russian-appearing cigarettes. I played with my pipe, stared at the
Indian and tried to ride him with my stare. He looked as nervous as a brick
wall. “Okay, what does he want?” “He want you come quick. Come now. Come in
fiery—” “Nuts,” I said. The Indian liked that. He closed his mouth
slowly and winked an eye solemnly and then almost grinned. “Also it will cost him a hundred bucks as
a retainer,” I added, trying to look as if that was a nickel. “Huh?” Suspicious again. Stick to basic
English. “Hundred dollars,” I said. “Iron men.
Fish. Bucks to the number of one hundred. Me no money, me no come. Savvy?” I began
to count a hundred with both hands. “Huh. Big shot,” the Indian sneered. He worked under his greasy hatband and
threw another fold of tissue paper on the desk. I took it and unwound it. It
contained a brand new hundred-dollar bill. The Indian put his hat back on his head
without bothering to tuck the hatband back in place. It looked only slightly
more comic that way. I sat staring at the hundred-dollar bill, with my mouth
open. “Psychic is right,” I said at last. “A guy
that smart I’m afraid of.” “Not got all day,” the Indian remarked,
conversationally. I opened my desk and took out a Colt .38 automatic of the
type known as Super Match. I hadn’t worn it to visit Mrs. Lewin Lockridge
Grayle. I stripped my coat off and strapped the leather harness on and tucked
the automatic down inside it and strapped the lower strap and put my coat back
on again. This meant as much to the Indian as if I
had scratched my neck. “Gottum car,” he said. “Big car.” “I don’t like big cars any more,” I said.
“I gottum own car.” “You come my car,” the Indian said
threateningly. “I come your car,” I said. I locked the desk and office up, switched
the buzzer off and went out, leaving the reception room door unlocked as usual.
We went along the hall and down in the
elevator. The Indian smelled. Even the elevator operator noticed it. 21 The car was a dark blue seven-passenger
sedan, a Packard of the latest model, custom-built. It was the kind of car you
wear your rope pearls in. It was parked by a fire hydrant and a dark foreign-looking
chauffeur with a face of carved wood was behind the wheel. The interior was
upholstered in quilted gray chenille. The Indian put me in the back. Sitting
there alone I felt like a high-class corpse, laid out by an undertaker with a
lot of good taste. The Indian got in beside the chauffeur and
the car turned in the middle of the block and a cop across the street said:
“Hey,” weakly, as if he didn’t mean it, and then bent down quickly to tie his
shoe. We went west, dropped over to Sunset and slid
fast and noiselessly along that. The Indian sat motionless beside the
chauffeur. An occasional whiff of his personality drifted back to me. The
driver looked as if he was half asleep but he passed the fast boys in the
convertible sedans as though they were being towed. They turned on all the
green lights for him. Some drivers are like that. He never missed one. We curved through the bright mile or two
of the Strip, past the antique shops with famous screen names on them, past the
windows full of point lace and ancient pewter, past the gleaming new nightclubs
with famous chefs and equally famous gambling rooms, run by polished graduates
of the Purple Gang, past the Georgian-Colonial vogue, now old hat, past the
handsome modernistic buildings in which the Hollywood flesh-peddlers never stop
talking money, past a drive-in lunch which somehow didn’t belong, even though
the girls wore white silk blouses and drum majorettes’ shakos and nothing below
the hips but glazed kid Hessian boots. Past all this and down a wide smooth
curve to the bridle path of Beverly Hills and lights to the south, all colors
of the spectrum and crystal clear in an evening without fog, past the shadowed
mansions up on the hills to the north, past Beverly Hills altogether and up
into the twisting foothill boulevard and the sudden cool dusk and the drift of
wind from the sea. It had been a warm afternoon, but the heat
was gone. We whipped past a distant cluster of lighted buildings and an endless
series of lighted mansions, not too close to the road. We dipped down to skirt
a huge green polo field with another equally huge practice field beside it,
soared again to the top of a hill and swung mountainward up a steep hill road
of clean concrete that passed orange groves, some rich man’s pet because this
is not orange country, and then little by little the lighted windows of the
millionaires’ homes were gone and the road narrowed and this was Stillwood
Heights. The smell of sage drifted up from a canyon
and made me think of a dead man and a moonless sky. Straggly stucco houses were
molded flat to the side of the hill, like bas-reliefs. Then there were no more
houses, just the still dark foothills with an early star or two above them, and
the concrete ribbon of road and a sheer drop on one side into a tangle of scrub
oak and manzanita where sometimes you can hear the call of the quails if you
stop and keep still and wait. On the other side of the road was a raw clay bank
at the edge of which a few unbeatable wild flowers hung on like naughty children
that won’t go to bed. Then the road twisted into a hairpin and
the big tires scratched over loose stones, and the car tore less soundlessly up
a long driveway lined with the wild geraniums. At the top of this, faintly
lighted, lonely as a lighthouse, stood an aerie, an eagle’s nest, an angular
building of stucco and glass brick, raw and modernistic and yet not ugly and
altogether a swell place for a psychic consultant to hang out his shingle.
Nobody would be able to hear any screams. The car turned beside the house and a
light flicked on over a black door set into the heavy wall. The Indian climbed
out grunting and opened the rear door of the car. The chauffeur lit a cigarette
with an electric lighter and a harsh smell of tobacco came back to me softly in
the evening. I got out. We went over to the black door. It opened
of itself slowly, almost with menace. Beyond it a narrow hallway probed back
into the house. Light glowed from the glass brick walls. The Indian growled. “Huh. You go in, big
shot.” “After you, Mr. Planting.” He scowled and went in and the door closed
after us as silently and mysteriously as it had opened. At the end of the
narrow hallway we squeezed into a little elevator and the Indian closed the
door and pressed a button. We rose softly, without sound. Such smelling as the
Indian had done before was a moon-cast shadow to what he was doing now. The elevator stopped, the door opened.
There was light and I stepped out into a turret room where the day was still
trying to be remembered. There were windows all around it. Far off the sea
flickered. Darkness prowled slowly on the hills. There were paneled walls where
there were no windows, and rugs on the floor with the soft colors of old
Persians, and there was a reception desk that looked as if it had been made of
carvings stolen from an ancient church. And behind the desk a woman sat and
smiled at me, a dry tight withered smile that would turn to powder if you
touched it. She had sleek coiled hair and a dark,
thin, wasted Asiatic face. There were heavy colored stones in her ears and
heavy rings on her fingers, including a moonstone and an emerald in a silver
setting that may have been a real emerald but somehow managed to look as phony
as a dime store slave bracelet. And her hands were dry and dark and not young
and not fit for rings. She spoke. The voice was familiar. “Ah,
Meester Marlowe, so ver-ry good of you to come. Amthor he weel be so ver-ry
pleased.” I laid the hundred dollar bill the Indian
had given me down on the desk. I looked behind me. The Indian had gone down
again in the elevator. “Sorry. It was a nice thought, but I can’t
take this.” “Amthor he—he weesh to employ you, is it
not?” She smiled again. Her lips rustled like tissue paper. “I’d have to find out what the job is
first.” She nodded and got up slowly from behind
the desk. She swished before me in a tight dress that fitted her like a
mermaid’s skin and showed that she had a good figure if you like them four
sizes bigger below the waist. “I weel conduct you,” she said. She pressed a button in the paneling and a
door slid open noiselessly. There was a milky glow beyond it, I looked back at
her smile before I went through. It was older than Egypt now. The door slid
silently shut behind me. There was nobody in the room. It was octagonal, draped in black velvet
from floor to ceiling, with a high remote black ceiling that may have been of
velvet too. In the middle of a coal black lusterless rug stood an octagonal
white table, just large enough for two pairs of elbows and in the middle of it
a milk white globe on a black stand. The light came from this. How, I couldn’t
see. On either side of the table there was a white octagonal stool which was a
smaller edition of the table. Over against one wall there was one more such
stool. There were no windows. There was nothing else in the room, nothing at
all. On the walls there was not even a light fixture. If there were other
doors, I didn’t see them. I looked back at the one by which I had come in. I
couldn’t see that either. I stood there for perhaps fifteen seconds
with the faint obscure feeling of being watched. There was probably a peephole
somewhere, but I couldn’t spot it. I gave up trying. I listened to my breath.
The room was so still that I could hear it going through my nose, softly, like
little curtains rustling. Then an invisible door on the far side of
the room slid open and a man stepped through and the door closed behind him.
The man walked straight to the table with his head down and sat on one of the
octagonal stools and made a sweeping motion with one of the most beautiful
hands I have ever seen. “Please be seated. Opposite me. Do not
smoke and do not fidget. Try to relax, completely. Now how may I serve you?” I sat down, got a cigarette into my mouth
and rolled it along my lips without lighting it. I looked him over. He was
thin, tall and straight as a steel rod. He had the palest finest white hair I
ever saw. It could have been strained through silk gauze. His skin was as fresh
as a rose petal. He might have been thirty-five or sixty-five. He was ageless.
His hair was brushed straight back from as good a profile as Barrymore ever
had. His eyebrows were coal black, like the walls and ceiling and floor. His
eyes were deep, far too deep. They were the depthless drugged eyes of the
somnambulist. They were like a well I read about once. It was nine hundred
years old, in an old castle. You could drop a stone into it and wait. You could
listen and wait and then you would give up waiting and laugh and then just as
you were ready to turn away a faint, minute splash would come back up to you
from the bottom of that well, so tiny, so remote that you could hardly believe
a well like that possible. His eyes were deep like that. And they
were also eyes without expression, without soul, eyes that could watch lions
tear a man to pieces and never change, that could watch a man impaled and
screaming in the hot sun with his eyelids cut off. He wore a double-breasted black business
suit that had been cut by an artist. He stared vaguely at my fingers. “Please do not fidget,” he said. “It
breaks the waves, disturbs my concentration.” “It makes the ice melt, the butter run and
the cat squawk,” I said. He smiled the faintest smile in the world.
“You didn’t come here to be impertinent, I’m sure.” “You seem to forget why I did come. By the
way, I gave that hundred dollar bill back to your secretary. I came, as you may
recall, about some cigarettes. Russian cigarettes filled with marijuana. With
your card rolled in the hollow mouthpiece. “You wish to find out why that happened?” “Yeah. I ought to be paying you the
hundred dollars.” “That will not be necessary. The answer is
simple. There are things I do not know. This is one of them.” For a moment I almost believed him. His
face was as smooth as an angel’s wing. “Then why send me a hundred dollars—and a
tough Indian that stinks—and a car? By the way, does the Indian have to stink?
If he’s working for you, couldn’t you sort of get him to take a bath?” “He is a natural medium. They are
rare—like diamonds, and like diamonds, are sometimes found in dirty places. I
understand you are a private detective?” “Yes.” “I think you are a very stupid person. You
look stupid. You are in a stupid business. And you came here on a stupid mission.”
“I get it,” I said. “I’m stupid. It sank
in after a while.” “And I think I need not detain you any
longer.” “You’re not detaining me,” I said. “I’m
detaining you. I want to know why those cards were in those cigarettes.” He shrugged the smallest shrug that could
be shrugged. “My cards are available to anybody. I do not give my friends
marijuana cigarettes. Your question remains stupid.” “I wonder if this would brighten it up
any. The cigarettes were in a cheap Chinese or Japanese case of imitation
tortoiseshell. Ever see anything like that?” “No. Not that I recall.” “I can brighten it up a little more. The
case was in the pocket of a man named Lindsay Marriott. Ever hear of him?” He thought. “Yes. I tried at one time to
treat him for camera shyness. He was trying to get into pictures. It was a
waste of time. Pictures did not want him.” “I can guess that,” I said. “He would
photograph like Isadora Duncan. I’ve still got the big one left. Why did you
send me the C-note.” “My dear Mr. Marlowe,” he said coldly, “I
am no fool. I sin in a very sensitive profession. I am a quack. That is to say
I do things which the doctors in their small frightened selfish guild cannot
accomplish. I am in danger at all times—from people like you. I merely wish to
estimate the danger before dealing with it.” “Pretty trivial in my case, huh?” “It hardly exists,” he said politely and
made a peculiar motion with his left hand which made my eyes jump at it. Then
he put it down very slowly on the white table and looked at it. Then he raised
his depthless eyes again and folded his arms. “Your hearing—” “I smell it now,” I said. “I wasn’t
thinking of him.” I turned my head to the left. The Indian
was sitting on the third white stool against the black velvet. He had some kind of a white smock on him
over his other clothes. He was sitting without a movement, his eyes dosed, his
head bent forward a little, as if he had been asleep for an hour. His dark
strong face was full of shadows. I looked back at Amthor. He was smiling
his minute smile. “I bet that makes the dowagers shed their
false teeth,” I said. “What does he do for real money—sit on your knee and sing
French songs?” He made an impatient gesture. “Get to the
point, please.” “Last night Marriott hired me to go with
him on an expedition that involved paying some money to some crooks at a spot
they picked. I got knocked on the head. When I came out of it Marriott had been
murdered.” Nothing changed much in Amthor’s face. He
didn’t scream or run up the walls. But for him the reaction was sharp. He
unfolded his arms and refolded them the other way. His mouth looked grim. Then
he sat like a stone lion outside the Public Library. “The cigarettes were found on him,” I
said. He looked at me coolly. “But not by the
police, I take it. Since the police have not been here.” “Correct.” “The hundred dollars,” he said very
softly, “was hardly enough.” “That depends what you expect to buy with
it” “You have these cigarettes with you?” “One of them. But they don’t prove anything.
As you said, anybody could get your cards. I’m just wondering why they were
where they were. Any ideas?” “How well did you know Mr. Marriott?” he
asked softly. “Not at all. But I had ideas about him.
They were so obvious they stuck out.” Amthor tapped lightly on the white table.
The Indian still slept with his chin on his huge chest, his heavy-lidded eyes
tight shut. “By the way, did you ever meet a Mrs.
Grayle, a wealthy lady who lives in Bay City?” He nodded absently. “Yes, I treated her
centers of speech. She had a very slight impediment.” “You did a sweet job on her,” I said. “She
talks as good as I do.” That failed to amuse him. He still tapped
on the table. I listened to the taps. Something about them I didn’t like. They
sounded like a code. He stopped, folded his arms again and leaned back against
the air. “What I like about this job everybody
knows everybody,” I said. “Mrs. Grayle knew Marriott too.” “How did you find that out?” he asked
slowly. I didn’t say anything. “You will have to tell the police—about
those cigarettes,” he said. I shrugged. “You are wondering why I do not have you
thrown out,” Amthor said pleasantly. “Second Planting could break your neck
like a celery stalk. I am wondering myself. You seem to have some sort of theory.
Blackmail I do not pay. It buys nothing—and I have many friends. But naturally
there are certain elements which would like to show me in a bad light.
Psychiatrists, sex specialists, neurologists, nasty little men with rubber
hammers and shelves loaded with the literature of aberrations. And of course
they are all—doctors. While I am still a—quack. What is your theory?” I tried to stare him down, but it couldn’t
be done; I felt myself licking my lips. He shrugged lightly. “I can’t blame you
for wanting to keep it to yourself. This is a matter that I must give thought
to. Perhaps you are a much more intelligent man than I thought. I also make
mistakes. In the meantime—” He leaned forward and put a hand on each side of
the milky globe. “I think Marriott was a blackmailer of
women,” I said. “And finger man for a jewel mob. But who told him what women to
cultivate—so that he would know their comings and goings, get intimate with
them, make love to them, make them load up with the ice and take them out, and
then slip to a phone and tell the boys where to operate?” “That,” Amthor said carefully, “is your
picture of Marriott—and of me. I am slightly disgusted.” I leaned forward until my face was not
more than a foot from his. “You’re in a racket. Dress it up all you please and
it’s still a racket. And it wasn’t just the cards, Amthor. As you say, anybody
could get those. It wasn’t the marijuana. You wouldn’t be in a cheap line like
that—not with your chances. But on the back of each card there is a blank space.
And on blank spaces, or even on written ones, there is sometimes invisible
writing.” He smiled bleakly, but I hardly saw it.
His hands moved over the milky bowl. The light went out. The room was as black
as Carry Nation’s bonnet. 22 I kicked my stool back and stood up and
jerked the gun out of the holster under my arm. But it was no good. My coat was
buttoned and I was too slow. I’d have been too slow anyway, if it came to
shooting anybody. There was a soundless rush of air and an
earthy smell. In the complete darkness the Indian hit me from behind and pinned
my arms to my sides. He started to lift me. I could have got the gun out still
and fanned the room with blind shots, but I was a long way from friends. It
didn’t seem as if there was any point in it. I let go of the gun and took hold of his
wrists. They were greasy and hard to hold. The Indian breathed gutturally and
set me down with a jar that lifted the top of my head. He had my wrists now,
instead of me having his. He twisted them behind me fast and a knee like a
corner stone went into my back. He bent me. I can be bent. I’m not the City
Hall. He bent me. I tried to yell, for no reason at all.
Breath panted in my throat and couldn’t get out. The Indian threw me sideways
and got a body scissors on me as I fell. He had me in a barrel. His hands went
to my neck. Sometimes I wake up in the night. I feel them there and I smell the
smell of him. I feel the breath fighting and losing and the greasy fingers
digging in. Then I get up and take a drink and turn the radio on. I was just about gone when the light
flared on again, blood red, on account of the blood in my eyeballs and at the
back of them. A face floated around and a hand pawed me delicately, but the
other hands stayed on my throat. A voice said softly, “Let him breathe—a
little.” The fingers slackened. I wrenched loose
from them. Something that glinted hit me on the side of the jaw. The voice said softly: “Get him on his
feet.” The Indian got me on my feet. He pulled me
back against the wall, holding me by both twisted wrists. “Amateur,” the voice said softly and the
shiny thing that was as hard and bitter as death hit me again, across the face.
Something warm trickled. I licked at it and tasted iron and salt. A hand explored my wallet. A hand explored
all my pockets. The cigarette in tissue paper came out and was unwrapped. It
went somewhere in the haze that was in front of me. “There were three cigarettes?” the voice
said gently, and the shining thing hit my jaw again. “Three,” I gulped. “Just where did you say the others were?” “In my desk—at the office.” The shiny thing hit me again. “You are
probably lying—but I can find out.” Keys shone with funny little red lights in
front of me. The voice said: “Choke him a little more.” The iron fingers went into my throat. I
was strained back against him, against the smell of him and the hard muscles of
his stomach. I reached up and took one of his fingers and tried to twist it. The voice said softly: “Amazing. He’s
learning.” The glinting thing swayed through the air
again. It smacked my jaw, the thing that had once been my jaw. “Let him go. He’s tame,” the voice said. The heavy strong arms dropped away and I
swayed forward and took a step and steadied myself. Amthor stood smiling very
slightly, almost dreamily in front of me. He held my gun in his delicate,
lovely hand. He held it pointed at my chest. “I could teach you,” he said in his soft
voice. “But to what purpose? A dirty little man in a dirty little world. One
spot of brightness on you and you would still be that. Is it not so?” He
smiled, so beautifully. I swung at his smile with everything I had
left. It wasn’t so bad considering. He reeled
and blood came out of both his nostrils. Then he caught himself and
straightened up and lifted the gun again. “Sit down, my child,” he said softly. “I
have visitors coming. I am so glad you hit me. It helps a great deal.” I felt for the white stool and sat down
and put my head down on the white table beside the milky globe which was now
shining again softly. I stared at it sideways, my face on the table. The light
fascinated me. Nice light, nice soft light. Behind me and around me there was nothing
but silence. I think I went to sleep, just like that, with a bloody face on the
table, and a thin beautiful devil with my gun in his hand watching me and
smiling. 23 “All right,” the big one said. “You can
quit stalling now.” I opened my eyes and sat up. “Out in the other room, pally.” I stood up, still dreamy. We went
somewhere, through a door. Then I saw where it was—the reception room with the
windows all around. It was black dark now outside. The woman with the wrong rings sat at her
desk. A man stood beside her. “Sit here, pally.” He pushed me down. It was a nice chair,
straight but comfortable but I wasn’t in the mood for it. The woman behind the
desk had a notebook open and was reading out loud from it. A short elderly man
with a dead-pan expression and a gray mustache was listening to her. Amthor was standing by a window, with his
back to the room, looking out at the placid line of the ocean, far off, beyond
the pier lights, beyond the world. He looked at it as if he loved it. He half
turned his head to look at me once, and I could see that the blood had been
washed off his face, but his nose wasn’t the nose I had first met, not by two
sizes. That made me grin, cracked lips and all. “You got fun, pally?” I looked at what made the sound, what was
in front of me and what had helped me get where I was. He was a windblown
blossom of some two hundred pounds with freckled teeth and the mellow voice of
a circus barker. He was tough, fast and he ate red meat. Nobody could push him
around. He was the kind of cop who spits on his blackjack every night instead
of saying his prayers. But he had humorous eyes. He stood in front of me splay-legged,
holding my open wallet in his hand, making scratches on the leather with his
nails as if he just liked to spoil things. Little things, if they were all he
had. But probably faces would give him more fun. “Peeper, huh, pally? From the big bad
burg, huh? Little spot of blackmail, huh?” His hat was on the back of his head. He
had dusty brown hair darkened by sweat on his forehead. His humorous eyes were
flecked with red veins. My throat felt as though it had been
through a mangle. I reached up and felt it. That Indian. He had fingers like
pieces of tool steel. The dark woman stopped reading out of her
notebook and closed it. The elderly smallish man with the gray mustache nodded
and came over to stand behind the one who was talking to me. “Cops?” I asked, rubbing my chin. “What do you think, pally?” Policeman’s humor. The small one had a
cast in one eye, and it looked half blind. “Not L.A.,” I said, looking at him. “That
eye would retire him in Los Angeles.” The big man handed me my wallet. I looked
through it. I had all the money still. All the cards. It had everything that
belonged in it. I was surprised. “Say something, pally,” the big one said.
“Something that would make us get fond of you.” “Give me back my gun.” He leaned forward a little and thought. I
could see him thinking. It hurt his corns. “Oh, you want your gun, pally?” He
looked sideways at the one with the gray mustache. “He wants his gun,” he told
him. He looked at me again. “And what would you want your gun for, pally?” “I want to shoot an Indian.” “Oh, you want to shoot an Indian, pally.” “Yeah—just one Indian, pop.” He looked at the one with the mustache
again. “This guy is very tough,” he told him. “He wants to shoot an Indian.” “Listen, Hemingway, don’t repeat
everything I say,” I said. “I think the guy is nuts,” the big one
said. “He just called me Hemingway. Do you think he is nuts?” The one with the mustache bit a cigar and
said nothing. The tall beautiful man at the window turned slowly and said
softly: “I think possibly he is a little unbalanced.” “I can’t think of any reason why he should
call me Hemingway,” the big one said. “My name ain’t Hemingway.” The older man said: “I didn’t see a gun.” They looked at Amthor. Amthor said: “It’s
inside. I have it. I’ll give it to you, Mr. Blane.” The big man leaned down from his hips and
bent his knees a little and breathed in my face. “What for did you call me
Hemingway, pally?” “There are ladies present.” He straightened up again. “You see.” He
looked at the one with the mustache. The one with the mustache nodded and then
turned and walked away, across the room. The sliding door opened. He went in
and Amthor followed him. There was silence. The dark woman looked
down at the top of her desk and frowned. The big man looked at my right eyebrow
and slowly shook his head from side to side, wonderingly. The door opened again and the man with the
mustache came back. He picked a hat up from somewhere and handed it to me. He took
my gun out of his pocket and handed it to me. I knew by the weight it was
empty. I tucked it under my arm and stood up. The big man said: “Let’s go, pally. Away
from here. I think maybe a little air will help you to get straightened out.” “Okay, Hemingway.” “He’s doing that again,” the big man said
sadly. “Calling me Hemingway on account of there are ladies present. Would you
think that would be some kind of dirty crack in his book?” The man with the mustache said, “Hurry
up.” The big man took me by the arm and we went
over to the little elevator. It came up. We got into it. 24 At the bottom of the shaft we got out and
walked along the narrow hallway and out of the black door. It was crisp clear
air outside, high enough to be above the drift of foggy spray from the ocean. I
breathed deeply. The big man still had hold of my arm.
There was a car standing there, a plain dark sedan, with private plates. The big man opened the front door and
complained: “It ain’t really up to your class, pally. But a little air will set
you up fine. Would that be all right with you? We wouldn’t want to do anything
that you wouldn’t like us to do, pally.” “Where’s the Indian?” He shook his head a little and pushed me
into the car. I got into the right side of the front seat. “Oh, yeah, the
Indian,” he said. “You got to shoot him with a bow and arrow. That’s the law.
We got him in the back of the car.” I looked in the back of the car. It was
empty. “Hell, he ain’t there,” the big one said.
“Somebody must of glommed him off. You can’t leave nothing in a unlocked car
any more.” “Hurry up,” the man with the mustache
said, and got into the back seat. Hemingway went around and pushed his hard
stomach behind the wheel. He started the car. We turned and drifted off down the
driveway lined with wild geraniums. A cold wind lifted off the sea. The stars
were too far off. They said nothing. We reached the bottom of the drive and
turned out onto the concrete mountain road and drifted without haste along
that. “How come you don’t have a car with you,
pally?” “Amthor sent for me.” “Why would that be, pally?” “It must have been he wanted to see me.” “This guy is good,” Hemingway said. “He
figures things out.” He spit out of the side of the car and made a turn nicely
and let the car ride its motor down the hill. “He says you called him up on the
phone and tried to put the bite on him. So he figures he better have a look-see
what kind of guy he is doing business with—if he is doing business. So he sends
his own car.” “On account of he knows he is going to
call some cops he knows and I won’t need mine to get home with,” I said. “Okay,
Hemingway.” “Yeah, that again. Okay. Well he has a
Dictaphone under his table and his secretary takes it all down and when we come
she reads it back to Mister Blane here.” I turned and looked at Mister Blane. He
was smoking a cigar, peacefully, as though he had his slippers on. He didn’t
look at me. “Like hell she did,” I said. “More likely
a stock bunch of notes they had all fixed up for a case like that.” “Maybe you would like to tell us why you
wanted to see this guy,” Hemingway suggested politely. “You mean while I still have part of my
face?” “Aw, we ain’t those kind of boys at all,”
he said, with a large gesture. “You know Amthor pretty well, don’t you,
Hemingway?” “Mr. Blane kind of knows him. Me, I just
do what the orders is.” “Who the hell is Mister Blane?” “That’s the gentleman in the back seat.” “And besides being in the back seat who
the hell is he?” “Why, Jesus, everybody knows Mr. Blane.” “All right,” I said, suddenly feeling very
weary. There was a little more silence, more
curves, more winding ribbons of concrete, more darkness, and more pain. The big man said: “Now that we are all
between pals and no ladies present we really don’t give so much time to why you
went back up there, but this Hemingway stuff is what really has me down.” “A gag,” I said. “An old, old gag.” “Who is this Hemingway person at all?” “A guy that keeps saying the same thing
over and over until you begin to believe it must be good.” “That must take a hell of a long time,”
the big man said. “For a private dick you certainly have a wandering kind of
mind. Are you still wearing your own teeth?” “Yeah, with a few plugs in them.” “Well, you certainly have been lucky,
pally.” The man in the back seat said: “This is
all right. Turn right at the next.” “Check.” Hemingway swung the sedan into a narrow
dirt road that edged along the flank of a mountain. We drove along that about a
mile. The smell of the sage became overpowering. “Here,” the man in the back seat said. Hemingway stopped the car and set the
brake. He leaned across me and opened the door. “Well, it’s nice to have met you, pally.
But don’t come back. Anyways not on business. Out.” “I walk home from here?” The man in the back seat said: “Hurry up.”
“Yeah, you walk home from here, pally.
Will that be all right with you?” “Sure, it will give me time to think a few
things out. For instance you boys are not L.A. cops. But one of you is a cop,
maybe both of you. I’d say you are Bay City cops. I’m wondering why you were
out of your territory.” “Ain’t that going to be kind of hard to
prove, pally?” “Goodnight, Hemingway.” He didn’t answer. Neither of them spoke. I
started to get out of the car and put my foot on the running board and leaned
forward, still a little dizzy. The man in the back seat made a sudden
flashing movement that I sensed rather than saw. A pool of darkness opened at
my feet and was far, far deeper than the blackest night. I dived into it. It had no bottom. 25 The room was full of smoke. The smoke hung straight up in the air, in
thin lines, straight up and down like a curtain of small clear beads. Two
windows seemed to be open in an end wall, but the smoke didn’t move. I had
never seen the room before. There were bars across the windows. I was dull, without thought. I felt as if
I had slept for a year. But the smoke bothered me. I lay on my back and thought
about it. After a long time I took a deep breath that hurt my lungs. I yelled: “Fire!” That made me laugh. I didn’t know what was
funny about it but I began to laugh. I lay there on the bed and laughed. I
didn’t like the sound of the laugh. It was the laugh of a nut. The one yell was enough. Steps thumped
rapidly outside the room and a key was jammed into a lock and the door swung
open. A man jumped in sideways and shut the door after him. His right hand
reached toward his hip. He was a short thick man in a white coat.
His eyes had a queer look, black and flat. There were bulbs of gray skin at the
outer corners of them. I turned my head on the hard pillow and
yawned. “Don’t count that one, Jack. It slipped
out,” I said. He stood there scowling, his right hand hovering towards his
right hip. Greenish malignant face and flat black eyes and gray white skin and
nose that seemed just a shell. “Maybe you want some more strait-jacket,”
he sneered. “I’m fine, Jack. Just fine. Had a long
nap. Dreamed a little, I guess. Where am I?” “Where you belong.” “Seems like a nice place,” I said. “Nice
people, nice atmosphere. I guess I’ll have me a short nap again.” “Better be just that,” he snarled. He went out. The door shut. The lock
clicked. The steps growled into nothing. He hadn’t done the smoke any good. It
still hung there in the middle of the room, all across the room. Like a
curtain. It didn’t dissolve, didn’t float off, didn’t move. There was air in
the room, and I could feel it on my face. But the smoke couldn’t feel it. It
was a gray web woven by a thousand spiders. I wondered how they had got them to
work together. Cotton flannel pajamas. The kind they have
in the County Hospital. No front, not a stitch more than is essential. Coarse,
rough material. The neck chafed my throat. My throat was still sore. I began to
remember things. I reached up and felt the throat muscles. They were still
sore. Just one Indian, pop. Okay, Hemingway. So you want to be a detective?
Earn good money. Nine easy lessons. We provide badge. For fifty cents extra we
send you a truss. The throat felt sore but the fingers
feeling it didn’t feel anything. They might just as well have been a bunch of
bananas. I looked at them. They looked like fingers. No good. Mail order
fingers. They must have come with the badge and the truss. And the diploma. It was night. The world outside the
windows was a black world. A glass porcelain bowl hung from the middle of the
ceiling on three brass chains. There was light in it. It had little colored
lumps around the edge, orange and blue alternately. I stared at them. I was
tired of the smoke. As I stared they began to open up like little portholes and
heads popped out. Tiny heads, but alive, heads like the heads of small dolls,
but alive. There was a man in a yachting cap with a Johnnie Walker nose and a
fluffy blonde in a picture hat and a thin man with a crooked bow tie. He looked
like a waiter in a beach town flytrap. He opened his lips and sneered: “Would
you like your steak rare or medium, sir?” I closed my eyes tight and winked them
hard and when I opened them again it was just a sham porcelain bowl on three
brass chains. But the smoke still hung motionless in the
moving air. I took hold of the corner of a rough sheet and wiped the sweat off
my face with the numb fingers the correspondence school had sent me after the
nine easy lessons, one half in advance, Box Two Million Four Hundred and Sixty
Eight Thousand Nine Hundred and Twenty Four, Cedar City, Iowa. Nuts. Completely
nuts. I sat up on the bed and after a while I
could reach the floor with my feet. They were bare and they had pins and
needles in them. Notions counter on the left, madam. Extra large safety pins on
the right. The feet began to feel the floor. I stood up. Too far up. I crouched
over, breathing hard and held the side of the bed and a voice that seemed to
come from under the bed said over and over again: “You’ve got the dt’s… you’ve
got the dt’s… you’ve got the dt’s.” I started to walk, wobbling like a drunk.
There was a bottle of whiskey on a small white enamel table between the two
barred windows. It looked like a good shape. It looked about half full. I
walked towards it. There are a lot of nice people in the world, in spite. You
can crab over the morning paper and kick the shins of the guy in the next seat
at the movies and feel mean and discouraged and sneer at the politicians, but
there are a lot of nice people in the world just the same. Take the guy that
left that half bottle of whiskey there. He had a heart as big as one of Mae
West’s hips. I reached it and put both my half-numb
hands down on it and hauled it up to my mouth, sweating as if I was lifting the
end of the Golden Gate bridge. I took a long untidy drink. I put the
bottle down again, with infinite care. I tried to lick underneath my chin. The whiskey had a funny taste. While I was
realizing that it had a funny taste I saw a washbowl jammed into the corner of
the wall. I made it. I just made it. I vomited. Dizzy Dean never threw anything
harder. Time passed—an agony of nausea and
staggering and dazedness and clinging to the edge of the bowl and making animal
sounds for help. It passed. I staggered back to the bed and
lay down on my back again and lay there panting, watching the smoke. The smoke
wasn’t quite so clear. Not quite so real. Maybe it was just something back of
my eyes. And then quite suddenly it wasn’t there at all and the light from the
porcelain ceiling fixture etched the room sharply. I sat up again. There was a heavy wooden
chair against the wall near the door. There was another door besides the door
the man in the white coat had come in at. A closet door, probably. It might
even have my clothes in it. The floor was covered with green and gray linoleum
in squares. The walls were painted white. A clean room. The bed on which I sat
was a narrow iron hospital bed, lower than they usually are, and there were
thick leather straps with buckles attached to the sides, about where a man’s
wrists and ankles would be. It was a swell room—to get out of. I had feeling all over my body now,
soreness in my head and throat and in my arm. I couldn’t remember about the
arm. I rolled up the sleeve of the cotton pajama thing and looked at it
fuzzily. It was covered with pinpricks on the skin all the way from the elbow
to the shoulder. Around each was a small discolored patch, about the size of a
quarter. Dope. I had been shot full of dope to keep
me quiet. Perhaps scopolamine too, to make me talk. Too much dope for the time.
I was having the French fits coming out of it. Some do, some don’t. It all
depends how you are put together. Dope. That accounted for the smoke and the
little heads around the edge of the ceiling light and the voices and the screwy
thoughts and the straps and bars and the numb fingers and feet. The whiskey was
probably part of somebody’s forty-eight hour liquor cure. They had just left it
around so that I wouldn’t miss anything. I stood up and almost hit the opposite
wall with my stomach. That made me lie down and breathe very gently for quite a
long time. I was tingling all over now and sweating. I could feel little drops
of sweat form on my forehead and then slide slowly and carefully down the side
of my nose to the corner of my mouth. My tongue licked at them foolishly. I sat up once more and planted my feet on
the floor and stood up. “Okay, Marlowe,” I said between my teeth.
“You’re a tough guy. Six feet of iron man. One hundred and ninety pounds
stripped and with your face washed. Hard muscles and no glass jaw. You can take
it. You’ve been sapped down twice, had your throat choked and been beaten half
silly on the jaw with a gun barrel. You’ve been shot full of hop and kept under
it until you’re as crazy as two waltzing mice. And what does all that amount
to? Routine. Now let’s see you do something really tough, like putting your
pants on.” I lay down on the bed again. Time passed again. I don’t know how long.
I had no watch. They don’t make that kind of time in watches anyway. I sat up. This was getting to be stale. I
stood up and started to walk. No fun walking. Makes your heart jump like a
nervous cat. Better lie down and go back to sleep. Better take it easy for a
while. You’re in bad shape, pally. Okay, Hemingway. I’m weak. I couldn’t knock
over a flower vase. I couldn’t break a fingernail. Nothing doing. I’m walking. I’m tough. I’m
getting out of here. I lay down on the bed again. The fourth time was a little better. I got
across the room and back twice. I went over to the washbowl and rinsed it out
and leaned on it and drank water out of the palm of my hand. I kept it down. I
waited a little and drank more. Much better. I walked. I walked. I walked. Half an hour of walking and my knees were
shaking but my head was clear. I drank more water, a lot of water. I almost
cried into the bowl while I was drinking it. I walked back to the bed. It was a lovely
bed. It was made of roseleaves. It was the most beautiful bed in the world.
They had got it from Carole Lombard. It was too soft for her. It was worth the
rest of my life to lie down in it for two minutes. Beautiful soft bed,
beautiful sleep, beautiful eyes closing and lashes falling and the gentle sound
of breathing and darkness and rest sunk in deep pillows. I walked. They built the Pyramids and got tired of
them and pulled them down and ground the stone up to make concrete for Boulder
Dam and they built that and brought the water to the Sunny Southland and used
it to have a flood with. I walked all through it. I couldn’t be
bothered. I stopped walking. I was ready to talk to
somebody. 26 The closet door was locked. The heavy
chair was too heavy for me. It was meant to be. I stripped the sheets and pad
off the bed and dragged the mattress to one side. There was a mesh spring
underneath fastened top and bottom by coil springs of black enameled metal
about nine inches long. I went to work on one of them. It was the hardest work
I ever did. Ten minutes later I had two bleeding fingers and a loose spring. I
swung it. It had a nice balance. It was heavy. It had a whip to it. And when this was all done I looked across
at the whiskey bottle and it would have done just as well, and I had forgotten
all about it. I drank some more water. I rested a
little, sitting on the side of the bare springs. Then I went over to the door
and put my mouth against the hinge side and yelled: “Fire! Fire! Fire!” It was a short wait and a pleasant one. He
came running hard along the hallway outside and his key jammed viciously into
the lock and twisted hard. The door jumped open. I was flat against
the wall on the opening side. He had the sap out this time, a nice little tool
about five inches long, covered with woven brown leather. His eyes popped at
the stripped bed and then began to swing around. I giggled and socked him. I laid the coil
spring on the side of his head and he stumbled forward. I followed him down to
his knees. I hit him twice more He made a moaning sound. I took the sap out of
his limp hand. He whined. I used my knee on his face. It hurt my
knee. He didn’t tell me whether it hurt his face. While he was still groaning I
knocked him cold with the sap. I got the key from the outside of the door
and locked it from the inside and went through him. He had more keys. One of
them fitted my closet. In it my clothes hung. I went through my pockets. The
money was gone from my wallet. I went back to the man with the white coat. He
had too much money for his job. I took what I had started with and heaved him
on to the bed and strapped him wrist and ankle and stuffed half a yard of sheet
into his mouth. He had a smashed nose. I waited long enough to make sure he could
breathe through it. I was sorry for him. A simple hardworking
little guy trying to hold his job down and get his weekly pay check. Maybe with
a wife and kids. Too bad. And all he had to help him was a sap. It didn’t seem
fair. I put the doped whiskey down where he could reach it, if his hands hadn’t
been strapped. I patted his shoulder. I almost cried over
him. All my clothes, even my gun harness and
gun, but no shells in the gun, hung in the closet. I dressed with fumbling
fingers, yawning a great deal. The man on the bed rested. I left him
there and locked him in. Outside was a wide silent hallway with
three closed doors. No sounds came from behind any of them. A wine-colored
carpet crept down the middle and was as silent as the rest of the house. At the
end there was a jog in the hall and then another hall at right angles and the
head of a big old-fashioned staircase with white oak banisters. It curved
graciously down into the dim hall below. Two stained glass inner doors ended
the lower hall. It was tessellated and thick rugs lay on it. A crack of light
seeped past the edge of an almost closed door. But no sound at all. An old house, built as once they built
them and don’t build them any more. Standing probably on a quiet street with a
rose arbor at the side and plenty of flowers in front. Gracious and cool and
quiet in the bright California sun. And inside it who cares, but don’t let them
scream too loud. I had my foot out to go down the stairs
when I heard a man cough. That jerked me around and I saw there was a half open
door along the other hallway at the end. I tiptoed along the runner. I waited,
close to the partly open door, but not in it. A wedge of light lay at my feet
on the carpet. The man coughed again. It was a deep cough, from a deep chest.
It sounded peaceful and at ease. It was none of my business. My business was to
get out of there. But any man whose door could be open in that house interested
me. He would be a man of position, worth tipping your hat to. I sneaked a
little into the wedge of light. A newspaper rustled. I could see part of a room and it was
furnished like a room, not like a cell. There was a dark bureau with a hat on
it and some magazines. Windows with lace curtains, a good carpet. Bed springs creaked heavily. A big guy,
like his cough. I reached out fingertips and pushed the door an inch or two.
Nothing happened. Nothing ever was slower than my head craning in. I saw the
room now, the bed, and the man on it, the ashtray heaped with stubs that
overflowed on to a night table and from that to the carpet. A dozen mangled
newspapers all over the bed. One of them in a pair of huge hands before a huge
face. I saw the hair above the edge of the green paper. Dark, curly—black
even—and plenty of It. A line of white skin under it. The paper moved a little
more and I didn’t breathe and the man on the bed didn’t look up. He needed a shave. He would always need a
shave. I had seen him before, over on Central Avenue, in a Negro dive called
Florian’s. I had seen him in a loud suit with white golf balls on the coat and
a whiskey sour in his hand. And had seen him with an Army Colt looking like a
toy in his fist, stepping softly through a broken door. I had seen some of his
work and it was the kind of work that stays done. He coughed again and rolled his buttocks
on the bed and yawned bitterly and reached sideways for a frayed pack of
cigarettes on the night table. One of them went into his mouth. Light flared at
the end of his thumb. Smoke came out of his nose. “Ah,” he said, and the paper went up in
front of his face again. I left him there and went back along the
side hall. Mr. Moose Malloy seemed to be in very good hands. I went back to the
stairs and down. A voice murmured behind the almost closed
door. I waited for the answering voice. None. It was a telephone conversation.
I went over close to the door and listened. It was a low voice, a mere murmur.
Nothing carried that meant anything. There was finally a dry clicking sound.
Silence continued inside the room after that. This was the time to leave, to go far
away. So I pushed the door open and stepped quietly in. 27 It was an office, not small, not large,
with a neat professional look. A glass-doored bookcase with heavy books inside.
A first aid cabinet on the wall. A white enamel and glass sterilizing cabinet
with a lot of hypodermic needles and syringes inside it being cooked. A wide
flat desk with a blotter on it, a bronze paper cutter, a pen set, an
appointment book, very little else, except the elbows of a man who sat brooding,
with his face in his hands. Between the spread yellow fingers I saw
hair the color of wet brown sand, so smooth that it appeared to be painted on
his skull. I took three more steps and his eyes must have looked beyond the
desk and seen my shoes move. His head came up and he looked at me. Sunken
colorless eyes in a parchment-like face. He unclasped his hands and leaned back
slowly and looked at me with no expression at all. Then he spread his hands with a sort of
helpless but disapproving gesture and when they came to rest again, one of them
was very close to the corner of the desk. I took two steps more and showed him the
blackjack. His index and second finger still moved towards the corner of the
desk. “The buzzer,” I said, “won’t buy you
anything tonight. I put your tough boy to sleep.” His eyes got sleepy. “You have been a very
sick man, air. A very sick man. I can’t recommend your being up and about yet.”
I said: “The right hand.” I snapped the
blackjack at it. It coiled into itself like a wounded snake. I went around the desk grinning without
there being anything to grin at. He had a gun in the drawer of course. They
always have a gun in the drawer and they always get it too late, if they get it
at all. I took it out. It was a .38 automatic, a standard model not as good as
mine, but I could use its ammunition. There didn’t seem to be any in the
drawer. I started to break the magazine out of his. He moved vaguely, his eyes still sunken
and sad. “Maybe you’ve got another buzzer under the
carpet,” I said. “Maybe it rings in the Chief’s office down at headquarters.
Don’t use it. Just for an hour I’m a very tough guy. Anybody comes in that door
is walking into a coffin.” “There is no buzzer under the carpet,” he
said. His voice had the slightest possible foreign accent. I got his magazine out and my empty one
and changed them. I ejected the shell that was in the chamber of his gun and
let it lie. I jacked one up into the chamber of mine and went back to the other
side of the desk again. There was a spring lock on the door. I
backed towards it and pushed it shut and heard the lock click. There was also a
bolt. I turned that. I went back to the desk and sat in a
chair. It took my last ounce of strength. “Whiskey,” I said. He began to move his hands around. “Whiskey,” I said. He went to the medicine cabinet and got a
flat bottle with a green revenue stamp on it and a glass. “Two glasses,” I said. “I tried your
whiskey once. I damn near hit Catalina Island with it.” He brought two small glasses and broke the
seal and filled the two glasses. “You first,” I said. He smiled faintly and raised one of the
glasses. “Your health, sir—what remains of it.” He
drank. I drank. I reached for the bottle and stood it near me and waited for
the heat to get to my heart. My heart began to pound, but it was back up in my
chest again, not hanging on a shoelace. “I had a nightmare,” I said. “Silly idea.
I dreamed I was tied to a cot and shot full of dope and locked in a barred
room. I got very weak. I slept. I had no food. I was a sick man. I was knocked
on the head and brought into a place where they did that to me. They took a lot
of trouble. I’m not that important.” He said nothing. He watched me. There was
a remote speculation in his eyes, as if he wondered how long I would live. “I woke up and the room was full of
smoke,” I said. “It was just a hallucination, irritation of the optic nerve or
whatever a guy like you would call it. Instead of pink snakes I had smoke. So I
yelled and a toughie in a white coat came and showed me a blackjack. It took me
a long time to get ready to take it away from him. I got his keys and my
clothes and even took my money out of his pocket. So here I am. All cured. What
were you saying?” “I made no remark,” he said. “Remarks want you to make them,” I said.
“They have their tongues hanging out waiting to be said. This thing here—” I
waved the blackjack lightly, “is a persuader. I had to borrow it from a guy.” “Please give it to me at once,” he said
with a smile you would get to love. It was like the executioner’s smile when he
comes to your cell to measure you for the drop. A little friendly, a little
paternal, and a little cautious at the same time. You would get to love it if
there was any way you could live long enough. I dropped the blackjack into his palm, his
left palm. “Now the gun, please,” he said softly.
“You have been a very sick man, Mr. Marlowe. I think I shall have to insist
that you go back to bed.” I stared at him. “I am Dr. Sonderborg,” he said, “and I
don’t want any nonsense.” He laid the blackjack down on the desk in
front of him. His smile was as stiff as a frozen fish. His long fingers made
movements like dying butterflies. “The gun, please,” he said softly. “I
advise strongly—” “What time is it, warden?” He looked mildly surprised. I had my
wristwatch on now, but it had run down. “It is almost midnight. Why?” “What day is it?” “Why, my dear sir—Sunday evening, of
course.” I steadied myself on the desk and tried to
think and held the gun close enough to him so that he might try and grab it. “That’s over forty-eight hours. No wonder
I had fits. Who brought me here?” He stared at me and his left hand began to
edge towards the gun. He belonged to the Wandering Hand Society. The girls
would have had a time with him. “Don’t make me get tough,” I whined.
“Don’t make me lose my beautiful manners and my flawless English. Just tell me
how I got here.” He had courage. He grabbed for the gun. It
wasn’t where he grabbed. I sat back and put it in my lap. He reddened and grabbed for the whiskey
and poured himself another drink and downed it fast. He drew a deep breath and
shuddered. He didn’t like the taste of liquor. Dopers never do. “You will be arrested at once, if you
leave here,” he said sharply. “You were properly committed by an officer of the
law—” “Officers of the law can’t do it.” That jarred him, a little. His yellowish
face began to work. “Shake it up and pour it,” I said. “Who
put me in here, why and how? I’m in a wild mood tonight. I want to go dance in
the foam. I hear the banshees calling. I haven’t shot a man in a week. Speak
out, Dr. Fell. Pluck the antique viol, let the soft music float.” “You are suffering from narcotic
poisoning,” he said coldly. “You very nearly died. I had to give you digitalis
three times. You fought, you screamed, you had to be restrained.” His words
were coming so fast they were leap-frogging themselves. “If you leave my
hospital in this condition, you will get into serious trouble.” “Did you say you were a doctor—a medical
doctor?” “Certainly. I am Dr. Sonderborg, as I told
you.” “You don’t scream and fight from narcotic
poisoning. You just lie in a coma. Try again. And skim it. All I want is the
cream. Who put me in your private funny house?” “But—” “But me no buts. I’ll make a sop of you.
I’ll drown you in a butt of Maimsey wine. I wish I had a butt of Malmsey wine
myself to drown in. Shakespeare. He knew his liquor too. Let’s have a little of
our medicine.” I reached for his glass and poured us a couple more. “Get on
with it, Karloff.” “The police put you in here.” “What police?” “The Bay City police naturally.” His
restless yellow fingers twisted his glass. “This is Bay City.” “Oh. Did this police have a name?” “A Sergeant Galbraith, I believe. Not a
regular patrol car officer. He and another officer found you wandering outside
the house in a dazed condition on Friday night. They brought you in because
this place was close. I thought you were an addict who had taken an overdose.
But perhaps I was wrong.” “It’s a good story. I couldn’t prove it
wrong. But why keep me here?” He spread his restless hands. “I have told
you again and again that you were a very sick man and still are. What would you
expect me to do?” “I must owe you some money then.” He shrugged. “Naturally. Two hundred
dollars.” I pushed my chair back a little. “Dirt
cheap. Try and get it.” “If you leave here,” he said sharply, “you
will be arrested at once.” I leaned back over the desk and breathed
in his face. “Not just for going out of here, Karloff. Open that wall safe.” He stood up in a smooth lunge, “This has
gone quite far enough.” “You won’t open it?” “I most certainly will not open it.” “This is a gun I’m holding.” He smiled, narrowly and bitterly. “It’s an awful big safe,” I said. “New
too. This is a fine gun. You won’t open it?” Nothing changed in his face. “Damn it,” I said. “When you have a gun in
your hand, people are supposed to do anything you tell them to. It doesn’t
work, does it?” He smiled. His smile held a sadistic
pleasure. I was slipping back. I was going to collapse. I staggered at the desk and he waited, his
lips parted softly. I stood leaning there for a long moment,
staring into his eyes. Then I grinned. The smile fell off his face like a
soiled rag. Sweat stood out on his forehead. “So long,” I said. “I leave you to dirtier
hands than mine.” I backed to the door and opened it and
went out. The front doors were unlocked. There was a
roofed porch. The garden hummed with flowers. There was a white picket fence
and a gate. The house was on a corner. It was a cool, moist night, no moon. The sign on the corner said Descanso
Street. Houses were lighted down the block. I listened for sirens. None came.
The other sign said Twenty-third Street. I plowed over to Twenty-fifth Street
and started towards the eight-hundred block. No. 819 was Anne Riordan’s number.
Sanctuary. I had walked a long time before I realized
that I was still holding the gun in my hand. And I had heard no sirens. I kept on walking. The air did me good,
but the whiskey was dying, and it writhed as it died. The block had fir trees
along it, and brick houses, and looked like Capitol Hill in Seattle more than
Southern California. There was a light still in No. 819. It had
a white porte-cochere, very tiny, pressed against a tall cypress hedge. There
were rose bushes in front of the house. I went up the walk. I listened before I
pushed the bell. Still no sirens wailing. The bell chimed and after a little
while a voice croaked through one of those electrical contraptions that let you
talk with your front door locked. “What is it, please?” “Marlowe.” Maybe her breath caught, maybe the
electrical thing just made that sound being shut off. The door opened wide and Miss Anne Riordan
stood there in a pale green slack suit looking at me. Her eyes went wide and
scared. Her face under the glare of the porch light was suddenly pale. “My God,” she wailed. “You look like
Hamlet’s father!” 28 The living room had a tan figured rug,
white and rose chairs, a black marble fireplace with very tall brass andirons,
high bookcases built back into the walls, and rough cream drapes against the
lowered venetian blinds. There was nothing womanish in the room
except a full-length mirror with a clear sweep of floor in front of it. I was half-sitting and half-lying in a
deep chair with my legs on a footstool. I had had two cups of black coffee,
then I had had a drink, then I had had two soft-boiled eggs and a slice of
toast broken into them, then some more black coffee with brandy laced in it. I
had had all this in the breakfast room, but I couldn’t remember what it looked
like any more. It was too long ago. I was in good shape again. I was almost
sober and my stomach was bunting towards third base instead of trying for the
centerfield flagpole. Anne Riordan sat opposite me, leaning
forward, her neat chin cupped in her neat hand, her eyes dark and shadowy under
the fluffed out reddish-brown hair. There was a pencil stuck through her hair.
She looked worried. I had told her some of it, but not all. Especially about
Moose Malloy I had not told her. “I thought you were drunk,” she said. “I
thought you had to be drunk before you came to see me. I thought you had been
out with that blonde. I thought—I don’t know what I thought.” “I bet you didn’t get all this writing,” I
said, looking around. “Not even if you got paid for what you thought you
thought.” “And my dad didn’t get it grafting on the
cops either,” she said. “Like that fat slob they have for chief of police
nowadays.” “It’s none of my business,” I said. She said: “We had some lots at Del Rey.
Just sand lots they suckered him for. And they turned out to be oil lots.” I nodded and drank out of the nice crystal
glass I was holding. What was in it had a nice warm taste. “A fellow could settle down here,” I said.
“Move right in. Everything set for him.” “If he was that kind of fellow. And
anybody wanted him to,” she said. “No butler,” I said. “That makes it
tough.” She flushed. “But you—you’d rather get
your head beaten to a pulp and your arm riddled with dope needles and your chin
used for a backboard in a basketball game. God knows there’s enough of it.” I didn’t say anything. I was too tired. “At least,” she said, “you had the brains
to look in those mouthpieces. The way you talked over on Aster Drive I thought
you had missed the whole thing.” “Those cards don’t mean anything.” Her eyes snapped at me. “You sit there and
tell me that after the man had you beaten up by a couple of crooked policemen
and thrown in a two-day liquor cure to teach you to mind your own business? Why
the thing stands out so far you could break off a yard of it and still have
enough left for a baseball bat.” “I ought to have said that one,” I said.
“Just my style. Crude. What sticks out?” “That this elegant psychic person is
nothing but a high-class mobster. He picks the prospects and milks the minds
and then tells the rough boys to go out and get the jewels.” “You really think that?” She stared at me. I finished my glass and
got my weak look on my face again. She ignored it. “Of course I think it,” she said. “And so
do you.” “I think it’s a little more complicated
than that.” Her smile was cozy and acid at the same
time. “I beg your pardon. I forgot for the moment you were a detective. It
would have to be complicated, wouldn’t it? I suppose there’s a sort of
indecency about a simple case.” “It’s more complicated than that,” I said.
“All right. I’m listening.” “I don’t know. I just think so. Can I have
one more drink?” She stood up. “You know, you’ll have to
taste water sometime, just for the hell of it.” She came over and took my
glass. “This is going to be the last.” She went out of the room and somewhere
ice cubes tinkled and I closed my eyes and listened to the small unimportant
sounds. I had no business coming here. If they knew as much about me as I
suspected, they might come here looking. That would be a mess. She came back with the glass and her
fingers cold from holding the cold glass touched mine and I held them for a moment
and then let them go slowly as you let go of a dream when you wake with the sun
in your face and have been in an enchanted valley. She flushed and went back to her chair and
sat down and made a lot of business of arranging herself in it. She lit a cigarette, watching me drink. “Amthor’s a pretty ruthless sort of lad,”
I said. “But I don’t somehow see him as the brain guy of a jewel mob. Perhaps
I’m wrong. If he was and he thought I had something on him, I don’t think I’d
have got out of that dope hospital alive. But he’s a man who has things to
fear. He didn’t get really tough until I began to babble about invisible
writing.” She looked at me evenly. “Was there some?”
I grinned. “If there was, I didn’t read
it.” “That’s a funny way to hide nasty remarks
about a person, don’t you think? In the mouthpieces of cigarettes. Suppose they
were never found.” “I think the point is that Marriott feared
something and that if anything happened to him, the cards would be found. The
police would go over anything in his pockets with a fine-tooth comb. That’s
what bothers me. If Amthor’s a crook, nothing would have been left to find.” “You mean if Amthor murdered him—or had
him murdered? But what Marriott knew about Amthor may not have had any direct
connection with the murder.” I leaned back and pressed my back into the
chair and finished my drink and made believe I was thinking that over. I
nodded. “But the jewel robbery had a connection
with the murder. And we’re assuming Amthor had a connection with the jewel
robbery.” Her eyes were a little sly, “I bet you
feel awful,” she said. “Wouldn’t you like to go to bed?” “Here?” She flushed to the roots of her hair. Her
chin stuck out. “That was the idea. I’m not a child. Who the devil cares what I
do or when or how?” I put my glass aside and stood up. “One of
my rare moments of delicacy is coming over me,” I said. “Will you drive me to a
taxi stand, if you’re not too tired?” “You damned sap,” she said angrily.
“You’ve been beaten to a pulp and shot full of God knows how many kinds of
narcotics and I suppose all you need is a night’s sleep to get up bright and
early and start out being a detective again.” “I thought I’d sleep a little late.” “You ought to be in a hospital, you damn
fool!” I shuddered. “Listen,” I said. “I’m not
very clear-headed tonight and I don’t think I ought to linger around here too
long. I haven’t a thing on any of these people that I could prove, but they
seem to dislike me. Whatever I might say would be my word against the law, and
the law in this town seems to be pretty rotten.” “It’s a nice town,” she said sharply, a
little breathlessly. “You can’t judge—” “Okay, it’s a nice town. So is Chicago.
You could live there a long time and not see a Tommy gun. Sure, it’s a nice
town. It’s probably no crookeder than Los Angeles. But you can only buy a piece
of a big city. You can buy a town this size all complete, with the original box
and tissue paper. That’s the difference. And that makes me want out.” She stood up and pushed her chin at me. “You’ll
go bed now and right here. I have a spare bedroom and you can turn right in
and—” “Promise to lock your door?” She flushed and bit her lip “Sometimes I
think you’re a world-beater,” she said, “and sometimes I think you’re worst
heel I ever met.” “On either count would you run me over to
where I can get a taxi?” “You’ll stay here,” she snapped. “You’re
not fit. You’re a sick man.” “I’m not too sick to have my brain
picked,” I said nastily. She ran out of the room so fast she almost
tripped over the two steps from the living room up to the hall. She came back
in nothing flat with a long flannel coat on over her slack suit and no hat and
her reddish hair looking as mad as her face. She opened a side door and threw
it away from her, bounced through it and her steps clattered on the driveway. A
garage door made a faint sound lifting. A car door opened and slammed shut
again. The starter ground and the motor caught and the lights flared past the
open french door of the living room. I picked my hat out of a chair and
switched off a couple of lamps and saw that the french door had a Yale lock. I
looked back a moment before I closed the door. It was a nice room. It would be
a nice room to wear slippers in. I shut the door and the little car slid up
beside me and I went around behind it to get in. She drove me all the way home,
tight-lipped, angry. She drove like a fury. When I got out in front of my
apartment house she said goodnight in a frosty voice and swirled the little car
in the middle of the street and was gone before I could get my keys out of my
pocket. They locked the lobby door at eleven. I
unlocked it and passed into the always musty lobby and along to the stairs and
the elevator. I rode up to my floor. Bleak light shone along it. Milk bottles
stood in front of service doors. The red fire door loomed at the back. It had
an open screen that let in a lazy trickle of air that never quite swept the
cooking smell out. I was home in a sleeping world, a world as harmless as a
sleeping cat. I unlocked the door of my apartment and
went in and sniffed the smell of it, just standing there, against the door for
a little while before I put the light on. A homely smell, a smell of dust and
tobacco smoke, the smell of a world where men live, and keep on living. I undressed and went to bed. I had
nightmares and woke out of them sweating. But in the morning I was a well man
again. 29 I was sitting on the side of my bed in my
pajamas, thinking about getting up, but not yet committed. I didn’t feel very
well, but I didn’t feel as sick as I ought to, not as sick as I would feel if I
had a salaried job. My head hurt and felt large and hot and my tongue was dry
and had gravel on it and my throat was stiff and my jaw was not untender. But I
had had worse mornings. It was a gray morning with high fog, not
yet warm but likely to be. I heaved up off the bed and rubbed the pit of my
stomach where it was sore from vomiting. My left foot felt fine. It didn’t have
an ache in it. So I had to kick the corner of the bed with it. I was still swearing when there was a
sharp tap at the door, the kind of bossy knock that makes you want to open the
door two inches, emit the succulent raspberry and slam it again. I opened it a little wider than two
inches. Detective-Lieutenant Randall stood there, in a brown gabardine suit,
with a pork pie lightweight felt on his head, very neat and clean and solemn
and with a nasty look in his eye. He pushed the door slightly and I stepped
away from it. He came in and closed it and looked around. “I’ve been looking
for you for two days,” he said. He didn’t look at me. His eyes measured the
room. “I’ve been sick.” He walked around with a light springy
step, his creamy gray hair shining, his hat under his arm now, his hands in his
pockets. He wasn’t a very big man for a cop. He took one hand out of his pocket
and placed the hat carefully on top of some magazines. “Not here,” he said. “In a hospital.” “Which hospital?” “A pet hospital.” He jerked as if I had slapped his face.
Dull color showed behind his skin. “A little early in the day, isn’t it—for
that sort of thing?” I didn’t say anything. I lit a cigarette.
I took one draw on it and sat down on the bed again, quickly. “No cure for lads like you, is there?” he
said. “Except to throw you in the sneezer.” “I’ve been a sick man and I haven’t had my
morning coffee. You can’t expect a very high grade of wit.” “I told you not to work on this case.” “You’re not God. You’re not even Jesus
Christ.” I took another drag on the cigarette. Somewhere down inside me felt
raw, but I liked it a little better. “You’d be amazed how much trouble I could
make you.” “Probably.” “Do you know why I haven’t done it so
far?” “Yeah.” “Why?” He was leaning over a little, sharp
as a terrier, with that stony look in his eyes they all get sooner or later. “You couldn’t find me.” He leaned back and rocked on his heels.
His face shone a little. “I thought you were going to say something else,” he
said. “And if you said it, I was going to smack you on the button.” “Twenty million dollars wouldn’t scare
you. But you might get orders.” He breathed hard, with his mouth a little
open. Very slowly he got a package of cigarettes out of his pocket and tore the
wrapper. His fingers were trembling a little. He put a cigarette between his
lips and went over to my magazine table for a match folder. He lit the
cigarette carefully, put the match in the ashtray and not on the floor, and
inhaled. “I gave you some advice over the telephone
the other day,” he said. “Thursday.” “Friday.” “Yes—Friday. It didn’t take. I can
understand why. But I didn’t know at that time you had been holding out
evidence. I was just recommending a line of action that seemed like a good idea
in this case.” “What evidence?” He stared at me silently. “Will you have some coffee?” I asked. “It
might make you human.” “No.” “I will.” I stood up and started for the
kitchenette. “Sit down,” Randall snapped. “I’m far from
through.” I kept on going out to the kitchenette,
ran some water into the kettle and put it on the stove. I took a drink of cold
water from the faucet, then another. I came back with a third glass in my hand
to stand in the doorway and look at him. He hadn’t moved. The veil of his smoke
was almost a solid thing to one side of him. He was looking at the floor. “Why was it wrong to go to Mrs. Grayle
when she sent for me?” I asked. “I wasn’t talking about that.” “Yeah, but you were just before.” “She didn’t send for you.” His eyes lifted
and had the stony look still. And the flush still dyed his sharp cheekbones.
“You forced yourself on her and talked about scandal and practically
blackmailed yourself into a job.” “Funny. As I remember it, we didn’t even
talk job. I didn’t think there was anything in her story. I mean, anything to
get my teeth into. Nowhere to start. And of course I suppose she had already
told it to you.” “She had. That beer joint on Santa Monica
is a crook hideout. But that doesn’t mean anything. I couldn’t get a thing
there. The hotel across the street smells too. Nobody we want. Cheap punks.” “She tell you I forced myself on her?” He dropped his eyes a little. “No.” I grinned. “Have some coffee?” “No.” I went back into the kitchenette and made
the coffee and waited for it to drip. Randall followed me out this time and
stood in the doorway himself. “This jewel gang has been working in
Hollywood and around for a good ten years to my knowledge,” he said. “They went
too far this time. They killed a man. I think I know why.” “Well, if it’s a gang job and you break
it, that will be the first gang murder solved since I lived in the town. And I
could name and describe at least a dozen.” “It’s nice of you to say that, Marlowe.” “Correct me if I’m wrong.” “Damn it,” he said irritably. “You’re not
wrong. There were a couple solved for the record, but they were just rappers.
Some punk took it for the high pillow.” “Yeah. Coffee?” “If I drink some, will you talk to me
decently, man to man, without wise-cracking?” “I’ll try. I don’t promise to spill all my
ideas.” “I can do without those,” he said acidly. “That’s a nice suit you’re wearing.” The flush dyed his face again. “This suit
cost twenty seven-fifty,” he snapped. “Oh Christ, a sensitive cop,” I said, and
went back to the stove. “That smells good. How do you make it?” I poured. “French drip. Coarse ground
coffee. No filter papers.” I got the sugar from the closet and the cream from
the refrigerator. We sat down on opposite sides of the nook. “Was that a gag, about your being sick, in
a hospital?” “No gag. I ran into a little trouble—down
in Bay City. They took me in. Not the cooler, a private dope and liquor cure.” His eyes got distant. “Bay City, eh? You
like it the hard way, don’t you, Marlowe?” “It’s not that I like it the hard way.
It’s that I get it that way. But nothing like this before. I’ve been sapped
twice, the second time by a police officer or a man who looked like one and
claimed to be one. I’ve been beaten with my own gun and choked by a tough
Indian. I’ve been thrown unconscious into this dope hospital and kept there
locked up and part of the time probably strapped down. And I couldn’t prove any
of it, except that I actually do have quite a nice collection of bruises and my
left arm has been needled plenty.” He stared hard at the corner of the table.
“In Bay City,” he said slowly. “The name’s like a song. A song in a dirty
bathtub.” “What were you doing down there?” “I didn’t go down there. These cops took
me over the line. I went to see a guy in Stillwood Heights. That’s in LA.” “A man named Jules Amthor,” he said
quietly. “Why did you swipe those cigarettes?” I looked into my cup. The damned little
fool. “It looked funny, him—Marriott—having that extra case. With reefers in
it. It seems they make them up like Russian cigarettes down in Bay City with
hollow mouthpieces and the Romanoff arms and everything.” He pushed his empty cup at me and I
refilled it. His eyes were going over my face line by line, corpuscle by
corpuscle, like Sherlock Holmes with his magnifying glass or Thorndyke with his
pocket lens. “You ought to have told me,” he said
bitterly. He sipped and wiped his lips with one of those fringed things they
give you in apartment houses for napkins. “But you didn’t swipe them. The girl
told me.” “Aw well, hell,” I said. “A guy never gets
to do anything in this country any more. Always women.” “She likes you,” Randall said, like a
polite FBI man in a movie, a little sad, but very manly. “Her old man was as
straight a cop as ever lost a job. She had no business taking those things. She
likes you.” “She’s a nice girl. Not my type.” “You don’t like them nice?” He had another
cigarette going. The smoke was being fanned away from his face by his hand. “I like smooth shiny girls, hardboiled and
loaded with sin.” “They take you to the cleaners,” Randall
said indifferently. “Sure. Where else have I ever been? What
do you call this session?” He smiled his first smile of the day. He
probably allowed himself four. “I’m not getting much out of you,” he
said. “I’ll give you a theory, but you are
probably way ahead of me on it. This Marriott was a blackmailer of women,
because Mrs. Grayle just about told me so. But he was something else. He was
the finger man for the jewel mob. The society finger, the boy who would
cultivate the victim and set the stage. He would cultivate women he could take
out, get to know them pretty well. Take this holdup a week from Thursday. It
smells. If Marriott hadn’t been driving the car, or hadn’t taken Mrs. Grayle to
the Troc or hadn’t gone home the way he did, past that beer parlor, the holdup
couldn’t have been brought off.” “The chauffeur could have been driving,”
Randall said reasonably. “But that wouldn’t have changed things much.
Chauffeurs are not getting themselves pushed in the face with lead bullets by
holdup men—for ninety a month. But there couldn’t be many stick-ups with
Marriott alone with women or things would get talked about.” “The whole point of this kind of racket is
that things are not talked about,” I said. “In consideration for that the stuff
is sold back cheap.” Randall leaned back and shook his head.
“You’ll have to do better than that to interest me. Women talk about anything.
It would get around that this Marriott was a kind of tricky guy to go out
with.” “It probably did. That’s why they knocked
him off.” Randall stared at me woodenly. His spoon
was stirring air in an empty cup. I reached over and he waved the pot aside.
“Go on with that one,” he said. “They used him up. His usefulness was
exhausted. It was about time for him to get talked about a little, as you
suggest. But you don’t quit in those rackets and you don’t get your time. So
this last holdup was just that for him—the last. Look, they really asked very
little for the jade considering its value. And Marriott handled the contact.
But all the same Marriott was scared. At the last moment he thought he had
better not go alone. And he figured a little trick that if anything did happen
to him, something on him would point to a man, a man quite ruthless and clever
enough to be the brains of that sort of mob, and a man in an unusual position
to get information about rich women. It was a childish sort of trick but it did
actually work.” Randall shook his head. “A gang would have
stripped him, perhaps even have taken the body out to sea and dumped it.” “No. They wanted the job to look
amateurish. They wanted to stay in business. They probably have another finger
lined up,” I said. Randall still shook his head. “The man
these cigarettes pointed to is not the type. He has a good racket of his own.
I’ve inquired. What did you think of him?” His eyes were too blank, much too blank. I
said: “He looked pretty damned deadly to me. And there’s no such thing as too
much money, is there? And after all his psychic racket is a temporary racket
for any one place. He has a vogue and everybody goes to him and after a while
the vogue dies down and the business is licking its shoes. That is, if he’s a
psychic and nothing else. Just like movie stars. Give him five years. He could
work it that long. But give him a couple of ways to use the information he must
get out of these women and he’s going to make a killing.” “I’ll look him up more thoroughly,”
Randall said with the blank look. “But right now I’m more interested in
Marriott. Let’s go back farther—much farther. To how you got to know him.” “He just called me up. Picked my name out
of the phone book. He said so, at any rate.” “He had your card.” I looked surprised. “Sure. I’d forgotten
that.” “Did you ever wonder why he picked your
name—ignoring that matter of your short memory?” I stared at him across the top of my
coffee cup. I was beginning to like him. He had a lot behind his vest besides
his shirt. “So that’s what you really came up for?” I
said. He nodded. “The rest, you know, is just talk.”
He smiled politely at me and waited. I poured some more coffee. Randall leaned over sideways and looked
along the cream-colored surface of the table. “A little dust,” he said
absently, then straightened up and looked me in the eye. “Perhaps I ought to go at this in a little
different way,” he said. “For instance, I think your hunch about Marriott is
probably right. There’s twenty-three grand in currency in his safe-deposit
box—which we had a hell of a time to locate, by the way. There are also some
pretty fair bonds and a trust deed to a property on West Fifty-fourth Place.” He picked a spoon up and rapped it lightly
on the edge of his saucer and smiled. “That interest you?” he asked mildly.
“The number was 1644 West Fifty-fourth Place.” “Yeah,” I said thickly. “Oh, there was quite a bit of jewelry in
Marriott’s box too—pretty good stuff. But I don’t think he stole it. I think it
was very likely given to him. That’s one up for you. He was afraid to sell
it—on account of the association of thought in his own mind.” I nodded. “He’d feel as if it was stolen.”
“Yes. Now that trust deed didn’t interest
me at all at first, but here’s how it works. It’s what you fellows are up
against in police work. We get all the homicide and doubtful death reports from
outlying districts. We’re supposed to read them the same day. That’s a rule,
like you shouldn’t search without a warrant or frisk a guy for a gun without
reasonable grounds. But we break rules. We have to. I didn’t get around to some
of the reports until this morning. Then I read one about a killing of a Negro
on Central, last Thursday. By a tough ex-con called Moose Malloy. And there was
an identifying witness. And sink my putt, if you weren’t the witness.” He smiled, softly, his third smile. “Like
it?” “I’m listening.” “This was only this morning, understand.
So I looked at the name of the man making the report and I knew him, Nulty. So
I knew the case was a flop. Nulty is the kind of guy—well, were you ever up at
Crestline?” “Yeah.” “Well, up near Crestline there’s a place
where a bunch of old box cars have been made into cabins. I have a cabin up
there myself, but not a box car. These box cars were brought up on trucks,
believe it or not, and there they stand without any wheels. Now Nulty is the kind
of guy who would make a swell brakeman on one of those box cars.” “That’s not nice,” I said. “A fellow
officer.” “So I called Nulty up and he hemmed and
hawed around and spit a few times and then he said you had an idea about some
girl called Velma something or other that Malloy was sweet on a long time ago
and you went to see the widow of the guy that used to own the dive where the
killing happened when it was a white joint, and where Malloy and the girl both
worked at that time. And her address was 1644 West Fifty-fourth Place, the
place Marriott had the trust deed on.” “Yes?” “So I just thought that was enough
coincidence for one morning,” Randall said. “And here I am. And so far I’ve
been pretty nice about it.” “The trouble is,” I said, “it looks like
more than it is. This Velma girl is dead, according to Mrs. Florian. I have her
photo.” I went into the living room and reached
into my suit coat and my hand was in midair when it began to feel funny and
empty. But they hadn’t even taken the photos. I got them out and took them to
the kitchen and tossed the Pierrot girl down in front of Randall. He studied it
carefully. “Nobody I ever saw,” he said. “That
another one?” “No, this is a newspaper still of Mrs.
Grayle. Anne Riordan got it.” He looked at it and nodded. “For twenty
million, I’d marry her myself.” “There’s something I ought to tell you,” I
said. “Last night I was so damn mad I had crazy ideas about going down there
and trying to bust it alone. This hospital is at Twenty-third and Descanso in
Bay City. It’s run by a man named Sonderborg who says he’s a doctor. He’s
running a crook hideout on the side. I saw Moose Malloy there last night. In a
room.” Randall sat very still, looking at me.
“Sure?” “You couldn’t mistake him. He’s a big guy,
enormous. He doesn’t look like anybody you ever saw.” He sat looking at me, without moving. Then
very slowly he moved out from under the table and stood up. “Let’s go see this Florian woman.” “How about Malloy?” He sat down again. “Tell me the whole
thing, carefully.” I told him. He listened without taking his eyes off my face.
I don’t think he even winked. He breathed with his mouth slightly open. His
body didn’t move. His fingers tapped gently on the edge of the table. When I
had finished he said: “This Dr. Sonderborg—what did he look
like?” “Like a doper, and probably a dope
peddler.” I described him to Randall as well as I could. He went quietly into the other room and
sat down at the telephone. He dialed his number and spoke quietly for a time.
Then he came back. I had just finished making more coffee and boiling a couple
of eggs and making two slices of toast and buttering them. I sat down to eat. Randall sat down opposite me and leaned
his chin in his hand. “I’m having a state narcotics man go down there with a
fake complaint and ask to look around. He may get some ideas. He won’t get
Malloy. Malloy was out of there ten minutes after you left last night. That’s
one thing you can bet on.” “Why not the Bay City cops?” I put salt on
my eggs. Randall said nothing. When I looked up at
him his face was red and uncomfortable. “For a cop,” I said, “you’re the most
sensitive guy I ever met.” “Hurry up with that eating. We have to
go.” “I have to shower and shave and dress
after this.” “Couldn’t you just go in your pajamas?” he
asked acidly. “So the town is as crooked as all that?” I
said. “It’s Laird Brunette’s town. They say he
put up thirty grand to elect a mayor.” “The fellow that owns the Belvedere Club?”
“And the two gambling boats.” “But it’s in our county,” I said. He looked down at his clean, shiny
fingernails. “We’ll stop by your office and get those other two reefers,” he
said. “If they’re still there.” He snapped his fingers. “If you’ll lend me your
keys, I’ll do it while you get shaved and dressed.” “We’ll go together,” I said. “I might have
some mail.” He nodded and after a moment sat down and
lit another cigarette. I shaved and dressed and we left in Randall’s car. I had some mail, but it wasn’t worth
reading. The two cut up cigarettes in the desk drawer had not been touched. The
office had no look of having been searched. Randall took the two Russian cigarettes
and sniffed at the tobacco and put them away in his pocket. “He got one card from you,” he mused.
“There couldn’t have been anything on the back of that, so he didn’t bother
about the others. I guess Amthor is not very much afraid—just thought you were
trying to pull something. Let’s go.” 30 Old Nosey poked her nose an inch outside
the front door, sniffed carefully as if there might be an early violet
blooming, looked up and down the street with a raking glance, and nodded her
white head. Randall and I took our hats off. In that neighborhood that probably
ranked you with Valentino. She seemed to remember me. “Good morning, Mrs. Morrison,” I said.
“Can we step inside a minute? This is Lieutenant Randall from Headquarters.” “Land’s sakes, I’m all flustered. I got a
big ironing to do,” she said. “We won’t keep you a minute.” She stood back from the door and we slipped
past her into her hallway with the side piece from Mason City or wherever it
was and from that into the neat living room with the lace curtains at the
windows. A smell of ironing came from the back of the house. She shut the door
between as carefully as if it was made of short piecrust. She had a blue and white apron on this
morning. Her eyes were just as sharp and her chin hadn’t grown any. She parked herself about a foot from me
and pushed her face forward and looked into my eyes. “She didn’t get it.” I looked wise. I nodded my head and looked
at Randall and Randall nodded his head. He went to a window and looked at the
side of Mrs. Florian’s house. He came back softly, holding his pork pie under
his arm, debonair as a French count in a college play. “She didn’t get it,” I said. “Nope, she didn’t. Saturday was the first.
April Fool’s Day. He! He!” She stopped and was about to wipe her eyes with her
apron when she remembered it was a rubber apron. That soured her a little. Her
mouth got the pruny look. “When the mailman come by and he didn’t go
up her walk she ran out and called to him. He shook his head and went on. She
went back in. She slammed the door so hard I figured a window’d break. Like she
was mad.” “I swan,” I said. Old Nosey said to Randall sharply: “Let me
see your badge, young man. This young man had a whiskey breath on him t’other
day. I ain’t never rightly trusted him.” Randall took a gold and blue enamel badge
out of his pocket and showed it to her. “Looks like real police all right,” she
admitted. “Well, ain’t nothing happened over Sunday. She went out for liquor.
Come back with two square bottles.” “Gin,” I said. “That just gives you an
idea. Nice folks don’t drink gin.” “Nice folks don’t drink no liquor at all,”
Old Nosey said pointedly. “Yeah,” I said. “Come Monday, that being
today, and the mailman went by again. This time she was really sore.” “Kind of smart guesser, ain’t you, young
man? Can’t wait for folks to get their mouth open hardly.” “I’m sorry, Mrs. Morrison. This is an
important matter to us—” “This here young man don’t seem to have no
trouble keepin’ his mouth in place.” “He’s married,” I said. “He’s had
practice.” Her face turned a shade of violet that
reminded me, unpleasantly, of cyanosis. “Get out of my house afore I call the
police!” she shouted. “There is a police officer standing before
you, madam,” Randall said shortly. “You are in no danger.” “That’s right there is,” she admitted. The
violet tint began to fade from her face. “I don’t take to this man.” “You have company, madam. Mrs. Florian
didn’t get her registered letter today either—is that it?” “No.” Her voice was sharp and short. Her
eyes were furtive. She began to talk rapidly, too rapidly. “People was there
last night. I didn’t even see them. Folks took me to the picture show. Just as
we got back—no, just after they driven off—a car went away from next door. Fast
without any lights. I didn’t see the number.” She gave me a sharp sidelong look from her
furtive eyes. I wondered why they were furtive. I wandered to the window and
lifted the lace curtain. An official blue-gray uniform was nearing the house.
The man wearing it wore a heavy leather bag over his shoulder and had a visored
cap. I turned away from the window, grinning. “You’re slipping,” I told her rudely.
“You’ll be playing shortstop in a Class C league next year.” “That’s not smart,” Randall said coldly. “Take a look out of the window.” He did and his face hardened. He stood
quite still looking at Mrs. Morrison. He was waiting for something, a sound
like nothing else on earth. It came in a moment. It was the sound of something being pushed
into the front door mail slot. It might have been a handbill, but it wasn’t.
There were steps going back down the walk, then along the street, and Randall
went to the window again. The mailman didn’t stop at Mrs. Florian’s house. He
went on, his blue-gray back even and calm under the heavy leather pouch. Randall turned his head and asked with
deadly politeness: “How many mail deliveries a morning are there in this
district, Mrs. Morrison?” She tried to face it out. “Just the one,”
she said sharply—”one mornings and one afternoons.” Her eyes darted this way and that. The
rabbit chin was trembling on the edge of something. Her hands clutched at the
rubber frill that bordered the blue and white apron. “The morning delivery just went by,”
Randall said dreamily. “Registered mail comes by the regular mailman?” “She always got it Special Delivery,” the
old voice cracked. “Oh. But on Saturday she ran out and spoke
to the mailman when he didn’t stop at her house. And you said nothing about
Special Delivery.” It was nice to watch him working—on
somebody else. Her mouth opened wide and her teeth had
the nice shiny look that comes from standing all night in a glass of solution.
Then suddenly she made a squawking noise and threw the apron over her head and
ran out of the room. He watched the door through which she had
gone. It was beyond the arch. He smiled. It was a rather tired smile. “Neat, and not a bit gaudy,” I said. “Next
time you play the tough part. I don’t like being rough with old ladies—even if
they are lying gossips.” He went on smiling. “Same old story.” He
shrugged. “Police work. Phooey. She started with facts, as she knew facts. But
they didn’t come fast enough or seem exciting enough. So she tried a little
lily-gilding.” He turned and we went out into the hall. A
faint noise of sobbing came from the back of the house. For some patient man,
long dead, that had been the weapon of final defeat, probably. To me it was
just an old woman sobbing, but nothing to be pleased about. We went quietly out of the house, shut the
front door quietly and made sure that the screen door didn’t bang. Randall put
his hat on and sighed. Then he shrugged, spreading his cool well-kept hands out
far from his body. There was a thin sound of sobbing still audible, back in the
house. The mailman’s back was two houses down the
street. “Police work,” Randall said quietly, under
his breath, and twisted his mouth. We walked across the space to the next
house. Mrs. Florian hadn’t even taken the wash in. It still jittered, stiff and
yellowish on the wire line in the side yard. We went up on the steps and rang
the bell. No answer. We knocked. No answer. “It was unlocked last time,” I said. He tried the door, carefully screening the
movement with his body. It was locked this time. We went down off the porch and
walked around the house on the side away from Old Nosey. The back porch had a
hooked screen. Randall knocked on that. Nothing happened. He came back off the
two almost paintless wooden steps and went along the disused and overgrown
driveway and opened up a wooden garage. The doors creaked. The garage was full
of nothing. There were a few battered old-fashioned trunks not worth breaking
up for firewood. Rusted gardening tools, old cans, plenty of those, in cartons.
On each side of the doors, in the angle of the wall a nice fat black widow
spider sat in its casual untidy web. Randall picked up a piece of wood and killed
them absently. He shut the garage up again, walked back along the weedy drive
to the front and up the steps of the house on the other side from Old Nosey.
Nobody answered his ring or knock. He came back slowly, looking across the
street over his shoulder. “Back door’s easiest,” he said. “The old hen next
door won’t do anything about it now. She’s done too much lying.” He went up the two back steps and slide a
knife blade neatly into the crack of the door and lifted the hook. That put us
in the screen porch. It was full of cans and some of the cans were full of
flies. “Jesus, what a way to live!” he said. The back door was easy. A five-cent
skeleton key turned the lock. But there was a bolt. “This jars me,” I said. “I guess she’s
beat it. She wouldn’t lock up like this. She’s too sloppy.” “Your hat’s older than mine,” Randall
said. He looked at the glass panel in the back door. “Lend it to me to push the
glass in. Or shall we do a neat job?” “Kick it in. Who cares around here?” “Here goes.” He stepped back and lunged at the lock
with his leg parallel to the floor. Something cracked idly and the door gave a
few inches. We heaved it open and picked a piece of jagged cast metal off the
linoleum and laid it politely on the woodstone drain board, beside about nine
empty gin bottles. Flies buzzed against the closed windows of
the kitchen. The place reeked. Randall stood in the middle of the floor, giving
it the careful eye. Then he walked softly through the swing
door without touching it except low down with his toe and using that to push it
far enough back so that it stayed open. The living room was much as I had
remembered it. The radio was off. “That’s a nice radio,” Randall said. “Cost
money. If it’s paid for. Here’s something.” He went down on one knee and looked along
the carpet. Then he went to the side of the radio and moved a loose cord with
his foot. The plug came into view. He bent and studied the knobs on the radio
front. “Yeah,” he said. “Smooth and rather large.
Pretty smart, that. You don’t get prints on a light cord, do you?” “Shove it in and see if it’s turned on.” He reached around and shoved it into the
plug in the baseboard. The light went on at once. We waited. The thing hummed
for a while and then suddenly a heavy volume of sound began to pour out of the
speaker. Randall jumped at the cord and yanked it loose again. The sound was
snapped off sharp. When he straightened his eyes were full of
light. We went swiftly into the bedroom. Mrs.
Jessie Pierce Florian lay diagonally across the bed, in a rumpled cotton
housedress, with her head close to one end of the footboard. The corner post of
the bed was smeared darkly with something the flies liked. She had been dead long enough. Randall didn’t touch her. He stared down
at her for a long time and then looked at me with a wolfish baring of his
teeth. “Brains on her face,” he said. “That seems
to be the theme song of this case. Only this was done with just a pair of
hands. But Jesus what a pair of hands. Look at the neck bruises, the spacing of
the finger marks.” “You look at them,” I said. I turned away.
“Poor old Nulty. It’s not just a shine killing any more.” 31 A shiny black bug with a pink head and
pink spots on it crawled slowly along the polished top of Randall’s desk and waved
a couple of feelers around, as if testing the breeze for a takeoff. It wobbled
a little as it crawled, like an old woman carrying too many parcels. A nameless
dick sat at another desk and kept talking into an old-fashioned hushaphone
telephone mouthpiece, so that his voice sounded like someone whispering in a
tunnel. He talked with his eyes half closed, a big scarred hand on the desk in
front of him holding a burning cigarette between the knuckles of the first and
second fingers. The bug reached the end of Randall’s desk
and marched straight off into the air. It fell on its back on the floor, waved
a few thin worn legs in the air feebly and then played dead. Nobody cared, so
it began waving the legs again and finally struggled over on its face. It trundled
slowly off into a corner towards nothing, going nowhere. The police loudspeaker box on the wall put
out a bulletin about a holdup on San Pedro south of Forty-fourth. The holdup
was a middle-aged man wearing a dark gray suit and gray felt hat. He was last
seen running east on Forty-fourth and then dodging between two houses.
“Approach carefully,” the announcer said. “This suspect is armed with a .32
caliber revolver and has just held up the proprietor of a Greek restaurant at
Number 3966 South San Pedro.” A flat click and the announcer went off
the air and another one came on and started to read a hot car list, in a slow
monotonous voice that repeated everything twice. The door opened and Randall came in with a
sheaf of letter size typewritten sheets. He walked briskly across the room and
sat down across the desk from me and pushed some papers at me. “Sign four copies,” he said. I signed four copies. The pink bug reached a corner of the room
and put feelers out for a good spot to take off from. It seemed a little
discouraged. It went along the baseboard towards another corner. I lit a
cigarette and the dick at the hushaphone abruptly got up and went out of the
office. Randall leaned back in his chair, looking
just the same as ever, just as cool, just as smooth, just as ready to be nasty
or nice as the occasion required. “I’m telling you a few things,” he said,
“just so you won’t go having any more brainstorms. Just so you won’t go
masterminding all over the landscape any more. Just so maybe for Christ’s sake
you will let this one lay.” I waited. “No prints in the dump,” he said. “You
know which dump I mean. The cord was jerked to turn the radio off, but she
turned it up herself probably. That’s pretty obvious. Drunks like loud radios.
If you have gloves on to do a killing and you turn up the radio to drown shots
or something, you can turn it off the same way. But that wasn’t the way it was
done. And that woman’s neck is broken. She was dead before the guy started to
smack her head around. Now why did he start to smack her head around?” “I’m just listening.” Randall frowned. “He probably didn’t know
he’d broken her neck. He was sore at her,” he said. “Deduction.” He smiled
sourly. I blew some smoke and waved it away from
my face. “Well, why was he sore at her? There was a
grand reward paid the time he was picked up at Florian’s for the bank job in
Oregon. It was paid to a shyster who is dead since, but the Florians likely got
some of it. Malloy may have suspected that. Maybe he actually knew it. And
maybe he was just trying to shake it out of her.” I nodded. It sounded worth a nod. Randall
went on: “He took hold of her neck just once and
his fingers didn’t slip. If we get him, we might be able to prove by the
spacing of the marks that his hands did it. Maybe not. The doc figures it
happened last night, fairly early. Motion picture time, anyway. So far we don’t
tie Malloy to the house last night, not by any neighbors. But it certainly
looks like Malloy.” “Yeah,” I said. “Malloy all right. He
probably didn’t mean to kill her, though. He’s just too strong.” “That won’t help him any,” Randall said
grimly. “I suppose not. I just make the point that
Malloy does not appear to me to be a killer type. Kill if cornered—but not for
pleasure or money—and not women.” “Is that an important point?” he asked
dryly. “Maybe you know enough to know what’s
important. And what isn’t. I don’t.” He stared at me long enough for a police
announcer to have time to put out another bulletin about the holdup of the
Greek restaurant on South San Pedro. The suspect was now in custody. It turned
out later that he was a fourteen-year-old Mexican armed with a water-pistol. So
much for eyewitnesses. Randall waited until the announcer stopped
and went on: “We got friendly this morning. Let’s stay
that way. Go home and lie down and have a good rest. You look pretty peaked.
Just let me and the police department handle the Marriott killing and find
Moose Malloy and so on.” “I got paid on the Marriott business,” I
said. “I fell down on the job. Mrs. Grayle has hired me. What do you want me to
do—retire and live on my fat?” He stared at me again. “I know. I’m human.
They give you guys licenses, which must mean they expect you to do something
with them besides hang them on the wall in your office. On the other hand any
acting-captain with a grouch can break you.” “Not with the Grayles behind me.” He studied it. He hated to admit I could
be even half right. So he frowned and tapped his desk. “Just so we understand each other,” he
said after a pause. “If you crab this case, you’ll be in a jam. It may be a jam
you can wriggle out of this time. I don’t know. But little by little you will
build up a body of hostility in this department that will make it damn hard for
you to do any work.” “Every private dick faces that every day
of his life—unless he’s just a divorce man.” “You can’t work on murders.” “You’ve said your piece. I heard you say
it. I don’t expect to go out and accomplish things a big police department
can’t accomplish. If I have any small private notions, they are just that—small
and private.” He leaned slowly across the desk. His thin
restless fingers tap-tapped, like the poinsettia shoots tapping against Mrs.
Jessie Florian’s front wail. His creamy gray hair shone. His cool steady eyes
were on mine. “Let’s go on,” he said. “With what there
is to tell. Amthor’s away on a trip. His wife—and secretary—doesn’t know or
won’t say where. The Indian has also disappeared. Will you sign a complaint
against these people?” “No. I couldn’t make it stick.” He looked relieved. “The wife says she
never heard of you. As to these two Bay City cops, if that’s what they
were—that’s out of my hands. I’d rather not have the thing any more complicated
than it is. One thing I feel pretty sure of—Amthor had nothing to do with
Marriott’s death. The cigarettes with his card in them were just a plant.” “Doc Sonderborg?” He spread his hands. “The whole shebang
skipped. Men from the D.A.’s office went down there on the quiet. No contact
with Bay City at all. The house is locked up and empty. They got in, of course.
Some hasty attempt had been made to clean up, but there are prints—plenty of
them. It will take a week to work out what we have. There’s a wall safe they’re
working on now. Probably had dope in it—and other things. My guess is that
Sonderborg will have a record, not local, somewhere else, for abortion, or
treating gunshot wounds or altering finger tips or for illegal use of dope. If
it comes under Federal statutes, we’ll get a lot of help.” “He said he was a medical doctor,” I said.
Randall shrugged. “May have been once. May
never have been convicted. There’s a guy practicing medicine near Palm Springs
right now who was indicted as a dope peddler in Hollywood five years ago. He
was as guilty as hell—but the protection worked. He got off. Anything else
worrying you?” “What do you know about Brunette—for
telling?” “Brunette’s a gambler. He’s making plenty.
He’s making it an easy way.” “All right,” I said, and started to get
up. “That sounds reasonable. But it doesn’t bring us any nearer to this jewel
heist gang that killed Marriott.” “I can’t tell you everything, Marlowe.” “I don’t expect it,” I said. “By the way,
Jessie Florian told me—the second time I saw her—that she had been a servant in
Marriott’s family once. That was why he was sending her money. Anything to
support that?” “Yes. Letters in his safety-deposit box
from her thanking him and saying the same thing.” He looked as if he was going
to lose his temper. “Now will you for God’s sake go home and mind your own
business?” “Nice of him to take such care of the
letters, wasn’t it?” He lifted his eyes until their glance
rested on the top of my head. Then he lowered the lids until half the iris was
covered. He looked at me like that for a long ten seconds. Then he smiled. He
was doing an awful lot of smiling that day. Using up a whole week’s supply. “I have a theory about that,” he said.
“It’s crazy, but it’s human nature. Marriott was by the circumstances of his
life a threatened man. All crooks are gamblers, more or less, and all gamblers
are superstitious—more or less. I think Jessie Florian was Marriott’s lucky
piece. As long as he took care of her, nothing would happen to him.” I turned my head and looked for the
pink-headed bug. He had tried two corners of the room now and was moving off
disconsolately towards a third. I went over and picked him up in my
handkerchief and carried him back to the desk. “Look,” I said. “This room is eighteen
floors above ground. And this little bug climbs all the way up here just to
make a friend. Me. My luck piece.” I folded the bug carefully into the soft
part of the handkerchief and tucked the handkerchief into my pocket. Randall
was pie-eyed. His mouth moved, but nothing came out of it. “I wonder whose lucky piece Marriott was,”
I said. “Not yours, pal.” His voice was acid—cold
acid. “Perhaps not yours either.” My voice was
just a voice. I went out of the room and shut the door. I rode the express elevator down to the
Spring Street entrance and walked out on the front porch of City Hall and down
some steps and over to the flower beds. I put the pink bug down carefully
behind a bush. I wondered, in the taxi going home, how
long it would take him to make the Homicide Bureau again. I got my car out of the garage at the back
of the apartment house and ate some lunch in Hollywood before I started down to
Bay City. It was a beautiful cool sunny afternoon down at the beach. I left
Arguello Boulevard at Third Street and drove over to the City Hall. 32 It was a cheap looking building for so
prosperous a town. It looked more like something out of the Bible belt. Bums
sat unmolested in a long row on the retaining wall that kept the front lawn—now
mostly Bermuda grass—from falling into the street. The building was of three
stories and had an old belfry at the top, and the bell still hanging in the
belfry. They had probably rung it for the volunteer fire brigade back in the
good old chaw-and-spit days. The cracked walk and the front steps let
to open double doors in which a knot of obvious city hall fixers hung around
waiting for something to happen so they could make something else out of it.
They all had the well-fed stomachs, the careful eyes, the nice clothes and the
reach-me-down manners. They gave me about four inches to get in. Inside was a long dark hallway that had
been mopped the day McKinley was inaugurated. A wooden sign pointed out the
police department Information Desk. A uniformed man dozed behind a pint-sized
PBX set into the end of a scarred wooden counter. A plainclothesman with his
coat off and his hog’s leg looking like a fire plug against his ribs took one
eye off his evening paper, bonged a spittoon ten feet away from him, yawned,
and said the Chief’s office was upstairs at the back. The second floor was lighter and cleaner,
but that didn’t mean that it was clean and light. A door on the ocean side,
almost at the end of the hall, was lettered: John Wax, Chief of Police. Enter. Inside there was a low wooden railing and
a uniformed man behind it working a typewriter with two fingers and one thumb.
He took my card, yawned, said he would see, and managed to drag himself through
a mahogany door marked John Wax, Chief of Police. Private. He came back and
held the door in the railing for me. I went on in and shut the door of the
inner office. It was cool and large and had windows on three sides. A stained
wood desk was set far back like Mussolini’s, so that you had to walk across an
expanse of blue carpet to get to it, and while you were doing that you would be
getting the beady eye. I walked to the desk. A tilted embossed
sign on it read: John Wax, Chief of Police. I figured I might be able to
remember the name. I looked at the man behind the desk. No straw was sticking
to his hair. He was a hammered-down heavyweight, with
short pink hair and a pink scalp glistening through it. He had small, hungry,
heavy-lidded eyes, as restless as fleas. He wore a suit of fawn-colored
flannel, a coffee-colored shirt and tie, a diamond ring, a diamond-studded
lodge pin in his lapel, and the required three stiff points of handkerchief
coming up a little more than the required three inches from his outside breast
pocket. One of his plump hands was holding my
card. He read it, turned it over and read the back, which was blank, read the
front again, put it down on his desk and laid on it a paperweight in the shape
of a bronze monkey, as if he was making sure he wouldn’t lose it. He pushed a pink paw at me. When I gave it
back to him, he motioned to a chair. “Sit down, Mr. Marlowe. I see you are in
our business more or less. What can I do for you?” “A little trouble, Chief. You can
straighten it out for me in a minute, if you care to.” “Trouble,” he said softly. “A little
trouble.” He turned in his chair and crossed his
thick legs and gazed thoughtfully towards one of his pairs of windows. That let
me see handspun lisle socks and English brogues that looked as if they had been
pickled in port wine. Counting what I couldn’t see and not counting his wallet
he had half a grand on him. I figured his wife had money. “Trouble,” he said, still softly, “is
something our little city don’t know much about, Mr. Marlowe. Our city is small
but very, very clean. I look out of my western windows and I see the Pacific
Ocean. Nothing cleaner than that, is there?” He didn’t mention the two gambling
ships that were hull down on the brass waves just beyond the three-mile limit. Neither did I. “That’s right, Chief,” I
said. He threw his chest a couple of inches
farther. “I look out of my northern windows and I see the busy bustle of
Arguello Boulevard and the lovely California foothills, and in the near
foreground one of the nicest little business sections a man could want to know.
I look out of my southern windows, which I am looking out of right now, and I
see the finest little yacht harbor in the world, for a small yacht harbor. I
don’t have no eastern windows, but if I did have, I would see a residential
section that would make your mouth water. No, sir, trouble is a thing we don’t
have a lot of on hand in our little town.” “I guess I brought mine with me, Chief.
Some of it at least. Do you have a man working for you named Galbraith, a
plainclothes sergeant?” “Why yes, I believe I do,” he said,
bringing his eyes around. “What about him?” “Do you have a man working for you that
goes like this?” I described the other man, the one who said very little, was
short, had a mustache and hit me with a blackjack. “He goes around with
Galbraith, very likely. Somebody called him Mister Blane, but that sounded like
a phony.” “Quite on the contrary,” the fat Chief
said as stiffly as a fat man can say anything. “He is my Chief of Detectives.
Captain Blane.” “Could I see these two guys in your
office?” He picked my card up and read it again. He
laid it down. He waved a soft glistening hand. “Not without a better reason than you have
given me so far,” he said suavely. “I didn’t think I could, Chief. Do you
happen to know a man named Jules Amthor? He calls himself a psychic adviser. He
lives at the top of a hill in Stillwood Heights.” “No. And Stillwood Heights is not in my
territory,” the Chief said. His eyes now were the eyes of a man who has other
thoughts. “That’s what makes it funny,” I said. “You
see, I went to call on Mr. Amthor in connection with a client of mine. Mr.
Amthor got the idea I was blackmailing him. Probably guys in his line of
business get that idea rather easily. He had a tough Indian bodyguard I
couldn’t handle. So the Indian held me and Amthor beat me up with my own gun.
Then he sent for a couple of cops. They happened to be Galbraith and Mister
Blane. Could this interest you at all?” Chief Wax flapped his hands on his desk
top very gently. He folded his eyes almost shut, but not quite. The cool gleam
of his eyes shone between the thick lids and it shone straight at me. He sat
very still, as if listening. Then he opened his eyes and smiled. “And what happened then?” he inquired,
polite as a bouncer at the Stork Club. “They went through me, took me away in
their car, dumped me out on the side of a mountain and socked me with a sap as
I got out.” He nodded, as if what I had said was the
most natural thing in the world. “And this was in Stillwood Heights,” he said
softly. “Yeah.” “You know what I think you are?” He leaned
a little over the desk, but not far, on account of his stomach being in the
way. “A liar,” I said. “The door is there,” he said, pointing to
it with the little finger of his left hand. I didn’t move. I kept on looking at him.
When he started to get mad enough to push his buzzer I said: “Let’s not both
make the same mistake. You think I’m a small time private dick trying to push
ten times his own weight, trying to make a charge against a police officer
that, even if it was true, the officer would take damn good care couldn’t be
proved. Not at all. I’m not making any complaints. I think the mistake was
natural. I want to square myself with Amthor and I want your man Galbraith to
help me do it. Mister Blane needn’t bother. Galbraith will be enough. And I’m
not here without backing. I have important people behind me.” “How far behind?” the Chief asked and
chuckled wittily. “How far is 862 Aster Drive, where Mr.
Merwin Lockridge Grayle lives?” His face changed so completely that it was
as if another man sat in his chair. “Mrs. Grayle happens to be my client,” I
said. “Lock the doors,” he said. “You’re a
younger man than I am. Turn the bolt knobs. Well make a friendly start on this
thing. You have an honest face, Marlowe.” I got up and locked the doors. When I got
back to the desk along the blue carpet, the Chief had a nice looking bottle out
and two glasses. He tossed a handful of cardamom seeds on his blotter and
filled both glasses. We drank. He cracked a few cardamom seeds
and we chewed them silently, looking into each other’s eyes. “That tasted right,” he said. He refilled
the glasses. It was my turn to crack the cardamom seeds. He swept the shells
off his blotter to the floor and smiled and leaned back. “Now let’s have it,” he said. “Has this job
you are doing for Mrs. Grayle anything to do with Amthor?” “There’s a connection. Better check that
I’m telling you the truth, though.” “There’s that,” he said and reached for
his phone. Then he took a small book out of his vest and looked up a number.
“Campaign contributors,” he said and winked. “The Mayor is very insistent that
all courtesies be extended. Yes, here it is.” He put the book away and dialed. He had the same trouble with the butler
that I had. It made his ears get red. Finally he got her. His ears stayed red.
She must have been pretty sharp with him. “She wants to talk to you,” he said
and pushed the phone across his broad desk. “This is Phil,” I said, winking naughtily
at the Chief. There was a cool provocative laugh. “What
are you doing with that fat slob?” “There’s a little drinking being done.” “Do you have to do it with him?” “At the moment, yes. Business. I said, is
there anything new? I guess you know what I mean.” “No. Are you aware, my good fellow, that
you stood me up for an hour the other night? Did I strike you as the kind of
girl that lets that sort of thing happen to her?” “I ran into trouble. How about tonight?” “Let me see—tonight is—what day of the
week is it for heaven’s sake?” “I’d better call you,” I said. “I may not
be able to make it. This is Friday.” “Liar.” The soft husky laugh came again.
“It’s Monday. Same time, same place—and no fooling this time?” “I’d better call you.” “You’d better be there.” “I can’t be sure. Let me call you.” “Hard to get? I see. Perhaps I’m a fool to
bother.” “As a matter of fact you are.” “Why?” “I’m a poor man, but I pay my own way. And
it’s not quite as soft a way as you would like.” “Damn you, if you’re not there—” “I said I’d call you.” She sighed. “All men are the same.” “So are all women—after the first nine.” She damned me and hung up. The Chief’s
eyes popped so far out of his head they looked as if they were on stilts. He filled both glasses with a shaking hand
and pushed one at me. “So it’s like that,” he said very
thoughtfully. “Her husband doesn’t care,” I said, “so
don’t make a note of it.” He looked hurt as he drank his drink. He
cracked the cardamom seeds very slowly, very thoughtfully. We drank to each
other’s baby blue eyes. Regretfully the Chief put the bottle and glasses out of
sight and snapped a switch on his call box. “Have Galbraith come up, if he’s in the
building. If not, try and get in touch with him for me.” I got up and unlocked the doors and sat
down again. We didn’t wait long. The side door was tapped on, the Chief called
out, and Hemingway stepped into the room. He walked solidly over to the desk and
stopped at the end of it and looked at Chief Wax with the proper expression of
tough humility. “Meet Mr. Philip Marlowe,” the Chief said genially.
“A private dick from L.A.” Hemingway turned enough to look at me. If
he had ever seen me before, nothing in his face showed it. He put a hand out
and I put a hand out and he looked at the Chief again. “Mr. Marlowe has a rather curious story,”
the Chief said, cunning, like Richelieu behind the arras. “About a man named
Amthor who has a place in Stillwood Heights. He’s some sore of crystal-gazer.
It seems Marlowe went to see him and you and Blane happened in about the same
time and there was an argument of some kind. I forget the details.” He looked
out of his windows with the expression of a man forgetting details. “Some mistake,” Hemingway said. “I never
saw this man before.” “There was a mistake, as a matter of
fact,” the Chief said dreamily. “Rather trifling, but still a mistake. Mr.
Marlowe thinks it of slight importance.” Hemingway looked at me again. His face
still looked like a stone face. “In fact he’s not even interested in the
mistake,” the Chief dreamed on. “But he is interested in going to call on this
man Amthor who lives in Stillwood Heights. He would like someone with him. I
thought of you. He would like someone who would see that he got a square deal.
It seems that Mr. Amthor has a very tough Indian bodyguard and Mr. Marlowe is a
little inclined to doubt his ability to handle the situation without help. Do
you think you could find out where this Amthor lives?” “Yeah,” Hemingway said. “But Stillwood
Heights is over the line, Chief. This just a personal favor to a friend of
yours?” “You might put it that way,” the Chief
said, looking at his left thumb. “We wouldn’t want to do anything not strictly
legal, of course.” “Yeah,” Hemingway said. “No.” He coughed.
“When do we go?” The Chief looked at me benevolently. “Now
would be Okay,” I said. “If it suits Mr. Galbraith.” “I do what I’m told,” Hemingway said. The Chief looked him over, feature by
feature. He combed him and brushed him with his eyes. “How is Captain Blane
today?” he inquired, munching on a cardamom seed. “Bad shape. Bust appendix,” Hemingway
said. “Pretty critical.” The Chief shook his head sadly. Then he
got hold of the arms of his chair and dragged himself to his feet. He pushed a
pink paw across his desk. “Galbraith will take good care of you,
Marlowe. You can rely on that.” “Well, you’ve certainly been obliging,
Chief,” I said. “I certainly don’t know how to thank you.” “Pshaw! No thanks necessary. Always glad
to oblige a friend of a friend, so to speak.” He winked at me. Hemingway
studied the wink but he didn’t say what he added it up to. We went out, with the Chief’s polite
murmurs almost carrying us down the office. The door closed. Hemingway looked
up and down the hall and then he looked at me. “You played that one smart, baby,” he
said. “You must got something we wasn’t told about.” 33 The car drifted quietly along a quiet
street of homes. Arching pepper trees almost met above it to form a green
tunnel. The sun twinkled through their upper branches and their narrow light
leaves. A sign at the corner said it was Eighteenth Street. Hemingway was driving and I sat beside
him. He drove very slowly, his face heavy with thought. “How much you tell him?” he asked, making
up his mind. “I told him you and Blane went over there
and took me away and tossed me out of the car and socked me on the back of the
head. I didn’t tell him the rest.” “Not about Twenty-third and Descanso,
huh?” “No.” “Why not?” “I thought maybe I could get more
co-operation from you if I didn’t.” “That’s a thought. You really want to go
over to Stillwood Heights, or was that just a stall?” “Just a stall. What I really want is for
you to tell me why you put me in that funny-house and why I was kept there?” Hemingway thought. He thought so hard his
cheek muscles made little knots under his grayish skin. “That Blane,” he said. “That sawed-off
hunk of shin meat. I didn’t mean for him to sap you. I didn’t mean for you to
walk home neither, not really. It was just an act, on account of we are friends
with this swami guy and we kind of keep people from bothering him. You’d be
surprised what a lot of people would try to bother him.” “Amazed,” I said. He turned his head. His gray eyes were
lumps of ice. Then he looked again through the dusty windshield and did some
more thinking. “Them old cops get sap-hungry once in a
while,” he said. “They just got to crack a head. Jesus, was I scared. You
dropped like a sack of cement. I told Blane plenty. Then we run you over to
Sonderborg’s place on account of it was a little closer and he was a nice guy
and would take care of you.” “Does Amthor know you took me there?” “Hell, no. It was our idea.” “On account of Sonderborg is such a nice
guy and he would take care of me. And no kickback. No chance for a doctor to
back up a complaint if I made one. Not that a complaint would have much chance
in this sweet little town, if I did make it.” “You going to get tough?” Hemingway asked
thoughtfully. “Not me,” I said. “And for once in your
life neither are you. Because your job is hanging by a thread. You looked in
the Chief’s eyes and you saw that. I didn’t go in there without credentials,
not this trip.” “Okay,” Hemingway said and spat out of the
window. “I didn’t have any idea of getting tough in the first place except just
the routine big mouth. What next?” “Is Blane really sick?” Hemingway nodded, but somehow failed to
look sad. “Sure is. Pain in the gut day before yesterday and it bust on him
before they could get his appendix out. He’s got a chance—but not too good.” “We’d certainly hate to lose him,” I said.
“A fellow like that is an asset to any police force.” Hemingway chewed that one over and spat it
out of the car window. “Okay, next question,” he sighed. “You told me why you took me to
Sonderborg’s place. You didn’t tell me why he kept me there over forty-eight
hours, locked up and shot full of dope.” Hemingway braked the car softly over
beside the curb. He put his large hands on the lower part of the wheel side by
side and gently rubbed the thumbs together. “I wouldn’t have an idea,” he said in a
far-off voice. “I had papers on me showing I had a
private license,” I said. “Keys, some money, a couple of photographs. If he
didn’t know you boys pretty well, he might think the crack on the head was just
a gag to get into his place and look around. But I figure he knows you boys too
well for that. So I’m puzzled.” “Stay puzzled, pally. It’s a lot safer.” “So it is,” I said. “But there’s no
satisfaction in it.” “You got the L.A. law behind you on this?”
“On this what?” “On this thinking bout Sonderborg.” “Not exactly.” “That don’t mean yes or no.” “I’m not that important,” I said. “The
L.A. law can come in here any time they feel like it—two thirds of them anyway.
The Sheriff’s boys and the D.A.’s boys. I have a friend in the D.A.’s office. I
worked there once. His name is Bernie Ohls. He’s Chief Investigator.” “You give it to him?” “No. I haven’t spoken to him in a month.” “Thinking about giving it to him?” “Not if it interferes with a job I’m
doing.” “Private job?” “Yes.” “Okay, what is it you want?” “What’s Sonderborg’s real racket?” Hemingway took his hands off the wheel and
spat out of the window. “We’re on a nice street here, ain’t we? Nice homes,
nice gardens, nice climate. You hear a lot about crooked cops, or do you?” “Once in a while,” I said. “Okay, how many cops do you find living on
a street even as good as this, with nice lawns and flowers? I’d know four or
five, all vice squad boys. They get all the gravy. Cops like me live in
itty-bitty frame houses on the wrong side of town. Want to see where I live?” “What would it prove?” “Listen, pally,” the big man said
seriously. “You got me on a string, but it could break. Cops don’t go crooked
for money. Not always, not even often. They get caught in the system. They get
you where they have you do what is told them or else. And the guy that sits
back there in the nice big corner office, with the nice suit and the nice
liquor breath he thinks chewing on them seeds makes smell like violets, only it
don’t—he ain’t giving the orders either. You get me?” “What kind of a man is the mayor?” “What kind of guy is a mayor anywhere? A
politician. You think he gives the orders? Nuts. You know what’s the matter
with this country, baby?” “Too much frozen capital, I heard.” “A guy can’t stay honest if he wants to,”
Hemingway said. “That’s what’s the matter with this country. He gets chiseled
out of his pants if he does. You gotta play the game dirty or you don’t eat. A
lot of bastards think all we need is ninety thousand FBI men in clean collars
and brief cases. Nuts. The percentage would get them just the way it does the
rest of us. You know what I think? I think we gotta make this little world all
over again. Now take Moral Rearmament. There you’ve got something. M.R.A. There
you’ve got something, baby.” “If Bay City is a sample of how it works,
I’ll take aspirin,” I said. “You could get too smart,” Hemingway said
softly. “You might not think it, but it could be. You could get so smart you
couldn’t think about anything but bein’ smart. Me, I’m just a dumb cop. I take
orders. I got a wife and two kids and I do what the big shots say. Blane could
tell you things. Me, I’m ignorant.” “Sure Blane has appendicitis? Sure he
didn’t just shoot himself in the stomach for meanness?” “Don’t be that way,” Hemingway complained
and slapped his hands up and down on the wheel. “Try and think nice about
people.” “About Blane?” “He’s human—just like the rest of us,”
Hemingway said. “He’s a sinner—but he’s human.” “What’s Sonderborg’s racket?” “Okay, I was just telling you. Maybe I’m
wrong. I had you figured for a guy that could be sold a nice idea.” “You don’t know what his racket is,” I
said. Hemingway took his handkerchief out and
wiped his with it. “Buddy, I hate to admit it,” he said. “But you ought to know
damn well that if I knew or Blane knew Sonderborg had a racket, either we
wouldn’t of dumped you in there or you wouldn’t ever have come out, not
walking. I’m talking about a real bad racket, naturally. Not fluff stuff like
telling old women’s fortunes out of a crystal ball.” “I don’t think I was meant to come out
walking,” I said. “There’s a drug called scopolamine, truth serum, that
sometimes makes people talk without their knowing it. It’s not sure fire, any
more than hypnotism is. But it sometimes works. I think I was being milked in
there to find out what I knew. But there are only three ways Sonderborg could
have known that there was anything for me to know that might hurt him. Amthor
might have told him, or Moose Malloy might have mentioned to him that I went to
see Jessie Florian, or he might have thought putting me in there was a police
gag.” Hemingway stared at me sadly. “I can’t
even see your dust,” he said. “Who the hell is Moose Malloy?” “A big hunk that killed a man over on
Central Avenue a few days ago. He’s on your teletype, if you ever read it. And
you probably have a reader of him by now.” “So what?” “So Sonderborg was hiding him. I saw him
there, on a bed reading newspapers, the night I snuck out.” “How’d you get out? Wasn’t you locked in?”
“I crocked the orderly with a bed spring.
I was lucky.” “This big guy see you?” “No.” Hemingway kicked the car away from the
curb and a solid grin settled on his face. “Let’s go collect,” he said. “It
figures. It figures swell. Sonderborg was hiding hot boys. If they had dough,
that is. His set-up was perfect for it. Good money, too.” He kicked the car into motion and whirled
around a corner. “Hell, I thought he sold reefers,” he said
disgustedly. “With the right protection behind him. But hell, that’s a small
time racket. A peanut grift.” “Ever hear of the numbers racket? That’s a
small time racket too—if you’re just looking at one piece of it.” Hemingway turned another corner sharply
and shook his heavy head. “Right. And pin ball games and bingo houses and horse
parlors. But add them all up and give one guy control and it makes sense.” “What guy?” He went wooden on me again. His mouth shut
hard and I could see his teeth were biting at each other inside it. We were on
Descanso Street and going east. It was a quiet street even in late afternoon.
As we got towards Twenty-third, it became in some vague manner less quiet. Two
men were studying a palm tree as if figuring out how to move it. A car was
parked near Dr. Sondeborg’s place, but nothing showed in it. Halfway down the
block a man was reading water meters. The house was a cheerful spot by daylight.
Tea rose begonias made a solid pale mass under the front windows and pansies a
blur of color around the base of a white acacia in bloom. A scarlet climbing
rose was just opening its buds on a fan-shaped trellis. There was a bed of
winter sweet peas and a bronze-green humming bird prodding in them delicately.
The house looked like the home of a well-to-do elderly couple who like to garden.
The late afternoon sun on it had a hushed and menacing stillness. Hemingway slid slowly past the house and a
tight little smile tugged at the corners of his mouth. His nose sniffed. He
turned the next corner, and looked in his rear view mirror and stepped up the
speed of the car. After three blocks he braked at the side
of the street again and turned to give me a hard level stare. “L.A. law,” he said. “One of the guys by
the palm tree is called Donnelly. I know him. They got the house covered. So
you didn’t tell your pal downtown, huh?” “I said I didn’t.” “The Chief’ll love this,” Hemingway
snarled. “They come down here and raid a joint and
don’t even stop to say hello.” I said nothing. “They catch this Moose Malloy?” I shook my head. “Not so far as I know.” “How the hell far do you know, buddy?” he
asked very softly. “Not far enough. Is there any connection
between Amthor and Sonderborg?” “Not that I know of.” “Who runs this town?” Silence. “I heard a
gambler named Laird Brunette put up thirty grand to elect the mayor. I heard he
owns the Belvedere Club and both the gambling ships out on the water.” “Might be,” Hemingway said politely. “Where can Brunette be found?” “Why ask me, baby?” “Where would you make for if you lost your
hideout in this town?” “Mexico.” I laughed. “Okay, will you do me
a big favor?” “Glad to.” “Drive me back downtown.” He started the car away from the curb and
tooled it neatly along a shadowed street towards the ocean. The car reached the
City Hall and slid around into the police parking zone and I got out. “Come
round and see me some time,” Hemingway said. “I’ll likely be cleaning
spittoons.” He put his big hand out. “No hard feelings?” “M.R.A.” I said and shook the hand. He grinned all over. He called me back when
I started to walk away. He looked carefully in all directions and leaned his
mouth close to my ear. “Them gambling ships are supposed to be out beyond city
and state jurisdiction,” he said. “Panama registry. If it was me that was—” he
stopped dead, and his bleak eyes began to worry. “I get it,” I said. “I had the same sort
of idea. I don’t know why I bothered so much to get you to have it with me. But
it wouldn’t work—not for just one man.” He nodded, and then he smiled. “M.R.A.” he
said. 34 I lay on my back on a bed in a waterfront
hotel and waited for it to get dark. It was a small front room with a hard bed
and a mattress slightly thicker than the cotton blanket that covered it. A
spring underneath me was broken and stuck into the left side of my back. I lay
there and let it prod me. The reflection of a red neon light glared on the
ceiling. When it made the whole room red it would be dark enough to go out.
Outside cars honked along the alley they called the Speedway. Feet slithered on
the sidewalks below my window. There was a murmur and mutter of coming and
going in the air. The air that seeped in through the rusted screens smelled of
stale frying fat. Far off a voice of the kind that could be heard far off was
shouting: “Get hungry, foks. Get hungry. Nice hot doggies here. Get hungry.” It
got darker. I thought; and thought in my mind moved with a kind of sluggish
stealthiness, as if it was being watched by bitter and sadistic eyes. I thought
of dead eyes looking at a moonless sky, with black blood at the corners of the
mouths beneath them. I thought of nasty old women beaten to death against the
posts of their dirty beds. I thought of a man with bright blond hair who was
afraid and didn’t quite know what he was afraid of, who was sensitive enough to
know that something was wrong, and too vain or too dull to guess what it was
that was wrong. I thought of beautiful rich women who could be had. I thought
of nice slim curious girls who lived alone and could be had too, in a different
way. I thought of cops, tough cops that could be greased and yet were not by
any means all bad, like Hemingway. Fat prosperous cops with Chamber of Commerce
voices, like Chief Wax. Slim, smart and deadly cops like Randall, who for all
their smartness and deadliness were not free to do a clean job in a clean way.
I thought of sour old goats like Nulty who had given up trying. I though of
Indians and psychics and dope doctors. I thought of lots of things. It got
darker. The glare of the red neon sign spread farther and farther across the
ceiling. I sat up on the bed and put my feet on the floor and rubbed the back
of my neck. I got up on my feet and went over to the bowl in the corner and
threw cold water on my face. After a little while I felt a little better, but
very little. I needed a drink, I needed a lot of life insurance, I needed a
vacation, I needed a home in the country. What I had was a coat, a hat and a
gun. I put them on and went out of the room. There was no elevator. The hallways
smelled and the stairs had grimed rails. I went down them, threw the key on the
desk and said I was through. A clerk with a wart on his left eyelid nodded and
a Mexican bellhop in a frayed uniform coat came forward from behind the
dustiest rubber plant in California to take my bags. I didn’t have any bags, so
being a Mexican, he opened the door for me and smiled politely just the same. Outside the narrow street fumed, the
sidewalks swarmed with fat stomachs. Across the street a bingo parlor was going
full blast and beside it a couple of sailors with girls were coming out of a
photographer’s shop where they had probably been having their photos taken
riding on camels. The voice of the hot dog merchant split the dusk like an axe.
A big blue bus blared down the street to the little circle where the streetcar
used to turn on a turntable. I walked that way. After a while there was a faint smell of
ocean. Not very much, but as if they had kept this much just to remind people
this had once been a clean open beach where the waves came in and creamed and
the wind blew and you could smell something besides hot fat and cold sweat. The little sidewalk car came trundling
along the wide concrete walk. I got on it and rode to the end of the line and
got off and sat on a bench where it was quiet and cold and there was a big
brown heap of kelp almost at my feet. Out to sea they had turned the lights on
in the gambling boats. I got back on the sidewalk car the next time it came and
rode back almost to where I had left the hotel. If anybody was tailing me, he was
doing it without moving. I didn’t think there was. In that clean little city
there wouldn’t be enough crime for the dicks to be very good shadows. The black piers glittered their length and
then disappeared into the dark background of night and water. You could still
smell hot fat, but you could smell the ocean too. The hot dog man droned on: “Get hungry, folks, get hungry. Nice hot
doggies. Get hungry.” I spotted him in a white barbecue stand
tickling wienies with a long fork. He was doing a good business even that early
in the year. I had to wait some time to get him alone. “What’s the name of the one farthest out?”
I asked, pointing with my nose. “Montecito.” He
gave me the level steady look. “Could a guy with reasonable dough have
himself a time there?” “What kind of a time?” I laughed, sneeringly, very tough. “Hot doggies,” he chanted. “Nice hot
doggies, folks.” He dropped his voice. “Women?” “Nix. I was figuring on a room with a nice
sea breeze and good food and nobody to bother me. Kind of vacation.” He moved away. “I can’t hear a word you
say,” he said, and then went into his chant. He did some more business. I didn’t know
why I bothered with him. He just had that kind of face. A young couple in
shorts came up and bought hot dogs and strolled away with the boy’s arm around
the girl’s brassiere and each eating the other’s hot dog. The man slid a yard towards me and eyed me
over. “Right now I should be whistling Roses of Picardy,” he said, and paused.
“That would cost you,” he said. “How much?” “Fifty. Not less. Unless they want you for
something.” “This used to be a good town,” I said. “A
cool-off town.” “Thought it still was,” he drawled. “But
why ask me?” “I haven’t an idea,” I said. I threw a
dollar bill on his counter. “Put it in the baby’s bank,” I said. “Or whistle
Roses of Picardy.” He snapped the bill, folded it longways,
folded it across and folded it again. He laid it on the counter and tucked his
middle finger behind his thumb and snapped. The folded-bill hit me lightly in the
chest and fell noiselessly to the ground. I bent and picked it up and turned
quickly. But nobody was behind me that looked like a dick. I leaned against the counter and laid the
dollar bill on it again. “People don’t throw money at me,” I said. “They hand
it to me. Do you mind?” He took the bill, unfolded it, spread it
out and wiped it off with his apron. He punched his cash register and dropped
the bill into the drawer. “They say money don’t stink,” he said. “I
sometimes wonder.” I didn’t say anything. Some more customers
did business with him and went away. The night was cooling fast. “I wouldn’t try the Royal Crown,”
the man said. “That’s for good little squirrels, that stick to their nuts. You
look like dick to me, but that’s your angle. I hope you swim good.” I left him, wondering why I had gone to
him in the first place. Play the hunch. Play the hunch and get stung. In a
little while you wake up with your mouth full of hunches. You can’t order a cup
of coffee without shutting your eyes and stabbing the menu. Play the hunch. I walked around and tried to see if
anybody walked behind me in any particular way. Then I sought out a restaurant
that didn’t smell of frying grease and found one with a purple neon sign and a
cocktail bar behind a reed curtain. A male cutie with hennaed hair drooped at a
bungalow grand piano and tickled the keys lasciviously and sang Stairway to the
Stars in a voice with half the steps missing. I gobbled a dry martini and hurried back
through the reed curtain to the dining room. The eighty-five cent dinner tasted like a
discarded mail bag and was served to me by a waiter who looked as if he would
slug me for a quarter, cut my throat for six bits, and bury me at sea in a
barrel of concrete for a dollar and a half, plus sales tax. 35 It was a long ride for a quarter. The
water taxi, an old launch painted up and glassed in for three-quarters of its
length, slid through the anchored yachts and around the wide pile of stone
which was the end of the breakwater. The swell hit us without warning and
bounced the boat like a cork. But there was plenty of room to be sick that
early in the evening. All the company I had was three couples and the man who
drove the boat, a tough-looking citizen who sat a little on his left hip on account
of having a black leather hip-holster inside his right hip pocket. The three
couples began to chew each other’s faces as soon as we left the shore. I stared back at the lights of Bay City
and tried not to bear down too hard on my dinner. Scattered points of light
drew together and became a jeweled bracelet laid out in the show window of the
night. Then the brightness faded and they were a soft orange glow appearing and
disappearing over the edge of the swell. It was a long smooth even swell with
no whitecaps, and just the right amount of heave to make me glad I hadn’t
pickled my dinner in bar whisky. The taxi slid up and down the swell now with a
sinister smoothness, like a cobra dancing. There was cold in the air, the wet
cold that sailors never get out of their joints. The red neon pencils that
outlined the Royal Crown faded off to the left and dimmed in the gliding
gray ghosts of the sea, then shone out again, as bright as new marbles. We gave this one a wide berth. It looked
nice from a long way off. A faint music came over the water and music over the
water can never be anything but lovely. The Royal Crown seemed to ride
as steady as a pier on its four hawsers. Its landing stage was lit up like a
theater marquee. Then all this faded into remoteness and another, older,
smaller boat began to sneak out of the night towards us. It was not much to
look at. A converted seagoing freighter with scummed and rusted plates, the
superstructure cut down to the boat deck level, and above that two stumpy masts
just high enough for a radio antenna. There was light on the Montecito
also and music floated across the wet dark sea. The spooning couples took their
teeth out of each other’s necks and stared at the ship and giggled. The taxi swept around in a wide curve, careened
just enough to give the passengers a thrill, and eased up to the hemp fenders
along the stage. The taxi’s motor idled and backfired in the fog. A lazy
searchlight beam swept a circle about fifty yards out from the ship. The taxi man hooked to the stage and a
sloe-eyed lad in a blue mess jacket with bright buttons, a bright smile and a
gangster mouth, handed the girls up from the taxi. I was last. The casual neat
way he looked me over told me something about him. The casual neat way he
bumped my shoulder clip told me more. “Nix,” he said softly. “Nix.” He had a smoothly
husky voice, a hard Harry straining himself through a silk handkerchief. He
jerked his chin at the taxi man. The taxi man dropped a short loop over a bit,
turned his wheel a little, and climbed out on the stage. He stepped behind me. “No gats on the boat, laddy. Sorry and all
that rot,” Mess jacket purred. “I could check it. It’s just part of my
clothes. I’m a fellow who wants to see Brunette, on business.” He seemed mildly amused. “Never heard of
him,” he smiled. “On your way, bo.” The taxi man hooked a wrist through my
right arm. “I want to see Brunette,” I said. My voice
sounded weak and frail, like an old lady’s voice. “Let’s not argue,” the sloe-eyed lad said.
“We’re not in Bay City now, not even in California, and by some good opinions
not even in the U.S.A. Beat it.” “Back in the boat,” the taxi man growled
behind me. “I owe you a quarter. Let’s go.” I got back into the boat. Mess jacket
looked at me with his silent sleek smile. I watched it until it was no longer a
smile, no longer a face, no longer anything but a dark figure against the
landing lights. I watched it and hungered. The way back seemed longer. I didn’t
speak to the taxi man and he didn’t speak to me. As I got off at the wharf he
handed me a quarter. “Some other night,” he said wearily, “when
we got more room to bounce you.” Half a dozen customers waiting to get in
stared at me, hearing him. I went past them, past the door of the little
waiting room on the float, towards the shallow steps at the landward end. A big redheaded roughneck in dirty
sneakers and tarry pants and what was left of a torn blue sailor’s jersey and a
streak of black down the side of his face straightened from the railing and
bumped into me casually. I stopped. He looked too big. He had three
inches on me and thirty pounds. But it was getting to be time for me to put my
fist into somebody’s teeth even if all I got for it was a wooden arm. The light was dim and mostly behind him.
“What’s the matter, pardner?” he drawled. “No soap on the hell ship?” “Go darn your shirt,” I told him. “Your
belly is sticking out.” “Could be worse,” he said. “The gat’s kind
of bulgy under the light suit at that.” “What pulls your nose into it?” “Jesus, nothing at all. Just curiosity. No
offense, pal.” “Well, get the hell out of my way then.” “Sure. I’m just resting here.” He smiled a slow tired smile. His voice
was soft, dreamy, so delicate for a big man that it was startling. It made me
think of another soft-voiced big man I had strangely liked. “You got the wrong approach,” he said
sadly. “Just call me Red.” “Step aside, Red. The best people make
mistakes. I feel one crawling up my back.” He looked thoughtfully this way and that.
He had me into a corner of the shelter on the float. We seemed more or less
alone. “You want on the Monty? Can be
done. If you got a reason.” People in gay clothes and gay faces went
past us and got into the taxi. I waited for them to pass. “How much is the reason?” “Fifty bucks. Ten more if you bleed in my
boat.” I started around him. “Twenty-five,” he said softly. “Fifteen if
you come back with friends.” “I don’t have any friends,” I said, and
walked away. He didn’t try to stop me. I turned right along the cement walk down
which the little electric cars come and go, trundling like baby carriages and
blowing little horns that wouldn’t startle an expectant mother. At the foot of
the first pier there was a flaring bingo parlor, jammed full of people already.
I went into it and stood against the wall behind the players, where a lot of
other people stood and waited for a place to sit down. I watched a few numbers go up on the
electric indicator, listened to the table men call them off, tried to spot the
house players and couldn’t, and turned to leave. A large blueness that smelled of tar took
shape beside me. “No got the dough—or just tight with it?” the gentle voice
asked in my ear. I looked at him again. He had the eyes you
never see, that you only read about. Violet eyes. Almost purple. Eyes like a
girl, a lovely girl. His skin was as soft as silk. Lightly reddened, but it
would never tan. It was too delicate. He was bigger than Hemingway and younger,
by many years. He was not as big as Moose Malloy, but he looked very fast on
his feet. His hair was that shade of red that glints with gold. But except for
the eyes he had a plain farmer face, with no stagy kind of handsomeness. “What’s your racket?” he asked. “Private
eye?” “Why do I have to tell you?” I snarled. “I kind of thought that was it,” he said.
“Twenty-five too high? No expense account?” “No.” He sighed. “It was a bum idea I had
anyway,” he said. “They’ll tear you to pieces out there.” “I wouldn’t be surprised. What’s your
racket?” “A dollar here, a dollar there. I was on
the cops once. They broke me.” “Why tell me?” He looked surprised. “It’s true.” “You must have been leveling.” He smiled faintly. “Know a man named Brunette?” The faint smile stayed on his face. Three
bingos were made in a row. They worked fast in there. A tall beak-faced man
with sallow sunken cheeks and a wrinkled suit stepped close to us and leaned
against the wall and didn’t look at us. Red leaned gently towards him and
asked: “Is there something we could tell you, pardner?” The tall beak-faced man grinned and moved
away. Red grinned and shook the building leaning against the wall again. “I’ve met a man who could take you,” I
said. “I wish there was more,” he said gravely.
“A big guy costs money. Things ain’t scaled for him. He costs to feed, to put
clothes on, and he can’t sleep with his feet in the bed. Here’s how it works.
You might not think this is a good place to talk, but it is. Any finks drift
along I’ll know them and the rest of the crowd is watching those numbers and nothing
else. I got a boat with an under-water by-pass. That is, I can borrow one.
There’s a pier down the line without lights. I know a loading port on the Monty
I can open. I take a load out there once in a while. There ain’t many guys
below decks.” “They have a searchlight and lookouts,” I
said. “We can make it.” I got my wallet out and slipped a twenty
and a five against my stomach and folded them small. The purple eyes watched me
without seeming to. “One way?” “Fifteen was the word.” “The market took a spurt.” A tarry hand swallowed the bills. He moved
silently away. He faded into the hot darkness outside the doors. The beak-nosed
man materialized at my left side and said quietly: “I think I know that fellow in sailor
clothes. Friend of yours? I think I seen him before.” I straightened away from the wall and
walked away from him without speaking, out of the doors, then left, watching a
high head that moved along from electrolier to electrolier a hundred feet ahead
of me. After a couple of minutes I turned into a space between two concession
shacks. The beak-nosed man appeared, strolling with his eyes on the ground. I
stepped out to his side. “Good evening,” I said. “May I guess your
weight for a quarter?” I leaned against him. There was a gun under the wrinkled
coat. His eyes looked at me without emotion. “Am
I goin’ to have to pinch you, son? I’m posted along this stretch to maintain
law and order.” “Who’s dismaintaining it right now?” “Your friend had a familiar look to me.” “He ought to. He’s a cop.” “Aw hell,” the beak-nosed man said
patiently. “That’s where I seen him. Good night to you.” He turned and strolled back the way he had
come. The tall head was out of sight now. It didn’t worry me. Nothing about
that lad would ever worry me. I walked on slowly. 36 Beyond the electroliers, beyond the beat
and toot of the small sidewalk cars, beyond the smell of hot fat and popcorn
and the shrill children and the barkers in the peep shows, beyond everything
but the smell of the ocean and the suddenly clear line of the shore and the
creaming fall of the waves into the pebbled spume. I walked almost alone now.
The noises died behind me, the hot dishonest light became a fumbling glare.
Then the lightless finger of a black pier jutted seaward into the dark. This
would be the one. I turned to go out on it. Red stood up from a box against the
beginning of the piles and spoke upwards to me. “Right,” he said. “You go on
out to the sea steps. I gotta go and get her and warm her up.” “Waterfront cop followed me. That guy in
the bingo parlor. I had to stop and speak to him.” “Olson. Pickpocket detail. He’s good too.
Except once in a while he will lift a leather and plant it, to keep up his
arrest record. That’s being a shade too good, or isn’t it?” “For Bay City I’d say just about right.
Let’s get going. I’m getting the wind up. I don’t want to blow this fog away.
It doesn’t look much but it would help a lot.” “It’ll last enough to fool a searchlight,”
Red said. “They got Tommy-guns on that boat deck. You go on out the pier. I’ll
be along.” He melted into the dark and I went out the
dark boards, slipping on fish-slimed planking. There was a low dirty railing at
the far end. A couple leaned in a corner. They went away, the man swearing. For ten minutes I listened to the water
slapping the piles. A night bird whirred in the dark, the faint grayness of a
wing cut across my vision and disappeared. A plane droned high in the ceiling.
Then far off a motor barked and roared and kept on roaring like half a dozen truck
engines. After a while the sound eased and dropped, then suddenly there was no
sound at all. More minutes passed. I went back to the
sea steps and moved down them as cautiously as a cat on a wet floor. A dark
shape slid out of the night and something thudded. A voice said: “All set. Get
in.” I got into the boat and sat beside him
under the screen. The boat slid out over the water. There was no sound from its
exhaust now but an angry bubbling along both sides of the shell. Once more the
lights of Bay City became something distantly luminous beyond the rise and fall
of alien waves. Once more the garish lights of the Royal Crown slid off
to one side, the ship seeming to preen itself like a fashion model on a
revolving platform. And once again the ports of the good ship Montecito
grew out of the black Pacific and the slow steady sweep of the searchlight
turned around it like the beam of a lighthouse. “I’m scared,” I said suddenly. “I’m scared
stiff.” Red throttled down the boat and let it
slide up and down the swell as though the water moved underneath and the boat
stayed in the same place. He turned his face and stared at me. “I’m afraid of death and despair,” I said.
“Of dark water and drowned men’s faces and skulls with empty eye sockets. I’m
afraid of dying, of being nothing, of not finding a man named Brunette.” He chuckled. “You had me going for a
minute. You sure give yourself a pep talk. Brunette might be any place. On
either of the boats, at the club he owns, back east, Reno, in his slippers at
home. That all you want?” “I want a man named Malloy, a huge brute
who got out of the Oregon State pen a while back after an eight-year stretch
for bank robbery. He was hiding out in Bay City.” I told him about it. I told
him a great deal more than I intended to. It must have been his eyes. At the end he thought and then spoke
slowly and what he said had wisps of fog clinging to it, like the beads on a
mustache. Maybe that made it seem wiser than it was, maybe not. “Some of it makes sense,” he said. “Some
not. Some I wouldn’t know about, some I would. If this Sonderborg was running a
hideout and peddling reefers and sending boys out to heist jewels off rich
ladies with a wild look in their eyes, it stands to reason that he had an in
with the city government, but that don’t mean they knew everything he did or
that every cop on the force knew he had an in. Could be Blane did and
Hemingway, as you call him, didn’t. Blane’s bad, the other guy is just tough
cop, neither bad nor good, neither crooked nor honest, full of guts and just
dumb enough, like me, to think being on the cops is a sensible way to make a
living. This psychic fellow doesn’t figure either way. He bought himself a line
of protection in the best market, Bay City, and he used it when he had to. You
never know what a guy like that is up to and so you never know what he has on
his conscience or is afraid of. Could be he’s human and fell for a customer
once in a while. Them rich dames are easier to make than paper dolls. So my
hunch about your stay in Sonderborg’s place is simply that Blane knew
Sonderborg would be scared when he found out who you were—and the story they
told Sonderborg is probably what he told you, that they found you wandering
with your head dizzy—and Sonderborg wouldn’t know what to do with you and he
would be afraid either to let you go or to knock you off, and after long enough
Blane would drop around and raise the ante on him. That’s all there was to
that. It just happened they could use you and they did it. Blane might know about
Malloy too. I wouldn’t put it past him.” I listened and watched the slow sweep of
the searchlight and the coming and going of the water taxi far over to the
right. “I know how these boys figure,” Red said.
“The trouble with cops is not that they’re dumb or crooked or tough, but that
they think just being a cop gives them a little something they didn’t have
before. Maybe it did once, but not any more. They’re topped by too many smart
minds. That brings us to Brunette. He don’t run the town. He couldn’t be
bothered. He put up big money to elect a mayor so his water taxis wouldn’t be
bothered. If there was anything in particular he wanted, they would give it to
him. Like a while ago one of his friends, a lawyer, was pinched for a drunk
driving felony and Brunette got the charge reduced to reckless driving. They
changed the blotter to do it, and that’s a felony too. Which gives you an idea.
His racket is gambling and all rackets tie together these days. So he might
handle reefers, or touch a percentage from some one of his workers he gave the
business to. He might know Sonderborg and he might not. But the jewel heist is
out. Figure the work these boys done for eight grand. It’s a laugh to think
Brunette would have anything to do with that.” “Yeah,” I said. “There was a man murdered
too—remember?” “He didn’t do that either, nor have it
done. If Brunette had that done, you wouldn’t have found any body. You never
know what might be stitched into a guy’s clothes. Why chance it? Look what I’m
doing for you for twenty-five bucks. What would Brunette get done with the
money he has to spend?” “Would he have a man killed?” Red thought for a moment. “He might. He
probably has. But he’s not a tough guy. These racketeers are a new type. We
think about them the way we think about old time yeggs or needle-up punks.
Big-mouthed police commissioners on the radio yell that they’re all yellow
rats, that they’ll kill women and babies and howl for mercy if they see a
police uniform. They ought to know better than to try to sell the public that
stuff. There’s yellow cops and there’s yellow torpedoes—but damn few of either.
And as for the top men, like Brunette—they didn’t get there by murdering
people. They got there by guts and brains—and they don’t have the group courage
the cops have either. But above all they’re business men. What they do is for
money. Just like other business men. Sometimes a guy gets badly in the way.
Okay. Out. But they think plenty before they do it. What the hell am I giving a
lecture for?” “A man like Brunette wouldn’t hide
Malloy,” I said. “After he had killed two people.” “No. Not unless there was some other
reason than money. Want to go back?” “No.” Red moved his hands on the wheel. The boat
picked up speed. “Don’t think I like these bastards,” he said. “I hate
their guts.” 37 The revolving searchlight was a pale
mist-ridden finger that barely skimmed the waves a hundred feet or so beyond
the ship. It was probably more for show than anything else. Especially at this
time in the evening. Anyone who had plans for hijacking the take on one of
these gambling boats would need plenty of help and would pull the job about
four in the morning, when the crowd was thinned down to a few bitter gamblers,
and the crew were all dull with fatigue. Even then it would be a poor way to
make money. It had been tried once. A taxi curved to the landing stage,
unloaded, went back shorewards. Red held his speedboat idling just beyond the
weep of the searchlight. If they lifted it a few feet, just for fun—but they
didn’t. It passed languidly and the dull water glowed with it and the speedboat
slid across the line and closed in fast under the overhang, past the two huge
scummy stern hawsers. We sidled up to the greasy plates of the hull as coyly as
a hotel dick getting set to ease a hustler out of his lobby. Double iron doors loomed high above us,
and they looked too high to reach and too heavy to open even if we could reach
them. The speedboat scuffed the Montecito’s ancient sides and the swell
slapped loosely at the shell under our feet. A big shadow rose in the gloom at
my side and a coiled rope slipped upwards through the air, slapped, caught, and
the end ran down and splashed in water. Red fished it out with a boathook,
pulled it tight and fastened the end to something on the engine cowling. There
was just enough fog to make everything seem unreal. The wet air was as cold as
the ashes of love. Red leaned close to me and his breath
tickled my ear. “She rides too high. Come a good blow and she’d wave her screws
in the air. We got to climb those plates just the same.” “I can hardly wait,” I said, shivering. He put my hands on the wheel, turned it
just as he wanted it, set the throttle, and told me to hold the boat just as
she was. There was an iron ladder bolted close to the plates, curving with the
hull, its rungs probably as slippery as a greased pole. Going up it looked as tempting as climbing
over the cornice of an office building. Red reached for it, after wiping his
hands hard on his pants to get some tar on them. He hauled himself up
noiselessly, without even a grunt, and his sneakers caught the metal rungs, and
he braced his body out almost at right angles to get more traction. The searchlight beam swept far outside us
now. Light bounced off the water and seemed to make my face as obvious as a
flare, but nothing happened. Then there was a dull creak of heavy hinges over
my head. A faint ghost of yellowish light trickled out into the fog and died.
The outline of one half of the loading port showed. It couldn’t have been
bolted from inside. I wondered why. The whisper was a mere sound, without
meaning. I left the wheel and started up. It was the hardest journey I ever
made. It landed me panting and wheezing in a sour hold littered with packing
boxes and barrels and coils of rope and clumps of rusted chain. Rats screamed
in dark corners. The yellow light came from a narrow door on the far side. Red put his lips against my ear. “From
here we take a straight walk to the boiler room catwalk. They’ll have steam in
one auxiliary, because they don’t have no Diesels on this piece of cheese.
There will be probably one guy below. The crew doubles in brass up on the play
decks, table men and spotters and waiters and so on. They all got to sign on as
something that sounds like ship. From the boiler room I’ll show you a
ventilator with no grating in it. It goes to the boat deck and the boat deck is
out of bounds. But it’s all yours—while you live.” “You must have relatives on board,” I
said. “Funnier things have happened. Will you
come back fast?” “I ought to make a good splash from the
boat deck,” I said, and got my wallet out. “I think this rates a little more
money. Here. Handle the body as if it was your own.” “You don’t owe me nothing more, pardner.” “I’m buying the trip back—even if I don’t
use it. Take the money before I bust out crying and wet your shirt.” “Need a little help up there?” “All I need is a silver tongue and the one
I have is like lizard’s back.” “Put your dough away,” Red said. “You paid
me for the trip back. I think you’re scared.” He took hold of my hand. His was
strong, hard, warm and slightly sticky. “I know you’re scared,” he
whispered. “I’ll get over it,” I said. “One way or
another.” He turned away from me with a curious look
I couldn’t read in that light. I followed him among the cases and barrels, over
the raised iron sill of the door, into a long dim passage with the ship smell.
We came out of this on to a grilled steel platform, slick with oil, and went
down a steel ladder that was hard to hold on to. The slow hiss of the oil
burners filled the air now and blanketed all other sound. We turned towards the
hiss through mountains of silent iron. Around a corner we looked at a short dirty
wop in a purple silk shirt who sat in a wired-together office chair, under a
naked hanging light, and read the evening paper with the aid of a black
forefinger and steel-rimmed spectacles that had probably belonged to his
grandfather. Red stepped behind him noiselessly. He
said gently: “Hi, Shorty. How’s all the bambinos?” The Italian opened his mouth with a click
and threw a hand at the opening of his purple shirt. Red hit him on the angle
of the jaw and caught him. He put him down on the floor gently and began to
tear the purple shirt into strips. “This is going to hurt him more than the
poke on the button,” Red said softly. “But the idea is a guy going up a
ventilator ladder makes a lot of racket down below. Up above they won’t hear a
thing.” He bound and gagged the Italian neatly and
folded his glasses and put them in a safe place and we went along to the
ventilator that had no grating in it. I looked up and saw nothing but
blackness. “Goodbye,” I said. “Maybe you need a little help.” I shook myself like a wet dog. “I need a
company of marines. But either I do it alone or I don’t do it. So long.” “How long will you be?” His voice still
sounded worried. “An hour or less.” He stared at me and chewed his lip. Then
he nodded. “Sometimes a guy has to,” he said. “Drop by that bingo parlor, if
you get time.” He walked away softly, took four steps,
and came back. “That open loading port,” he said. “That might buy you
something. Use it.” He went quickly. 38 Cold air rushed down the ventilator. It
seemed a long way to the top. After three minutes that felt like an hour I
poked my head out cautiously from the hornlike opening. Canvas-sheeted boats
were gray blurs near by. Low voices muttered in the dark. The beam of the
searchlight circled slowly. It came from a point still higher, probably a
railed platform at the top of one of the stumpy masts. There would be a lad up
there with a Tommy gun too, perhaps even a light Browning. Cold job, cold
comfort when somebody left the loading port unbolted so nicely. Distantly music throbbed like the phony
bass of a cheap radio. Overhead a masthead light and through the higher layers
of fog a few bitter stars stared down. I climbed out of the ventilator, slipped
my .38 from my shoulder clip and held it curled against my ribs, hiding it with
my sleeve. I walked three silent steps and listened. Nothing happened. The
muttering talk had stopped, but not on my account. I placed it now, between two
lifeboats. And out of the night and the fog, as it mysteriously does, enough
light gathered into one focus to shine on the dark hardness of a machine gun
mounted on a high tripod and swung down over the rail. Two men stood near it,
motionless, not smoking, and their voices began to mutter again, a quiet
whisper that never became words. I listened to the muttering too long.
Another voice spoke clearly behind me. “Sorry, guests are not allowed on the boat
deck.” I turned, not too quickly, and looked at
his hands. They were light blurs and empty. I stepped sideways nodding and the end of
a boat hid us. The man followed me gently, his shoes soundless on the damp
deck. “I guess I’m lost,” I said. “I guess you are.” He had a youngish
voice, not chewed out of marble. “But there’s a door at the bottom of the
companionway. It has a spring lock on it. It’s a good lock. There used to be an
open stairway with a chain and a brass sign. We found the livelier element
would step over that.” He was talking a long time, either to be
nice, or to be waiting. I didn’t know which. I said: “Somebody must have left
the door open.” The shadowed head nodded. It was lower
than mine. “You can see the spot that puts us in,
though. If somebody did leave it open, the boss won’t like it a nickel. If
somebody didn’t, we’d like to know how you got up here. I’m sure you get the
idea.” “It seems a simple idea. Let’s go down and
talk to him about it.” “You come with a party?” “A very nice party.” “You ought to have stayed with them.” “You know how it is—you turn your head and
some other guy is buying her a drink.” He chuckled. Then he moved his chin
slightly up and down. I dropped and did a frog leap sideways and
the swish of the blackjack was a long spent sigh in the quiet air. It was
getting to be that every blackjack in the neighborhood swung at me
automatically. The tall one swore. I said: “Go ahead and be heroes.” I clicked the safety catch loudly. Sometimes even a bad scene will rock the
house. The tall one stood rooted, and I could see the blackjack swinging at his
wrist. The one I had been talking to thought it over without any hurry. “This won’t buy you a thing,” he said
gravely. “You’ll never get off the boat.” “I thought of that. Then I thought how
little you’d care.” It was still a bum scene. “You want what?” he said quietly. “I have a loud gun,” I said. “But it
doesn’t have to go off. I want to talk to Brunette.” “He went to San Diego on business.” “I’ll talk to his stand-in.” “You’re quite a lad,” the nice one said.
“We’ll go down. You’ll put the heater up before we go through the door.” “I’ll put the heater up when I’m sure I’m
going through door.” He laughed lightly. “Go back to your post,
Slim. I’ll look into this.” He moved lazily in front of me and the
tall one appeared to fade into the dark. “Follow me, then.” We moved Indian file across the deck. We
went down brassbound slippery steps. At the bottom was a thick door. He opened
it and looked at the lock. He smiled, nodded, held the door for me and I
stepped through, pocketing the gun. The door closed and clicked behind us. He
said: “Quiet evening, so far.” There was a gilded arch in front of us and
beyond it a gaming room, not very crowded. It looked much like any other gaming
room. At the far end there was a short glass bar and some stools. In the middle
a stairway going down and up this the music swelled and faded. I heard roulette
wheels. A man was dealing faro to a single customer. There were not more than
sixty people in the room. At the faro table there was a pile of yellowbacks
that would start a bank. The player was an elderly white-haired man who looked
politely attentive to the dealer, but no more. Two quiet men in dinner jackets came
through the archway sauntering, looking at nothing. That had to be expected.
They strolled towards us and the short slender man with me waited for them.
They were well beyond the arch before they let their hands find their side
pockets, looking for cigarettes of course. “From now on we have to have a little
organization here,” the short man said. “I don’t think you’ll mind?” “You’re Brunette,” I said suddenly. He shrugged. “Of course.” “You don’t look so tough,” I said. “I hope not.” The two men in dinner jackets edged me
gently. “In here,” Brunette said. “We can talk at
ease.” He opened the door and they took me into
dock. The room was like a cabin and not like a
cabin. Two brass lamps swung in gimbals hung above a dark desk that was not
wood, possibly plastic. At the end were two bunks in grained wood. The lower of
them was made up and on the top one were half a dozen stacks of phonograph
record books. A big combination radio-phonograph stood in the corner. There was
a red leather chesterfield, a red carpet, smoking stands, a tabouret with
cigarettes and a decanter and glasses, a small bar sitting cattycorners at the
opposite end from the bunks. “Sit down,” Brunette said and went around
the desk. There were a lot of business-like papers on the desk, with columns of
figures, done on a bookkeeping machine. He sat in a tall backed director’s
chair and tilted it a little and looked me over. Then he stood up again and
stripped off his overcoat and scarf and tossed them to one side. He sat down
again. He picked a pen up and tickled the lobe of one ear with it. He had a cat
smile, but I like cats. He was neither young nor old, neither fat
nor thin. Spending a lot of time on or near the ocean had given him a good
healthy complexion. His hair was nut-brown and waved naturally and waved still
more at sea. His forehead was narrow and brainy and his eyes held a delicate
menace. They were yellowish in color. He had nice hands, not babied to the point
of insipidity, but well-kept. His dinner clothes were midnight blue, I judged,
because they looked so black. I thought his pearl was a little too large, but
that might have been jealousy. He looked at me for quite a long time
before he said: “He has a gun.” One of the velvety tough guys leaned
against the middle of my spine with something that was probably not a fishing
rod. Exploring hands removed the gun and looked for others. “Anything else?” a voice asked. Brunette shook his head. “Not now.” One of the gunners slid my automatic
across the desk. Brunette put the pen down and picked up a letter opener and
pushed the gun around gently on his blotter. “Well,” he said quietly, looking past my
shoulder. “Do I have to explain what I want now?” One of them went out quickly and shut the
door. The other was so still he wasn’t there. There was a long easy silence,
broken by the distant hum of voices and the deep-toned music and somewhere down
below a dull almost imperceptible throbbing. “Drink?” “Thanks.” The gorilla mixed a couple at the little
bar. He didn’t try to hide the glasses while he did it. He placed one on each
side of the desk, on black glass scooters. “Cigarette?” “Thanks.” “Egyptian all right?” “Sure.” We lit up. We drank. It tasted like good
Scotch. The gorilla didn’t drink. “What I want—” I began. “Excuse me, but that’s rather unimportant,
isn’t it?” The soft catlike smile and the lazy
half-closing of the yellow eyes. The door opened and the other one came
back and with him was Mess jacket, gangster mouth and all. He took one look at
me and his face went oyster-white. “He didn’t get past me,” he said swiftly,
curling one end of his lips. “He had a gun,” Brunette said, pushing it
with the letter opener. “This gun. He even pushed it into my back more or less,
on the boat deck.” “Not past me, boss,” Mess jacket said just
as swiftly. Brunette raised his yellow eyes slightly
and smiled at me. “Well?” “Sweep him out,” I said. “Squash him
somewhere else.” “I can prove it by the taxi man,” Mess
jacket snarled. “You’ve been off the stage since
five-thirty?” “Not a minute, boss.” “That’s no answer. An empire can fall in a
minute.” “Not a second, boss.” “But he can be had,” I said, and laughed. Mess jacket took the smooth gliding step
of a boxer and his fist lashed like a whip. It almost reached my temple. There
was a dull thud. His fist seemed to melt in midair. He slumped sideways and
clawed at a corner of the desk, then rolled on his back. It was nice to see
somebody else get sapped for a change. Brunette went on smiling at me. “I hope you’re not doing him an
injustice,” Brunette said. “There’s still the matter of the door to the
companionway.” “Accidentally open.” “Could you think of any other idea?” “Not in such a crowd.” “I’ll talk to you alone,” Brunette said,
not looking at anyone but me. The gorilla lifted Mess jacket by the
armpits and dragged him across the cabin and his partner opened an inner door.
They went through. The door closed. “All right,” Brunette said. “Who are you
and what do you want?” “I’m a private detective and I want to
talk to a man named Moose Malloy.” “Show me you’re a private dick.” I showed him. He tossed the wallet back
across the desk. His wind-tanned lips continued to smile and the smile was
getting stagy. “I’m investigating a murder,” I said. “The
murder of a man named Marriott on the bluff near your Belvedere Club last
Thursday night. This murder happens to be connected with another murder, of a
woman, done by Malloy, an ex-con and bank robber and all-round tough guy.” He nodded. “I’m not asking you yet what it
has to do me. I assume you’ll come to that. Suppose you tell me how you got on
my boat?” “I told you.” “It wasn’t true,” he said gently. “Marlowe
is the name? It wasn’t true, Marlowe. You know that. The kid down on the stage
isn’t lying. I pick my men carefully.” “You own a piece of Bay City,” I said. “I
don’t know how big a piece, but enough for what you want. A man named
Sonderborg has been running a hideout there. He been running reefers and
stickups and hiding hot boys. Naturally, he couldn’t do that without
connections. I don’t think he could do it without you. Malloy was staying with
him. Malloy has left. Malloy is about seven feet tall and hard to hide. I think
he could hide nicely on a gambling boat.” “You’re simple,” Brunette said softly.
“Supposing I wanted to hide him, why should I take the risk out here?” He
sipped his drink. “After all I’m in another business. It’s hard enough to keep
a good taxi service running with out a lot of trouble. The world is full of
places a crook can hide. If he has money. Could you think of a better idea?” “I could, but to hell with it.” “I can’t do anything for you. So how did
you get on the boat?” “I don’t care to say.” “I’m afraid I’ll have to have you made to
say, Marlowe.” His teeth glinted in the light from the brass ship’s lamps.
“After all, it can be done.” “If I tell you, will you get word to
Malloy?” “What word?” I reached for my wallet lying on the desk
and drew a card from it and turned it over. I put the wallet away and got a
pencil instead. I wrote five words on the back of the card and pushed it across
the desk. Brunette took it and read what I had written on it. “It means nothing
to me,” he said. “It will mean something to Malloy.” He leaned back and stared at me. “I don’t
make you out. You risk your hide to come out here and hand me a card to pass on
to some thug I don’t even know. There’s no sense to it.” “There isn’t if you don’t know him.” “Why didn’t you leave your gun ashore and
come aboard the usual way?” “I forgot the first time. Then I knew that
toughie in the mess jacket would never let me on. Then I bumped into a fellow
who knew another way.” His yellow eyes lighted as with a new
flame. He smiled and said nothing. “This other fellow is no crook but he’s
been on the beach with his ears open. You have a loading port that has been
unbarred on the inside and you have a ventilator shaft out of which the grating
has been removed. There’s one man to knock over to get to the boat deck. You’d
better check your crew list, Brunette.” He moved his lips softly, one over the
other. He looked down at the card again. “Nobody named Malloy is on board this
boat,” he said. “But if you’re telling the truth about that loading port, I’ll
buy.” “Go and look at it.” He still looked down. “If there’s any way
I can get word to Malloy, I will. I don’t know why I bother.” “Take a look at that loading port.” He sat very still for a moment, then
leaned forward and pushed the gun across the desk to me. “The things I do,” he mused, as if he was
alone. “I run towns, I elect mayors, I corrupt police, I peddle dope, I hide
out crooks, I heist old women strangled with pearls. What a lot of time I
have.” He laughed shortly. “What a lot of time.” I reached for my gun and tucked it back
under my arm. Brunette stood up. “I promise nothing,” he said, eyeing me
steadily. “But I believe you.” “Of course not.” “You took a long chance to hear so
little.” “Yes.” “Well—” he made a meaningless gesture and
then put his hand across the desk. “Shake hands with a chump,” he said
softly. I shook hands with him. His hand was small
and firm and a little hot. “You wouldn’t tell me how you found out
about this loading port?” “I can’t. But the man who told me is no
crook.” “I could make you tell,” he said, and
immediately shook his head. “No. I believed you once. I’ll believe you again.
Sit still and have another drink.” He pushed a buzzer. The door at the back
opened and one of the nice-tough guys came in. “Stay here. Give him a drink, if he wants
it. No rough stuff.” The torpedo sat down and smiled at me
calmly. Brunette went quickly out of the office. I smoked. I finished my drink.
The torpedo made me another. I finished that, and another cigarette. Brunette came back and washed his hands
over in the corner, then sat down at his desk again. He jerked his head at the
torpedo. The torpedo went out silently. The yellow eyes studied me. “You win,
Marlowe. And I have one hundred and sixty-four men on my crew list. Well—” he
shrugged. “You can go back by the taxi. Nobody will bother you. As to your
message, I have a few contacts. I’ll use them. Good night. I probably should
say thanks. For the demonstration.” “Good night,” I said, and stood up and
went out. There was a new man on the landing stage.
I rode to shore on a different taxi. I went along to the bingo parlor and
leaned against the wall in the crowd. Red came along in a few minutes and leaned
beside me against the wall. “Easy, huh?” Red said softly, against the
heavy clear voices of the table men calling the numbers. “Thanks to you. He bought. He’s worried.” Red looked this way and that and turned
his lips a little more close to my ear. “Get your man?” “No. But I’m hoping Brunette will find a
way to get him a message.” Red turned his head and looked at the
tables again. He yawned and straightened away from the wall. The beak-nosed man
was in again. Red stepped over to him and said: “Hiya, Olson,” and almost
knocked the man off his feet pushing past him. Olson looked after him sourly and
straightened his hat. Then he spat viciously on the floor. As soon as he had gone, I left the place
and went along to the parking lot back towards the tracks where I had left my
car. I drove back to Hollywood and put the car
away and went up to the apartment. I took my shoes off and walked around in
my socks feeling the floor with my toes. They would still get numb again once
in a while. Then I sat down on the side of the
pulled-down bed and tried to figure time. It couldn’t be done. It might take
hours or days to find Malloy. He might never be found until the police got him.
If they ever did—alive. 39 It was about ten o’clock when I called the
Grayle number in Bay City. I thought it would probably be too late to catch
her, but it wasn’t. I fought my way through a maid and the butler and finally
heard her voice on the line. She sounded breezy and well primed for the
evening. “I promised to call you,” I said. “It’s a
little late, but I’ve had a lot to do.” “Another stand-up?” Her voice got cool. “Perhaps not. Does your chauffeur work
this late?” “He works as late as I tell him to.” “How about dropping by to pick me up? I’ll
be getting squeezed into my commencement suit.” “Nice of you,” she drawled. “Should I
really bother?” Amthor had certainly done a wonderful job with her centers of
speech—if anything had ever been wrong with them. “I’d show you my etching.” “Just one etching?” “It’s just a single apartment.” “I heard they had such things,” she drawled
again, then changed her tone. “Don’t act so hard to get. You have a lovely
build, mister. And don’t ever let anyone tell you different. Give me the
address again.” I gave it to her and the apartment number.
“The lobby door is locked,” I said. “But I’ll go down and slip the catch.” “That’s fine,” she said. “I won’t have to
bring my jimmy.” She hung up, leaving me with a curious
feeling of having talked to somebody that didn’t exist. I went down to the lobby and slipped the
catch and then took a shower and put my pajamas on and lay down on the bed. I
could have slept for a week. I dragged myself up off the bed again and set the
catch on the door, which I had forgotten to do, and walked through a deep hard
snowdrift out to the kitchenette and laid out glasses and a bottle of liqueur
Scotch I had been saving for a really high-class seduction. I lay down on the bed again. “Pray,” I
said out loud. “There’s nothing left but prayer.” I closed my eyes. The four walls of the
room seemed to hold the throb of a boat, the still air seemed to drip with fog
and rustle with sea wind. I smelled the rank sour smell of a disused hold. I
smelled engine oil and saw a wop in a purple shirt reading under a naked light
bulb with his grandfather’s spectacles. I climbed and climbed up a ventilator
shaft. I climbed the Himalayas and stepped out on top and guys with machine
guns were all around me. I talked with a small and somehow very human
yellow-eyed man who was a racketeer and probably worse. I thought of the giant
with the red hair and the violet eyes, who was probably the nicest man I had
ever met. I stopped thinking. Lights moved behind my
closed lids. I was lost in space. I was a gilt-edged sap come back from a vain
adventure. I was a hundred dollar package of dynamite that went off with a
noise like a pawnbroker looking at a dollar watch. I was a pink-headed bug
crawling up the side of the City Hall. I was asleep. I woke slowly, unwillingly, and my eyes
stared at reflected light on the ceiling from the lamp. Something moved gently
in the room. The movement was furtive and quiet and
heavy. I listened to it. Then I turned my head slowly and looked at Moose
Malloy. There were shadows and he moved in the shadows, as noiselessly as I had
seen him once before. A gun in his hand had a dark oily business-like sheen.
His hat was pushed back on his black curly hair and his nose sniffed, like the
nose of a hunting dog. He saw me open my eyes. He came softly
over to the side of the bed and stood looking down at me. “I got your note,” he said. “I make the
joint clean. I don’t make no cops outside. If this is a plant, two guys goes
out in baskets.” I rolled a little on the bed and he felt
swiftly under the pillows. His face was still wide and pale and his deep-set
eyes were still somehow gentle. He was wearing an overcoat tonight. It fitted
him where it touched. It was burst out in one shoulder seam, probably just
getting it on. It would be the largest size they had, but not large enough for
Moose Malloy. “I hoped you’d drop by,” I said. “No
copper knows any thing about this. I just wanted to see you.” “Go on,” he said. He moved sideways to a table and put the
gun down and dragged his overcoat off and sat down in my best easy chair. It
creaked, but it held. He leaned back slowly and arranged the gun so that it was
close to his right hand. He dug a pack of cigarettes out of his pocket and
shook one loose and put it into his mouth without touching it with his fingers.
A match flared on a thumbnail. The sharp smell of the smoke drifted across the
room. “You ain’t sick or anything?” he said. “Just resting. I had a hard day.” “Door was open. Expecting someone?” “A dame.” He stared at me thoughtfully. “Maybe she won’t come,” I said. “If she
does, I’ll stall her.” “What dame?” “Oh, just a dame. If she comes, I’ll get
rid of her. I’d rather talk to you.” His very faint smile hardly moved his
mouth. He puffed his cigarette awkwardly, as if it was too small for his
fingers to hold with comfort. “What made you think I was on the Monty?”
he asked. “A Bay City cop. It’s a long story and too
full of guessing.” “Bay City cops after me?” “Would that bother you?” He smiled the faint smile again. He shook
his head slightly. “You killed a woman,” I said. “Jessie
Florian. That was a mistake.” He thought. Then he nodded. “I’d drop that
one,” he said quietly. “But that queered it,” I said. “I’m not
afraid of you. You’re no killer. You didn’t mean to kill her. The other
one—over on Central—you could have squeezed out of. But not out of beating a
woman’s head on a bedpost until her brains were on her face.” “You take some awful chances, brother,” he
said softly. “The way I’ve been handled,” I said, “I
don’t know the difference any more. You didn’t mean to kill her—did you?” His eyes were restless. His head was
cocked in a listening attitude. “It’s about time you learned your own
strength,” I said. “It’s too late,” he said. “You wanted her to tell you something,” I
said. “You took hold of her neck and shook her. She was already dead when you
were banging her head against the bedpost.” He stared at me. “I know what you wanted her to tell you,”
I said. “Go ahead.” “There was a cop with me when she was
found. I had to break clean.” “How clean?” “Fairly clean,” I said. “But not about tonight.”
He stared at me. “Okay, how did you know I
was on the Monty?” He had asked me that before. He seemed to have
forgotten. “I didn’t. But the easiest way to get away
would be by water. With the set-up they have in Bay City you could get out to
one of the gambling boats. From there you could get clean away. With the right
help.” “Laird Brunette is a nice guy,” he said
emptily. “So I’ve heard. I never even spoke to him.” “He got the message to you.” “Hell, there’s a dozen grapevines that
might help him to do that, pal. When do we do what you said on the card? I had
a hunch you were leveling. I wouldn’t take the chance to come here otherwise.
Where do we go?” He killed his cigarette and watched me.
His shadow loomed against the wall, the shadow of a giant. He was so big he
seemed unreal. “What made you think I bumped Jessie
Florian?” he asked suddenly. “The spacing of the finger marks on her
neck. The fact that you had something to get out of her, and that you are
strong enough to kill people without meaning to.” “The johns tied me to it?” “I don’t know.” “What did I want out of her?” “You thought she might know where Velma
was.” He nodded silently and went on staring at
me. “But she didn’t,” I said. “Velma was too
smart for her.” There was a light knocking at the door. Malloy leaned forward a little and smiled
and picked up his gun. Somebody tried the doorknob. Malloy stood up slowly and
leaned forward in a crouch and listened. Then he looked back at me from looking
at the door. I sat up on the bed and put my feet on the
floor and stood up. Malloy watched me silently, without a motion. I went over
to the door. “Who is it?” I asked with my lips to the
panel. It was her voice all right. “Open up,
silly. It’s the Duchess of Windsor.” “Just a second.” I looked back at Malloy. He was frowning.
I went over close to him and said in a very low voice: “There’s no other way
out. Go in the dressing room behind the bed and wait. I’ll get rid of her.” He listened and thought. His expression
was unreadable. He was a man who had now very little to lose. He was a man who
would never know fear. It was not built into even that giant frame. He nodded
at last and picked up his hat and coat and moved silently around the bed and
into the dressing room. The door closed, but did not shut tight. I looked around for signs of him. Nothing
but a cigarette butt that anybody might have smoked. I went to the room door
and opened it. Malloy had set the catch again when he came in. She stood there half smiling, in the high-necked
white fox evening cloak she had told me about. Emerald pendants hung from her
ears and almost buried themselves in the soft white fur. Her fingers were
curled and soft on the small evening bag she carried. The smile died off her face when she saw
me. She looked me up and down. Her eyes were cold now. “So it’s like that,” she said grimly.
“Pajamas and dressing gown. To show me his lovely little etching. What a fool I
am.” I stood aside and held the door. “It’s not
like that at all. I was getting dressed and a cop dropped in on me. He just
left.” “Randall?” I nodded. A lie with a nod is still a lie,
but it’s an easy lie. She hesitated a moment, then moved past me with a swirl
of scented fur. I shut the door. She walked slowly across
the room, stared blankly at the wall, then turned quickly. “Let’s understand each other,” she said.
“I’m not this much of a pushover. I don’t go for hall bedroom romance. There
was a time in my life when I had too much of it. I like things done with an
air.” “Will you have a drink before you go?” I
was still leaning against the door, across the room from her. “Am I going?” “You gave me the impression you didn’t
like it here.” “I wanted to make a point. I have to be a
little vulgar to make it. I’m not one of these promiscuous bitches. I can be
had—but not just by reaching. Yes, I’ll take a drink.” I went out into the kitchenette and mixed
a couple of drinks with hands that were not too steady. I carried them in and
handed her one. There was no sound from the dressing room,
not even a sound of breathing. She took the glass and tasted it and
looked across it at the far wall. “I don’t like men to receive me in their
pajamas,” she said. “It’s a funny thing. I liked you. I liked you a lot. But I
could get over it. I have often got over such things.” I nodded and drank. “Most men are just lousy animals,” she
said. “In fact it’s a pretty lousy world, if you ask me.” “Money must help.” “You think it’s going to when you haven’t
always had money. As a matter of fact it just makes new problems.” She smiled
curiously. “And you forget how hard the old problems were.” She got out a gold cigarette case from her
bag and I went over and held a match for her. She blew a vague plume of smoke
and watched it with half-shut eyes. “Sit close to me,” she said suddenly. “Let’s talk a little first.” “About what? Oh—my jade?” “About murder.” Nothing changed in her face. She blew
another plume of smoke, this time more carefully, more slowly. “It’s a nasty
subject. Do we have to?” I shrugged. “Lin Marriott was no saint,” she said.
“But I still don’t want to talk about it.” She stared at me coolly for a long moment
and then dipped her hand into her open bag for a handkerchief. “Personally I don’t think he was a finger
man for a jewel mob, either,” I said. “The police pretend that they think that,
but they do a lot of pretending. I don’t even think he was a blackmailer, in
any real sense. Funny, isn’t it?” “Is it?” The voice was very, very cold
now. “Well, not really,” I agreed and drank the
rest of my drink. “It was awfully nice of you to come here, Mrs. Grayle. But we
seem to have hit the wrong mood. I don’t even, for example, think Marriott was
killed by a gang. I don’t think he was going to that canyon to buy a jade
necklace. I don’t even think a jade necklace was ever stolen. I think he went
to that canyon to be murdered, although he thought he went there to help commit
a murder. But Marriott was a very bad murderer.” She leaned forward a little and her smile
became just a little glassy. Suddenly, without any real change in her, she
ceased to be beautiful. She looked merely like a woman who would have been
dangerous a hundred years ago, and twenty years ago daring, but who today was
just Grade B Hollywood. She said nothing, but her right hand was
tapping the clasp of her bag. “A very bad murderer,” I said. “Like
Shakespeare’s Second Murderer in that scene in King Richard III. The fellow
that had certain dregs of conscience, but still wanted the money, and in the
end didn’t do the job at all because he couldn’t make up his mind. Such
murderers are very dangerous. They have to be removed—sometimes with
blackjacks.” She smiled. “And who was he about to
murder, do you suppose?” “Me.” “That must be very difficult to
believe—that anyone would hate you that much. And you said my jade necklace was
never stolen at all. Have you any proof of all this?” “I didn’t say I had. I said I thought
these things.” “Then why be such a fool as to talk about
them?” “Proof,” I said, “is always a relative
thing. It’s an overwhelming balance of probabilities. And that’s a matter of
how they strike you. There was rather weak motive for murdering me—merely that
I was trying to trace a former Central Avenue dive singer at the same time that
a convict named Moose Malloy got out of jail and started to look for her too.
Perhaps I was helping him find her. Obviously, it was possible to find her, or
it wouldn’t have been worthwhile to pretend to Marriott that I had to be killed
and killed quickly. And obviously he wouldn’t have believed it, if it wasn’t
so. But there was a much stronger motive for murdering Marriott, which he, out
of vanity or love or greed or a mixture of all three, didn’t evaluate. He was
afraid, but not for himself. He was afraid of violence to which he was a part
and for which be could be convicted. But on the other hand he was fighting for
his meal ticket. So he took the chance.” I stopped. She nodded and said: “Very
interesting. If one knows what you are talking about.” “And one does,” I said. We stared at each other. She had her right
hand in her bag again now. I had a good idea what it held. But it hadn’t
started to come out yet. Every event takes time. “Let’s quit kidding,” I said. “We’re all
alone here. Nothing either of us says has the slightest standing against what
the other says. We cancel each other out. A girl who started in the gutter
became the wife of a multimillionaire. On the way up a shabby old woman
recognized her—probably heard her singing at the radio station and recognized
the voice and went to see—and this old woman had to be kept quiet. But she was
cheap, therefore she only knew a little. But the man who dealt with her and
made her monthly payments and owned a trust deed on her home and could throw
her into the gutter any time she got funny—that man knew it all. He was
expensive. But that didn’t matter either, as long as nobody else knew. But some
day a tough guy named Moose Malloy was going to get out of jail and start
finding things out about his former sweetie. Because the big sap loved her—and
still does. That’s what makes it funny, tragic-funny. And about that time a
private dick starts nosing in also. So the weak link in the chain, Marriott, is
no longer a luxury. He has become a menace. They’ll get to him and they’ll take
him apart. He’s that kind of lad. He melts under heat. So he was murdered
before he could melt. With a blackjack. By you.” All she did was take her hand out of her
bag, with a gun in it. All she did was point it at me and smile. All I did was
nothing. But that wasn’t all that was done. Moose
Malloy stepped out of the dressing room with the Colt .45 still looking like a
toy in his big hairy paw. He didn’t look at me at all. He looked at
Mrs. Lewin Lockridge Grayle. He leaned forward and his mouth smiled at her and
he spoke to her softly. “I thought I knew that voice,” he said. “I
listened to that voice for eight years—all I could remember of it. I kind of
liked your hair red, though. Hiya, babe. Long time no see.” She turned the gun. “Get away from me, you son of a bitch,”
she said. He stopped dead and dropped the gun to his
side. He was still a couple of feet from her. His breath labored. “I never thought,” he said quietly. “It
just came to me out of the blue. You turned me into the cops. You.
Little Velma.” I threw a pillow, but it was too slow. She
shot him five times in the stomach. The bullets made no more sound than fingers
going into a glove. Then she turned the gun and shot at me but
it was empty. She dived for Malloy’s gun on the floor. I didn’t miss with the
second pillow. I was around the bed and knocked her away before she got the
pillow off her face. I picked the Colt up and went away around the bed again
with it. He was still standing, but he was swaying.
His mouth was slack and his hands were fumbling at his body. He went slack at
the knees and fell sideways on the bed, with his face down. His gasping breath
filled the room. I had the phone in my hand before she
moved. Her eyes were a dead gray, like half-frozen water. She rushed for the
door and I didn’t try to stop her. She left the door wide, so when I had done
phoning I went over and shut it. I turned his head a little on the bed, so he
wouldn’t smother. He was still alive, but after five in the stomach even a
Moose Malloy doesn’t live very long. I went back to the phone and called
Randall at his home. “Malloy.” I said. “In my apartment. Shot five times in the
stomach by Mrs. Grayle. I called the Receiving Hospital. She got away.” “So you had to play clever,” was all he
said and hung up quickly. I went back to the bed. Malloy was on his
knees beside the bed now, trying to get up, a great wad of bedclothes in one
hand. His face poured sweat. His eyelids flickered slowly and the lobes of his
ears were dark. He was still on his knees and still trying
to get up when the fast wagon got there. It took four men to get him on the
stretcher. “He has a slight chance—if they’re .25’s,”
the fast wagon doctor said just before he went out. “All depends what they hit
inside. But he has a chance.” “He wouldn’t want it,” I said. He didn’t. He died in the night. 40 “You ought to have given a dinner party,”
Anne Riordan said, looking at me across her tan figured rug. “Gleaming silver
and crystal, bright crisp linen—if they’re still using linen in the places
where they give dinner parties—candlelight, the women in their best jewels and
the men in white ties, the servants hovering discreetly with the wrapped
bottles of wine, the cops looking a little uncomfortable in their hired evening
clothes, as who the hell wouldn’t, the suspects with their brittle smiles and
restless hands, and you at the head of the long table telling all about it,
little by little, with your charming light smile and a phony English accent
like Philo Vance.” “Yeah,” I said. “How about a little
something to be holding in my hand while you go on being clever?” She went out to her kitchen and rattled
ice and came back with a couple of tall ones and sat down again. “The liquor bills of your lady friends
must be something fierce,” she said and sipped. “And suddenly the butler fainted,” I said.
“Only it wasn’t the butler who did the murder. He just fainted to be cute.” I inhaled some of my drink. “It’s not that
kind of story,” I said. “It’s not lithe and clever. It’s just dark and full of
blood.” “So she got away?” I nodded. “So far. She never went home.
She must have had a little hideout where she could change her clothes and
appearance. After all she lived in peril, like the sailors. She was alone when
she came to see me. No chauffeur. She came in a small car and she left it a few
dozen blocks away.” “They’ll catch her—if they really try.” “Don’t be like that. Wilde, the D.A. is on
the level. I worked for him once. But if they catch her, what then? They’re up
against twenty million dollars and a lovely face and either Lee Farrell or
Rennenkamp. It’s going to be awfully hard to prove she killed Marriott. All
they have is what looks like a heavy motive and her past life, if they can
trace it. She probably has no record, or she wouldn’t have played it this way.”
“What about Malloy? If you had told me
about him before, I’d have known who she was right away. By the way, how did
you know? These two photos are not of the same woman.” “No. I doubt if even old lady Florian knew
they had been switched on her. She looked kind of surprised when I showed the
photo of Velma—the one that had Velma Valento written on it—in front of her
nose. But she may have known. She may have just hid it with the idea of selling
it to me later on. Knowing it was harmless, a photo of some other girl Marriott
substituted.” “That’s just guessing.” “It had to be that way. Just as when
Marriott called me up and gave me a song and dance about a jewel ransom payoff
it had to be because I had been to see Mrs. Florian about Velma. And when
Marriott was killed, it had to be because he was the weak link in the chain.
Mrs. Florian didn’t even know Vehna had become Mrs. Lewin Lockridge Grayle. She
couldn’t have. They bought her too cheap. Grayle says they went to Europe to be
married and she was married under her real name. He won’t tell where or when.
He won’t tell what her real name was. He won’t tell where she is. I don’t think
he knows, but the cops don’t believe that.” “Why won’t he tell?” Anne Riordan cupped
her chin on the backs of her laced fingers and stared at me with shadowed eyes.
“He’s so crazy about her he doesn’t care
whose lap she sat in.” “I hope she enjoyed sitting in yours,”
Anne Riordan said, acidly. “She was playing me. She was a little
afraid of me. She didn’t want to kill me because it’s bad business killing a
man who is a sort of cop. But she probably would have tried in the end, just as
she would have killed Jessie Florian, if Malloy hadn’t saved her the trouble.” “I bet it’s fun to be played by handsome
blondes,” Anna Riordan said. “Even if there is a little risk. As, I suppose,
there usually is.” I didn’t say anything. “I suppose they can’t do anything to her
for killing Malloy, because he had a gun.” “No. Not with her pull.” The gold flecked eyes studied me solemnly.
“Do think she meant to kill Malloy?” “She was afraid of him,” I said. “She had
turned him in eight years ago. He seemed to know that. But he wouldn’t have
hurt her. He was in love with her too. Yes, I think she meant to kill anybody
she had to kill. She had a lot to fight for. But you can’t keep that sort of
thing up indefinitely. She took a shot at me in my apartment—but the gun was
empty then. She ought to have killed me out on the bluff when she killed Marriott.”
“He was in love with her,” Anne said
softly. “I mean Malloy. It didn’t matter to him that she hadn’t written to him
in six years or ever gone to see him while he was in jail. It didn’t matter to
him that she had turned him in for a reward. He just bought some fine clothes
and started to look for her the first thing when he got out. So she pumped five
bullets into him, by way of saying hello. He had killed two people himself, but
he was in love with her. What a world.” I finished my drink and got the thirsty
look on my face again. She ignored it. She said: “And she had to tell Grayle where she came
from and he didn’t care. He went away to marry her under another name and sold
his radio station to break contact with anybody who might know her and he gave
her everything that money can buy and she gave him—what?” “That’s hard to say.” I shook the ice
cubes at the bottom of my glass. That didn’t get me anything either. “I suppose
she gave him a sort of pride that he, a rather old man, could have a young and
beautiful and dashing wife. He loved her. What the hell are we talking about it
for? These things happen all the time. It didn’t make any difference what she
did or who she played around with or what she had once been. He loved her.” “Like Moose Malloy,” Anne said quietly. “Let’s go riding along the water.” “You didn’t tell me about Brunette or the
cards that were in those reefers or Amthor or Dr. Sonderborg or that little
clue that set you on the path of the great solution.” “I gave Mrs. Florian one of my cards. She
put a wet glass on it. Such a card was in Marriott’s pockets, wet glass mark
and all. Marriott was not a messy man. That was a clue, of sorts. Once you
suspected anything it was easy to find out other connections, such as that
Marriott owned a trust deed on Mrs. Florian’s home, just to keep her in line.
As for Amthor, he’s a bad hat. They picked him up in a New York hotel and they
say he’s an international con man. Scotland Yard has his prints, also Paris.
How the hell they got all that since yesterday or the day before I don’t know.
These boys work fast when they feel like it. I think Randall has had this thing
taped for days and was afraid I’d step on the tapes. But Amthor had nothing to
do with killing anybody. Or with Sonderborg. They haven’t found Sonderborg yet.
They think he has a record too, but they’re not sure until they get him. As for
Brunette, you can’t get anything on a guy like Brunette. They’ll have him
before the Grand Jury and he’ll refuse to say anything, on his constitutional
rights. He doesn’t have to bother about his reputation. But there’s a nice
shakeup here in Bay City. Chief has been canned and half the detectives have
been reduced to acting patrolmen, and a very nice guy named Red Norgaard, who
helped me get on the Montecito, has got his job back. The mayor is doing
all this, changing his pants hourly while the crisis lasts.” “Do you have to say things like that?” “The Shakespearean touch. Let’s go riding.
After we’ve had another drink.” “You can have mine,” Anne Riordan said,
and got up and brought her untouched drink over to me. She stood in front of me
holding it, her eyes wide and a little frightened. “You’re so marvelous,” she said. “So
brave, so determined and you work for so little money. Everybody bats you over
the head and chokes you and smacks your jaw and fills you with morphine, but
you just keep right on hitting between tackle and end until they’re all worn
out. What makes you so wonderful?” “Go on,” I growled. “Spill it.” Anne Riordan said thoughtfully: “I’d like
to be kissed, damn you!” 41 It took over three months to find Velma.
They wouldn’t believe Grayle didn’t know where she was and hadn’t helped her
get away. So every cop and newshawk in the country looked in all the places
where money might be hiding her. And money wasn’t hiding her at all. Although
the way she hid was pretty obvious once it was found out. One night a Baltimore detective with a
camera eye as rare as a pink zebra wandered into a nightclub and listened to
the band and looked at a handsome black-haired, black browed torcher who could
sing as if she meant it. Something in her face struck a chord and the chord
went on vibrating. He went back to Headquarters and got out
the Wanted file and started through the pile of readers. When he came to the
one he wanted he looked at it a long time. Then he straightened his straw hat
on his head and went back to the nightclub and got hold of the manager. They
went back to the dressing rooms behind the shell and the manager knocked on one
of the doors. It wasn’t locked. The dick pushed the manager aside and went in
and locked it. He must have smelled marijuana because she
was smoking it, but he didn’t pay any attention then. She was sitting in front
of a triple mirror, studying the roots of her hair and eyebrows. They were her
own eyebrows. The dick stepped across the room smiling and handed her the
reader. She must have looked at the face on the
reader almost as long as the dick had down at Headquarters. There was a lot to
think about while she was looking at it. The dick sat down and crossed his legs
and lit a cigarette. He had a good eye, but he had over-specialized. He didn’t
know enough about women. Finally she laughed a little and said:
“You’re a smart lad, copper. I thought I had a voice that would be remembered.
A friend recognized me by it once, just hearing it on the radio. But I’ve been
singing with this band for a month—twice a week on a network—and nobody gave it
a thought.” “I never heard the voice,” the dick said
and went on smiling. She said: “I suppose we can’t make a deal
on this. You know, there’s a lot in it, if it’s handled right.” “Not with me,” the dick said. “Sorry.” “Let’s go then,” she said and stood up and
grabbed up her bag and got her coat from a hanger. She went over to him holding
the coat out so he could help her into it. He stood up and held it for her like
a gentleman. She turned and slipped a gun out of her
bag and shot him three times through the coat he was holding. She had two bullets left in the gun when
they crashed the door. They got halfway across the room before she used them.
She used them both, but the second shot must have been pure reflex. They caught
her before she hit the floor, but her head was already hanging by a rag. “The dick lived until the next day,”
Randall said, telling me about it. “He talked when he could. That’s how we have
the dope. I can’t understand him being so careless, unless he really was
thinking of letting her talk him into a deal of some kind. That would clutter
up his mind. But I don’t like to think that, of course.” I said I supposed that was so. “Shot herself clean through the
heart—twice,” Randall said. “And I’ve heard experts on the stand say that’s
impossible, knowing all the time myself that it was. And you know something
else?” “What?” “She was stupid to shoot that dick. We’d
never have convicted her, not with her looks and money and the persecution
story these high-priced guys would build up. Poor little girl from a dive
climbs to be wife of rich man and the vultures that used to know her won’t let
her alone. That sort of thing. Hell, Rennenkamp would have half a dozen crummy
old burlesque dames in court to sob that they’d gone blackmailed her for years,
and in a way that you pin anything on them but the jury would go for it. She
did a smart thing to run off on her own and leave Grayle out of it, but it
would have been smarter to have come home when she was caught.” “Oh you believe now that she left Grayle
out of it,” I said. He nodded. I said: “Do you think she had
any particular reason for that?” He stared at me. “I’ll go for it, whatever
it is.” “She was a killer,” I said. “But so was
Malloy. And he was a long way from being all rat. Maybe that Baltimore dick
wasn’t so pure as the record shows. Maybe she saw a chance—not to get away—she
was tired of dodging by that time—but to give a break to the only man who had
ever really given her one.” Randall stared at me with his mouth open
and his eyes unconvinced. “Hell, she didn’t have to shoot a cop to
do that,” he said. “I’m not saying she was a saint or even a
halfway nice girl. Not ever. She wouldn’t kill herself until she was cornered.
But what she did and the way she did it, kept her from coming back here for
trial. Think that over. And who would that trial hurt most? Who would be least
able to bear it? And win, lose or draw, who would pay the biggest price for the
show? An old man who had loved not wisely, but too well.” Randall said sharply: “That’s just
sentimental.” “Sure. It sounded like that when I said
it. Probably all a mistake anyway. So long. Did my pink bug ever get back up
here?” He didn’t know what I was talking about. I rode down to the street floor and went
out on the steps of the City Hall. It was a cool day and very clear. You could
see a long way—but not as far as Velma had gone. About the Author RAYMOND CHANDLER was born in Chicago, Illinois, on July 23, 1888,
but spent most of his boyhood and youth in England, where he attended Dulwich
College and later worked as a free-lance journalist for The Westminster Gazette
and The Spectator. During World War I, he served in France with the First
Division of the Canadian Expeditionary Force, transferring later to the Royal
Flying Corps (R.A.F.). In 1919 he returned to the United States, settling in
California, where he eventually became director of a number of independent oil
companies. The Depression put an end to his business career, and in 1933, at
the age of forty-five, he turned to writing, publishing his first stories in
Black Mask. His first novel, The Big Sleep, was published in 1939. Never a
prolific writer, he published only one collection of stories and seven novels
in his lifetime. In the last year of his life he was elected president of the
Mystery Writers of America. He died in La Jolla, California, on March 26, 1959. |
|
© 2025 Библиотека RealLib.org
(support [a t] reallib.org) |